Title: Mein Kampf
Author: Adolf Hitler (1889-1945)
Translated into
English by James
Murphy (died 1946).
* A Project Gutenberg of Australia eBook
*
eBook No.: 0200601.txt
Language: English
Date first posted: September
2002
Date most recently updated: September 2002
This eBook was
produced by: Colin Choat
Production notes:
* This translation of the
unexpurgated edition of "MEIN KAMPF"
was first published on March 21st, 1939
by HURST AND BLACKETT LTD.
* Italics in the book have been converted to upper
case in this eBook.
* Notes appear at the end of the paragraph in which the
note reference
appears.
Project Gutenberg of Australia eBooks are
created from printed editions
which are in the public domain in Australia,
unless a copyright notice
is included. We do NOT keep any eBooks in
compliance with a particular
paper edition.
Copyright laws are
changing all over the world. Be sure to check the
copyright laws for your
country before downloading or redistributing this
file.
This eBook is
made available at no cost and with almost no restrictions
whatsoever. You may
copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
of the Project Gutenberg
of Australia License which may be viewed online at
http://gutenberg.net.au/licence.html
To contact Project Gutenberg of Australia go to http://gutenberg.net.au
--------------------------------------------------------------------------
A Project Gutenberg of Australia eBook
Title: Mein Kampf
Author:
Adolf Hitler (1889-1945)
Translated into English by James Murphy (died 1946).
INTRODUCTION
VOLUME I: A RETROSPECT
CHAPTER I IN THE HOME OF MY PARENTS
CHAPTER II YEARS OF STUDY AND SUFFERING IN VIENNA
CHAPTER III POLITICAL
REFLECTIONS ARISING OUT OF MY SOJOURN IN VIENNA
CHAPTER IV MUNICH
CHAPTER
V THE WORLD WAR
CHAPTER VI WAR PROPAGANDA
CHAPTER VII THE REVOLUTION
CHAPTER VIII THE BEGINNING OF MY POLITICAL ACTIVITIES
CHAPTER IX THE GERMAN
LABOUR PARTY
CHAPTER X WHY THE SECOND REICH COLLAPSED
CHAPTER XI RACE AND
PEOPLE
CHAPTER XII THE FIRST STAGE IN THE DEVELOPMENT OF THE GERMAN NATIONAL
SOCIALIST LABOUR PARTY
VOLUME II: THE NATIONAL SOCIALIST MOVEMENT
CHAPTER I WELTANSCHAUUNG AND PARTY
CHAPTER II THE STATE
CHAPTER III
CITIZENS AND SUBJECTS OF THE STATE
CHAPTER IV PERSONALITY AND THE IDEAL OF
THE PEOPLE'S STATE
CHAPTER V WELTANSCHAUUNG AND ORGANIZATION
CHAPTER VI
THE FIRST PERIOD OF OUR STRUGGLE
CHAPTER VII THE CONFLICT WITH THE RED FORCES
CHAPTER VIII THE STRONG IS STRONGEST WHEN ALONE
CHAPTER IX FUNDAMENTAL IDEAS
REGARDING THE NATURE AND ORGANIZATION OF
THE STORM TROOPS
CHAPTER X THE
MASK OF FEDERALISM
CHAPTER XI PROPAGANDA AND ORGANIZATION
CHAPTER XII THE
PROBLEM OF THE TRADE UNIONS
CHAPTER XIII THE GERMAN POST-WAR POLICY OF
ALLIANCES
CHAPTER XIV GERMANY'S POLICY IN EASTERN EUROPE
CHAPTER XV THE
RIGHT TO SELF-DEFENCE
EPILOGUE
INTRODUCTION
AUTHOR'S PREFACE
On April 1st, 1924, I began to serve my sentence
of detention in the
Fortress of Landsberg am Lech, following the verdict of
the Munich
People's Court of that time.
After years of uninterrupted
labour it was now possible for the first
time to begin a work which many had
asked for and which I myself felt
would be profitable for the Movement. So I
decided to devote two volumes
to a description not only of the aims of our
Movement but also of its
development. There is more to be learned from this
than from any purely
doctrinaire treatise.
This has also given me the
opportunity of describing my own development
in so far as such a description
is necessary to the understanding of the
first as well as the second volume
and to destroy the legendary
fabrications which the Jewish Press have
circulated about me.
In this work I turn not to strangers but to those
followers of the
Movement whose hearts belong to it and who wish to study it
more
profoundly. I know that fewer people are won over by the written word
than by the spoken word and that every great movement on this earth owes
its
growth to great speakers and not to great writers.
Nevertheless, in order
to produce more equality and uniformity in the
defence of any doctrine, its
fundamental principles must be committed to
writing. May these two volumes
therefore serve as the building stones
which I contribute to the joint work.
The Fortress, Landsberg am Lech.
At half-past twelve in the
afternoon of November 9th, 1923, those whose
names are given below fell in
front of the FELDHERRNHALLE and in the
forecourt of the former War Ministry
in Munich for their loyal faith in
the resurrection of their people:
Alfarth, Felix, Merchant, born July 5th, 1901
Bauriedl, Andreas, Hatmaker,
born May 4th, 1879
Casella, Theodor, Bank Official, born August 8th, 1900
Ehrlich, Wilhelm, Bank Official, born August 19th, 1894
Faust, Martin, Bank
Official, born January 27th, 1901
Hechenberger, Anton, Locksmith, born
September 28th, 1902
Koerner, Oskar, Merchant, born January 4th, 1875
Kuhn, Karl, Head Waiter, born July 25th, 1897
Laforce, Karl, Student of
Engineering, born October 28th, 1904
Neubauer, Kurt, Waiter, born March 27th,
1899
Pape, Claus von, Merchant, born August 16th, 1904
Pfordten, Theodor
von der, Councillor to the Superior Provincial Court,
born May 14th, 1873
Rickmers, Johann, retired Cavalry Captain, born May 7th, 1881
Scheubner-Richter, Max Erwin von, Dr. of Engineering, born January 9th,
1884
Stransky, Lorenz Ritter von, Engineer, born March 14th, 1899
Wolf, Wilhelm,
Merchant, born October 19th, 1898
So-called national officials refused to
allow the dead heroes a common
burial. So I dedicate the first volume of this
work to them as a common
memorial, that the memory of those martyrs may be a
permanent source of
light for the followers of our Movement.
The
Fortress, Landsberg a/L.,
October 16th, 1924
TRANSLATOR'S
INTRODUCTION
In placing before the reader this unabridged translation of
Adolf
Hitler's book, MEIN KAMPF, I feel it my duty to call attention to
certain historical facts which must be borne in mind if the reader would
form
a fair judgment of what is written in this extraordinary work.
The first
volume of MEIN KAMPF was written while the author was
imprisoned in a
Bavarian fortress. How did he get there and why? The
answer to that question
is important, because the book deals with the
events which brought the author
into this plight and because he wrote
under the emotional stress caused by
the historical happenings of the
time. It was the hour of Germany's deepest
humiliation, somewhat
parallel to that of a little over a century before,
when Napoleon had
dismembered the old German Empire and French soldiers
occupied almost
the whole of Germany.
In the beginning of 1923 the
French invaded Germany, occupied the Ruhr
district and seized several German
towns in the Rhineland. This was a
flagrant breach of international law and
was protested against by every
section of British political opinion at that
time. The Germans could not
effectively defend themselves, as they had been
already disarmed under
the provisions of the Versailles Treaty. To make the
situation more
fraught with disaster for Germany, and therefore more
appalling in its
prospect, the French carried on an intensive propaganda for
the
separation of the Rhineland from the German Republic and the
establishment of an independent Rhenania. Money was poured out lavishly
to
bribe agitators to carry on this work, and some of the most insidious
elements of the German population became active in the pay of the
invader. At
the same time a vigorous movement was being carried on in
Bavaria for the
secession of that country and the establishment of an
independent Catholic
monarchy there, under vassalage to France, as
Napoleon had done when he made
Maximilian the first King of Bavaria in
1805.
The separatist movement
in the Rhineland went so far that some leading
German politicians came out in
favour of it, suggesting that if the
Rhineland were thus ceded it might be
possible for the German Republic
to strike a bargain with the French in
regard to Reparations. But in
Bavaria the movement went even farther. And it
was more far-reaching in
its implications; for, if an independent Catholic
monarchy could be set
up in Bavaria, the next move would have been a union
with Catholic
German-Austria. possibly under a Habsburg King. Thus a Catholic
BLOC
would have been created which would extend from the Rhineland through
Bavaria and Austria into the Danube Valley and would have been at least
under
the moral and military, if not the full political, hegemony of
France. The
dream seems fantastic now, but it was considered quite a
practical thing in
those fantastic times. The effect of putting such a
plan into action would
have meant the complete dismemberment of Germany;
and that is what French
diplomacy aimed at. Of course such an aim no
longer exists. And I should not
recall what must now seem "old, unhappy,
far-off things" to the modern
generation, were it not that they were
very near and actual at the time MEIN
KAMPF was written and were more
unhappy then than we can even imagine now.
By the autumn of 1923 the separatist movement in Bavaria was on the
point
of becoming an accomplished fact. General von Lossow, the Bavarian
chief of
the REICHSWEHR no longer took orders from Berlin. The flag of
the German
Republic was rarely to be seen, Finally, the Bavarian Prime
Minister decided
to proclaim an independent Bavaria and its secession
from the German
Republic. This was to have taken place on the eve of the
Fifth Anniversary of
the establishment of the German Republic (November
9th, 1918.)
Hitler
staged a counter-stroke. For several days he had been mobilizing
his storm
battalions in the neighbourhood of Munich, intending to make a
national
demonstration and hoping that the REICHSWEHR would stand by him
to prevent
secession. Ludendorff was with him. And he thought that the
prestige of the
great German Commander in the World War would be
sufficient to win the
allegiance of the professional army.
A meeting had been announced to take
place in the Bürgerbräu Keller on
the night of November 8th. The Bavarian
patriotic societies were
gathered there, and the Prime Minister, Dr. von Kahr,
started to read
his official PRONUNCIAMENTO, which practically amounted to a
proclamation of Bavarian independence and secession from the Republic.
While
von Kahr was speaking Hitler entered the hall, followed by
Ludendorff. And
the meeting was broken up.
Next day the Nazi battalions took the street
for the purpose of making a
mass demonstration in favour of national union.
They marched in massed
formation, led by Hitler and Ludendorff. As they
reached one of the
central squares of the city the army opened fire on them.
Sixteen of the
marchers were instantly killed, and two died of their wounds
in the
local barracks of the REICHSWEHR. Several others were wounded also.
Hitler fell on the pavement and broke a collar-bone. Ludendorff marched
straight up to the soldiers who were firing from the barricade, but not
a man
dared draw a trigger on his old Commander.
Hitler was arrested with
several of his comrades and imprisoned in the
fortress of Landsberg on the
River Lech. On February 26th, 1924, he was
brought to trial before the
VOLKSGERICHT, or People's Court in Munich.
He was sentenced to detention in a
fortress for five years. With several
companions, who had been also sentenced
to various periods of
imprisonment, he returned to Landsberg am Lech and
remained there until
the 20th of the following December, when he was
released. In all he
spent about thirteen months in prison. It was during this
period that he
wrote the first volume of MEIN KAMPF.
If we bear all
this in mind we can account for the emotional stress
under which MEIN KAMPF
was written. Hitler was naturally incensed
against the Bavarian government
authorities, against the footling
patriotic societies who were pawns in the
French game, though often
unconsciously so, and of course against the French.
That he should write
harshly of the French was only natural in the
circumstances. At that
time there was no exaggeration whatsoever in calling
France the
implacable and mortal enemy of Germany. Such language was being
used by
even the pacifists themselves, not only in Germany but abroad. And
even
though the second volume of MEIN KAMPF was written after Hitler's
release from prison and was published after the French had left the
Ruhr, the
tramp of the invading armies still echoed in German ears, and
the terrible
ravages that had been wrought in the industrial and
financial life of
Germany, as a consequence of the French invasion, had
plunged the country
into a state of social and economic chaos. In France
itself the franc fell to
fifty per cent of its previous value. Indeed,
the whole of Europe had been
brought to the brink of ruin, following the
French invasion of the Ruhr and
Rhineland.
But, as those things belong to the limbo of a dead past that
nobody
wishes to have remembered now, it is often asked: Why doesn't Hitler
revise MEIN KAMPF? The answer, as I think, which would immediately come
into
the mind of an impartial critic is that MEIN KAMPF is an historical
document
which bears the imprint of its own time. To revise it would
involve taking it
out of its historical context. Moreover Hitler has
declared that his acts and
public statements constitute a partial
revision of his book and are to be
taken as such. This refers especially
to the statements in MEIN KAMPF
regarding France and those German
kinsfolk that have not yet been
incorporated in the REICH. On behalf of
Germany he has definitely
acknowledged the German portion of South Tyrol
as permanently belonging to
Italy and, in regard to France, he has again
and again declared that no
grounds now exist for a conflict of political
interests between Germany and
France and that Germany has no territorial
claims against France. Finally, I
may note here that Hitler has also
declared that, as he was only a political
leader and not yet a statesman
in a position of official responsibility, when
he wrote this book, what
he stated in MEIN KAMPF does not implicate him as
Chancellor of the
REICH.
I now come to some references in the text
which are frequently recurring
and which may not always be clear to every
reader. For instance, Hitler
speaks indiscriminately of the German REICH.
Sometimes he means to refer
to the first REICH, or Empire, and sometimes to
the German Empire as
founded under William I in 1871. Incidentally the regime
which he
inaugurated in 1933 is generally known as the THIRD REICH, though
this
expression is not used in MEIN KAMPF. Hitler also speaks of the Austrian
REICH and the East Mark, without always explicitly distinguishing
between the
Habsburg Empire and Austria proper. If the reader will bear
the following
historical outline in mind, he will understand the
references as they occur.
The word REICH, which is a German form of the Latin word REGNUM, does
not
mean Kingdom or Empire or Republic. It is a sort of basic word that
may apply
to any form of Constitution. Perhaps our word, Realm, would be
the best
translation, though the word Empire can be used when the REICH
was actually
an Empire. The forerunner of the first German Empire was
the Holy Roman
Empire which Charlemagne founded in A.D. 800. Charlemagne
was King of the
Franks, a group of Germanic tribes that subsequently
became Romanized. In the
tenth century Charlemagne's Empire passed into
German hands when Otto I
(936-973) became Emperor. As the Holy Roman
Empire of the German Nation, its
formal appellation, it continued to
exist under German Emperors until
Napoleon overran and dismembered
Germany during the first decade of the last
century. On August 6th,
1806, the last Emperor, Francis II, formally resigned
the German crown.
In the following October Napoleon entered Berlin in
triumph, after the
Battle of Jena.
After the fall of Napoleon a
movement set in for the reunion of the
German states in one Empire. But the
first decisive step towards that
end was the foundation of the Second German
Empire in 1871, after the
Franco-Prussian War. This Empire, however, did not
include the German
lands which remained under the Habsburg Crown. These were
known as
German Austria. It was Bismarck's dream to unite German Austria with
the
German Empire; but it remained only a dream until Hitler turned it into
a reality in 1938'. It is well to bear that point in mind, because this
dream
of reuniting all the German states in one REICH has been a
dominant feature
of German patriotism and statesmanship for over a
century and has been one of
Hitler's ideals since his childhood.
In MEIN KAMPF Hitler often speaks of
the East Mark. This East Mark--i.e.
eastern frontier land--was founded by
Charlemagne as the eastern bulwark
of the Empire. It was inhabited
principally by Germano-Celtic tribes
called Bajuvari and stood for centuries
as the firm bulwark of Western
Christendom against invasion from the East,
especially against the
Turks. Geographically it was almost identical with
German Austria.
There are a few points more that I wish to mention in
this introductory
note. For instance, I have let the word WELTANSCHAUUNG
stand in its
original form very often. We have no one English word to convey
the same
meaning as the German word, and it would have burdened the text too
much
if I were to use a circumlocution each time the word occurs.
WELTANSCHAUUNG literally means "Outlook-on-the World". But as generally
used
in German this outlook on the world means a whole system of ideas
associated
together in an organic unity--ideas of human life, human
values, cultural and
religious ideas, politics, economics, etc., in fact
a totalitarian view of
human existence. Thus Christianity could be
called a WELTANSCHAUUNG, and
Mohammedanism could be called a
WELTANSCHAUUNG, and Socialism could be called
a WELTANSCHAUUNG,
especially as preached in Russia. National Socialism claims
definitely
to be a WELTANSCHAUUNG.
Another word I have often left
standing in the original is VÖLKISCH. The
basic word here is VOLK, which is
sometimes translated as PEOPLE; but
the German word, VOLK, means the whole
body of the PEOPLE without any
distinction of class or caste. It is a primary
word also that suggests
what might be called the basic national stock. Now,
after the defeat in
1918, the downfall of the Monarchy and the destruction of
the
aristocracy and the upper classes, the concept of DAS VOLK came into
prominence as the unifying co-efficient which would embrace the whole
German
people. Hence the large number of VÖLKISCH societies that arose
after the war
and hence also the National Socialist concept of
unification which is
expressed by the word VOLKSGEMEINSCHAFT, or folk
community. This is used in
contradistinction to the Socialist concept of
the nation as being divided
into classes. Hitler's ideal is the
VÖLKISCHER STAAT, which I have translated
as the People's State.
Finally, I would point out that the term Social
Democracy may be
misleading in English, as it has not a democratic
connotation in our
sense. It was the name given to the Socialist Party in
Germany. And that
Party was purely Marxist; but it adopted the name Social
Democrat in
order to appeal to the democratic sections of the German people.
JAMES MURPHY.
Abbots Langley, February, 1939
VOLUME I: A RETROSPECT
CHAPTER I
IN THE HOME
OF MY PARENTS
It has turned out fortunate for me to-day that destiny
appointed
Braunau-on-the-Inn to be my birthplace. For that little town is
situated
just on the frontier between those two States the reunion of which
seems, at least to us of the younger generation, a task to which we
should
devote our lives and in the pursuit of which every possible means
should be
employed.
German-Austria must be restored to the great German Motherland.
And not
indeed on any grounds of economic calculation whatsoever. No, no.
Even
if the union were a matter of economic indifference, and even if it were
to be disadvantageous from the economic standpoint, still it ought to
take
place. People of the same blood should be in the same REICH. The
German
people will have no right to engage in a colonial policy until
they shall
have brought all their children together in the one State.
When the territory
of the REICH embraces all the Germans and finds
itself unable to assure them
a livelihood, only then can the moral right
arise, from the need of the
people to acquire foreign territory. The
plough is then the sword; and the
tears of war will produce the daily
bread for the generations to come.
And so this little frontier town appeared to me as the symbol of a great
task. But in another regard also it points to a lesson that is
applicable to
our day. Over a hundred years ago this sequestered spot
was the scene of a
tragic calamity which affected the whole German
nation and will be remembered
for ever, at least in the annals of German
history. At the time of our
Fatherland's deepest humiliation a
bookseller, Johannes Palm, uncompromising
nationalist and enemy of the
French, was put to death here because he had the
misfortune to have
loved Germany well. He obstinately refused to disclose the
names of his
associates, or rather the principals who were chiefly
responsible for
the affair. Just as it happened with Leo Schlageter. The
former, like
the latter, was denounced to the French by a Government agent.
It was a
director of police from Augsburg who won an ignoble renown on that
occasion and set the example which was to be copied at a later date by
the
neo-German officials of the REICH under Herr Severing's
regime (Note 1).
[Note 1. In order to understand the reference here, and similar
references in later portions of MEIN KAMPF, the following must be borne
in
mind:
From 1792 to 1814 the French Revolutionary Armies overran Germany.
In
1800 Bavaria shared in the Austrian defeat at Hohenlinden and the French
occupied Munich. In 1805 the Bavarian Elector was made King of Bavaria by
Napoleon and stipulated to back up Napoleon in all his wars with a force
of
30,000 men. Thus Bavaria became the absolute vassal of the French.
This was
'TheTime of Germany's Deepest Humiliation', Which is referred
to again and
again by Hitler.
In 1806 a pamphlet entitled 'Germany's Deepest
Humiliation' was
published in South Germany. Amnng those who helped to
circulate the
pamphlet was the Nürnberg bookseller, Johannes Philipp Palm. He
was
denounced to the French by a Bavarian police agent. At his trial he
refused to disclose thename of the author. By Napoleon's orders, he was
shot
at Braunau-on-the-Innon August 26th, 1806. A monument erected to
him on the
site of the executionwas one of the first public objects that
made an
impression on Hitler asa little boy.
Leo Schlageter's case was in many
respects parallel to that of Johannes
Palm. Schlageter was a German
theological student who volunteered for
service in 1914. He became an
artillery officer and won the Iron Cross of
both classes. When the French
occupied the Ruhr in 1923 Schlageter helped
to organize the passive
resistance on the German side. He and his
companions blew up a railway bridge
for the purpose of making the
transport of coal to France more difficult.
Those who took part in the affair were denounced to the French by a
German informer. Schlageter took the whole responsibility on his own
shoulders and was condemned to death, his companions being sentenced to
various terms of imprisonment and penal servitude by the French Court.
Schlageter refused to disclose the identity of those who issued the order
to
blow up the railway bridge and he would not plead for mercy before a
French
Court. He was shot by a French firing-squad on May 26th, 1923.
Severing was
at that time German Minister of the Interior. It is said
that representations
were made, to himon Schlageter's behalf and that he
refused to interfere.
Schlageter has become the chief martyr of the German resistancc to the
French occupation of the Ruhr and also one of the great heroes of the
National Socialist Movement. He had joined the Movement at a very early
stage, his card of membership bearing the number 61.]
In this little town
on the Inn, haloed by the memory of a German martyr,
a town that was Bavarian
by blood but under the rule of the Austrian
State, my parents were domiciled
towards the end of the last century. My
father was a civil servant who
fulfilled his duties very
conscientiously. My mother looked after the
household and lovingly
devoted herself to the care of her children. From that
period I have not
retained very much in my memory; because after a few years
my father had
to leave that frontier town which I had come to love so much
and take up
a new post farther down the Inn valley, at Passau, therefore
actually in
Germany itself.
In those days it was the usual lot of an
Austrian civil servant to be
transferred periodically from one post to
another. Not long after coming
to Passau my father was transferred to Linz,
and while there he retired
finally to live on his pension. But this did not
mean that the old
gentleman would now rest from his labours.
He was
the son of a poor cottager, and while still a boy he grew
restless and left
home. When he was barely thirteen years old he buckled
on his satchel and set
forth from his native woodland parish. Despite
the dissuasion of villagers
who could speak from 'experience,' he went
to Vienna to learn a trade there.
This was in the fiftieth year of the
last century. It was a sore trial, that
of deciding to leave home and
face the unknown, with three gulden in his
pocket. By when the boy of
thirteen was a lad of seventeen and had passed his
apprenticeship
examination as a craftsman he was not content. Quite the
contrary. The
persistent economic depression of that period and the constant
want and
misery strengthened his resolution to give up working at a trade and
strive for 'something higher.' As a boy it had seemed to him that the
position of the parish priest in his native village was the highest in
the
scale of human attainment; but now that the big city had enlarged
his outlook
the young man looked up to the dignity of a State official
as the highest of
all. With the tenacity of one whom misery and trouble
had already made old
when only half-way through his youth the young man
of seventeen obstinately
set out on his new project and stuck to it
until he won through. He became a
civil servant. He was about
twenty-three years old, I think, when he
succeeded in making himself
what he had resolved to become. Thus he was able
to fulfil the promise
he had made as a poor boy not to return to his native
village until he
was 'somebody.'
He had gained his end. But in the
village there was nobody who had
remembered him as a little boy, and the
village itself had become
strange to him.
Now at last, when he was
fifty-six years old, he gave up his active
career; but he could not bear to
be idle for a single day. On the
outskirts of the small market town of
Lambach in Upper Austria he bought
a farm and tilled it himself. Thus, at the
end of a long and
hard-working career, he came back to the life which his
father had led.
It was at this period that I first began to have ideals
of my own. I
spent a good deal of time scampering about in the open, on the
long road
from school, and mixing up with some of the roughest of the boys,
which
caused my mother many anxious moments. All this tended to make me
something quite the reverse of a stay-at-home. I gave scarcely any
serious
thought to the question of choosing a vocation in life; but I
was certainly
quite out of sympathy with the kind of career which my
father had followed. I
think that an inborn talent for speaking now
began to develop and take shape
during the more or less strenuous
arguments which I used to have with my
comrades. I had become a juvenile
ringleader who learned well and easily at
school but was rather
difficult to manage. In my freetime I practised singing
in the choir of
the monastery church at Lambach, and thus it happened that I
was placed
in a very favourable position to be emotionally impressed again
and
again by the magnificent splendour of ecclesiastical ceremonial. What
could be more natural for me than to look upon the Abbot as representing
the
highest human ideal worth striving for, just as the position of the
humble
village priest had appeared to my father in his own boyhood days?
At least,
that was my idea for a while. But the juvenile disputes I had
with my father
did not lead him to appreciate his son's oratorical gifts
in such a way as to
see in them a favourable promise for such a career,
and so he naturally could
not understand the boyish ideas I had in my
head at that time. This
contradiction in my character made him feel
somewhat anxious.
As a
matter of fact, that transitory yearning after such a vocation soon
gave way
to hopes that were better suited to my temperament. Browsing
through my
father's books, I chanced to come across some publications
that dealt with
military subjects. One of these publications was a
popular history of the
Franco-German War of 1870-71. It consisted of two
volumes of an illustrated
periodical dating from those years. These
became my favourite reading. In a
little while that great and heroic
conflict began to take first place in my
mind. And from that time
onwards I became more and more enthusiastic about
everything that was in
any way connected with war or military affairs.
But this story of the Franco-German War had a special significance for
me
on other grounds also. For the first time, and as yet only in quite a
vague
way, the question began to present itself: Is there a
difference--and if
there be, what is it--between the Germans who fought
that war and the other
Germans? Why did not Austria also take part in
it? Why did not my father and
all the others fight in that struggle? Are
we not the same as the other
Germans? Do we not all belong together?
That was the first time that this
problem began to agitate my small
brain. And from the replies that were given
to the questions which I
asked very tentatively, I was forced to accept the
fact, though with a
secret envy, that not all Germans had the good luck to
belong to
Bismarck's Empire. This was something that I could not understand.
It was decided that I should study. Considering my character as a whole,
and especially my temperament, my father decided that the classical
subjects
studied at the Lyceum were not suited to my natural talents. He
thought that
the REALSCHULE (Note 2) would suit me better. My obvious
talent for drawing
confirmed him in that view; for in his opinion drawing
was a subject too much
neglected in the Austrian GYMNASIUM. Probably also
the memory of the hard
road which he himself had travelled contributed to
make him look upon
classical studies as unpractical and accordingly to
set little value on them.
At the back of his mind he had the idea that
his son also should become an
official of the Government. Indeed he had
decided on that career for me. The
difficulties through which he had to
struggle in making his own career led
him to overestimate what he had
achieved, because this was exclusively the
result of his own
indefatigable industry and energy. The characteristic pride
of the
self-made man urged him towards the idea that his son should follow
the
same calling and if possible rise to a higher position in it. Moreover,
this idea was strengthened by the consideration that the results of his
own
life's industry had placed him in a position to facilitate his son's
advancement in the same career.
[Note 2. Non-classical secondary school.
The Lyceum and GYMNASIUM were
classical or semi-classical secondary schools.]
He was simply incapable of imagining that I might reject what had meant
everything in life to him. My father's decision was simple, definite,
clear
and, in his eyes, it was something to be taken for granted. A man
of such a
nature who had become an autocrat by reason of his own hard
struggle for
existence, could not think of allowing 'inexperienced' and
irresponsible
young fellows to choose their own careers. To act in such
a way, where the
future of his own son was concerned, would have been a
grave and
reprehensible weakness in the exercise of parental authority
and
responsibility, something utterly incompatible with his
characteristic sense
of duty.
And yet it had to be otherwise.
For the first time in my
life--I was then eleven years old--I felt
myself forced into open opposition.
No matter how hard and determined my
father might be about putting his own
plans and opinions into action,
his son was no less obstinate in refusing to
accept ideas on which he
set little or no value.
I would not become a
civil servant.
No amount of persuasion and no amount of 'grave' warnings
could break
down that opposition. I would not become a State official, not on
any
account. All the attempts which my father made to arouse in me a love or
liking for that profession, by picturing his own career for me, had only
the
opposite effect. It nauseated me to think that one day I might be
fettered to
an office stool, that I could not dispose of my own time but
would be forced
to spend the whole of my life filling out forms.
One can imagine what
kind of thoughts such a prospect awakened in the
mind of a young fellow who
was by no means what is called a 'good boy'
in the current sense of that
term. The ridiculously easy school tasks
which we were given made it possible
for me to spend far more time in
the open air than at home. To-day, when my
political opponents pry into
my life with diligent scrutiny, as far back as
the days of my boyhood,
so as finally to be able to prove what disreputable
tricks this Hitler
was accustomed to in his young days, I thank heaven that I
can look back
to those happy days and find the memory of them helpful. The
fields and
the woods were then the terrain on which all disputes were fought
out.
Even attendance at the REALSCHULE could not alter my way of spending
my
time. But I had now another battle to fight.
So long as the
paternal plan to make a State functionary contradicted my
own inclinations
only in the abstract, the conflict was easy to bear. I
could be discreet
about expressing my personal views and thus avoid
constantly recurrent
disputes. My own resolution not to become a
Government official was
sufficient for the time being to put my mind
completely at rest. I held on to
that resolution inexorably. But the
situation became more difficult once I
had a positive plan of my own
which I might present to my father as a
counter-suggestion. This
happened when I was twelve years old. How it came
about I cannot exactly
say now; but one day it became clear to me that I
would be a painter--I
mean an artist. That I had an aptitude for drawing was
an admitted fact.
It was even one of the reasons why my father had sent me to
the
REALSCHULE; but he had never thought of having that talent developed in
such a way that I could take up painting as a professional career. Quite
the
contrary. When, as a result of my renewed refusal to adopt his
favourite
plan, my father asked me for the first time what I myself
really wished to
be, the resolution that I had already formed expressed
itself almost
automatically. For a while my father was speechless. "A
painter? An
artist-painter?" he exclaimed.
He wondered whether I was in a sound state
of mind. He thought that he
might not have caught my words rightly, or that
he had misunderstood
what I meant. But when I had explained my ideas to him
and he saw how
seriously I took them, he opposed them with that full
determination
which was characteristic of him. His decision was exceedingly
simple and
could not be deflected from its course by any consideration of
what my
own natural qualifications really were.
"Artist! Not as long
as I live, never." As the son had inherited some of
the father's obstinacy,
besides having other qualities of his own, my
reply was equally energetic.
But it stated something quite the contrary.
At that our struggle became
stalemate. The father would not abandon his
'Never', and I became all the
more consolidated in my 'Nevertheless'.
Naturally the resulting situation
was not pleasant. The old gentleman
was bitterly annoyed; and indeed so was
I, although I really loved him.
My father forbade me to entertain any hopes
of taking up the art of
painting as a profession. I went a step further and
declared that I
would not study anything else. With such declarations the
situation
became still more strained, so that the old gentleman irrevocably
decided to assert his parental authority at all costs. That led me to
adopt
an attitude of circumspect silence, but I put my threat into
execution. I
thought that, once it became clear to my father that I was
making no progress
at the REALSCHULE, for weal or for woe, he would be
forced to allow me to
follow the happy career I had dreamed of.
I do not know whether I
calculated rightly or not. Certainly my failure
to make progress became quite
visible in the school. I studied just the
subjects that appealed to me,
especially those which I thought might be
of advantage to me later on as a
painter. What did not appear to have
any importance from this point of view,
or what did not otherwise appeal
to me favourably, I completely sabotaged. My
school reports of that time
were always in the extremes of good or bad,
according to the subject and
the interest it had for me. In one column my
qualification read 'very
good' or 'excellent'. In another it read 'average'
or even 'below
average'. By far my best subjects were geography and, even
more so,
general history. These were my two favourite subjects, and I led the
class in them.
When I look back over so many years and try to judge the
results of that
experience I find two very significant facts standing out
clearly before
my mind.
First, I became a nationalist.
Second,
I learned to understand and grasp the true meaning of history.
The old
Austria was a multi-national State. In those days at least the
citizens of
the German Empire, taken through and through, could not
understand what that
fact meant in the everyday life of the individuals
within such a State. After
the magnificent triumphant march of the
victorious armies in the
Franco-German War the Germans in the REICH
became steadily more and more
estranged from the Germans beyond their
frontiers, partly because they did
not deign to appreciate those other
Germans at their true value or simply
because they were incapable of
doing so.
The Germans of the REICH did
not realize that if the Germans in Austria
had not been of the best racial
stock they could never have given the
stamp of their own character to an
Empire of 52 millions, so definitely
that in Germany itself the idea
arose--though quite an erroneous
one--that Austria was a German State. That
was an error which led to
dire consequences; but all the same it was a
magnificent testimony to
the character of the ten million Germans in that
East Mark. (Note 3)
Only very few of the Germans in the REICH itself had an
idea of the bitter
struggle which those Eastern Germans had to carry on daily
for the
preservation of their German language, their German schools and their
German character. Only to-day, when a tragic fate has torn several
millions
of our kinsfolk away from the REICH and has forced them to live
under the
rule of the stranger, dreaming of that common fatherland
towards which all
their yearnings are directed and struggling to uphold
at least the sacred
right of using their mother tongue--only now have
the wider circles of the
German population come to realize what it means
to have to fight for the
traditions of one's race. And so at last
perhaps there are people here and
there who can assess the greatness of
that German spirit which animated the
old East Mark and enabled those
people, left entirely dependent on their own
resources, to defend the
Empire against the Orient for several centuries and
subsequently to hold
fast the frontiers of the German language through a
guerilla warfare of
attrition, at a time when the German Empire was
sedulously cultivating
an interest for colonies but not for its own flesh and
blood before the
threshold of its own door.
[Note 3. See Translator's Introduction.]
What has happened always
and everywhere, in every kind of struggle,
happened also in the language
fight which was carried on in the old
Austria. There were three groups--the
fighters, the hedgers and the
traitors. Even in the schools this sifting
already began to take place.
And it is worth noting that the struggle for the
language was waged
perhaps in its bitterest form around the school; because
this was the
nursery where the seeds had to be watered which were to spring
up and
form the future generation. The tactical objective of the fight was
the
winning over of the child, and it was to the child that the first
rallying cry was addressed:
"German youth, do not forget that you are a
German," and "Remember,
little girl, that one day you must be a German
mother."
Those who know something of the juvenile spirit can understand
how youth
will always lend a glad ear to such a rallying cry. Under many
forms the
young people led the struggle, fighting in their own way and with
their
own weapons. They refused to sing non-German songs. The greater the
efforts made to win them away from their German allegiance, the more
they
exalted the glory of their German heroes. They stinted themselves
in buying
things to eat, so that they might spare their pennies to help
the war chest
of their elders. They were incredibly alert in the
significance of what the
non-German teachers said and they contradicted
in unison. They wore the
forbidden emblems of their own kinsfolk and
were happy when penalised for
doing so, or even physically punished. In
miniature they were mirrors of
loyalty from which the older people might
learn a lesson.
And thus it
was that at a comparatively early age I took part in the
struggle which the
nationalities were waging against one another in the
old Austria. When
meetings were held for the South Mark German League
and the School League we
wore cornflowers and black-red-gold colours to
express our loyalty. We
greeted one another with HEIL! and instead of
the Austrian anthem we sang our
own DEUTSCHLAND ÜBER ALLES, despite
warnings and penalties. Thus the youth
were educated politically at a
time when the citizens of a so-called national
State for the most part
knew little of their own nationality except the
language. Of course, I
did not belong to the hedgers. Within a little while I
had become an
ardent 'German National', which has a different meaning from
the party
significance attached to that phrase to-day.
I developed
very rapidly in the nationalist direction, and by the time I
was 15 years old
I had come to understand the distinction between
dynastic patriotism and
nationalism based on the concept of folk, or
people, my inclination being
entirely in favour of the latter.
Such a preference may not perhaps be
clearly intelligible to those who
have never taken the trouble to study the
internal conditions that
prevailed under the Habsburg Monarchy.
Among
historical studies universal history was the subject almost
exclusively
taught in the Austrian schools, for of specific Austrian
history there was
only very little. The fate of this State was closely
bound up with the
existence and development of Germany as a whole; so a
division of history
into German history and Austrian history would be
practically inconceivable.
And indeed it was only when the German people
came to be divided between two
States that this division of German
history began to take place.
The
insignia (Note 4) of a former imperial sovereignty which were still
preserved
in Vienna appeared to act as magical relics rather than as the
visible
guarantee of an everlasting bond of union.
[Note 4. When Francis II had
laid down his title as Emperor of the Holy
Roman Empireof the German Nation,
which he did at the command of Napoleon,
the Crownand Mace, as the Imperial
Insignia, were kept in Vienna. After
the German Empire was refounded, in
1871, under William I, there were many
demands tohave the Insignia
transferred to Berlin. But these went
unheeded. Hitler had them brought to
Germany after the Austrian Anschluss
and displayed at Nuremberg during the
Party Congress in September 1938.]
When the Habsburg State crumbled to
pieces in 1918 the Austrian Germans
instinctively raised an outcry for union
with their German fatherland.
That was the voice of a unanimous yearning in
the hearts of the whole
people for a return to the unforgotten home of their
fathers. But such a
general yearning could not be explained except by
attributing the cause
of it to the historical training through which the
individual Austrian
Germans had passed. Therein lay a spring that never dried
up. Especially
in times of distraction and forgetfulness its quiet voice was
a reminder
of the past, bidding the people to look out beyond the mere
welfare of
the moment to a new future.
The teaching of universal
history in what are called the middle schools
is still very unsatisfactory.
Few teachers realize that the purpose of
teaching history is not the
memorizing of some dates and facts, that the
student is not interested in
knowing the exact date of a battle or the
birthday of some marshal or other,
and not at all--or at least only very
insignificantly--interested in knowing
when the crown of his fathers was
placed on the brow of some monarch. These
are certainly not looked upon
as important matters.
To study history
means to search for and discover the forces that are
the causes of those
results which appear before our eyes as historical
events. The art of reading
and studying consists in remembering the
essentials and forgetting what is
not essential.
Probably my whole future life was determined by the fact
that I had a
professor of history who understood, as few others understand,
how to
make this viewpoint prevail in teaching and in examining. This teacher
was Dr. Leopold Poetsch, of the REALSCHULE at Linz. He was the ideal
personification of the qualities necessary to a teacher of history in
the
sense I have mentioned above. An elderly gentleman with a decisive
manner but
a kindly heart, he was a very attractive speaker and was able
to inspire us
with his own enthusiasm. Even to-day I cannot recall
without emotion that
venerable personality whose enthusiastic exposition
of history so often made
us entirely forget the present and allow
ourselves to be transported as if by
magic into the past. He penetrated
through the dim mist of thousands of years
and transformed the
historical memory of the dead past into a living reality.
When we
listened to him we became afire with enthusiasm and we were sometimes
moved even to tears.
It was still more fortunate that this professor was
able not only to
illustrate the past by examples from the present but from
the past he
was also able to draw a lesson for the present. He understood
better
than any other the everyday problems that were then agitating our
minds.
The national fervour which we felt in our own small way was utilized
by
him as an instrument of our education, inasmuch as he often appealed to
our national sense of honour; for in that way he maintained order and
held
our attention much more easily than he could have done by any other
means. It
was because I had such a professor that history became my
favourite subject.
As a natural consequence, but without the conscious
connivance of my
professor, I then and there became a young rebel. But
who could have studied
German history under such a teacher and not
become an enemy of that State
whose rulers exercised such a disastrous
influence on the destinies of the
German nation? Finally, how could one
remain the faithful subject of the
House of Habsburg, whose past history
and present conduct proved it to be
ready ever and always to betray the
interests of the German people for the
sake of paltry personal
interests? Did not we as youngsters fully realize
that the House of
Habsburg did not, and could not, have any love for us
Germans?
What history taught us about the policy followed by the House of
Habsburg was corroborated by our own everyday experiences. In the north
and
in the south the poison of foreign races was eating into the body of
our
people, and even Vienna was steadily becoming more and more a
non-German
city. The 'Imperial House' favoured the Czechs on every
possible occasion.
Indeed it was the hand of the goddess of eternal
justice and inexorable
retribution that caused the most deadly enemy of
Germanism in Austria, the
Archduke Franz Ferdinand, to fall by the very
bullets which he himself had
helped to cast. Working from above
downwards, he was the chief patron of the
movement to make Austria a
Slav State.
The burdens laid on the
shoulders of the German people were enormous and
the sacrifices of money and
blood which they had to make were incredibly
heavy.
Yet anybody who
was not quite blind must have seen that it was all in
vain. What affected us
most bitterly was the consciousness of the fact
that this whole system was
morally shielded by the alliance with
Germany, whereby the slow extirpation
of Germanism in the old Austrian
Monarchy seemed in some way to be more or
less sanctioned by Germany
herself. Habsburg hypocrisy, which endeavoured
outwardly to make the
people believe that Austria still remained a German
State, increased the
feeling of hatred against the Imperial House and at the
same time
aroused a spirit of rebellion and contempt.
But in the
German Empire itself those who were then its rulers saw
nothing of what all
this meant. As if struck blind, they stood beside a
corpse and in the very
symptoms of decomposition they believed that they
recognized the signs of a
renewed vitality. In that unhappy alliance
between the young German Empire
and the illusory Austrian State lay the
germ of the World War and also of the
final collapse.
In the subsequent pages of this book I shall go to the
root of the
problem. Suffice it to say here that in the very early years of
my youth
I came to certain conclusions which I have never abandoned. Indeed I
became more profoundly convinced of them as the years passed. They were:
That
the dissolution of the Austrian Empire is a preliminary condition
for the
defence of Germany; further, that national feeling is by no
means identical
with dynastic patriotism; finally, and above all, that
the House of Habsburg
was destined to bring misfortune to the German
nation.
As a logical
consequence of these convictions, there arose in me a
feeling of intense love
for my German-Austrian home and a profound
hatred for the Austrian State.
That kind of historical thinking which was developed in me through my
study of history at school never left me afterwards. World history
became
more and more an inexhaustible source for the understanding of
contemporary
historical events, which means politics. Therefore I will
not "learn"
politics but let politics teach me.
A precocious revolutionary in
politics I was no less a precocious
revolutionary in art. At that time the
provincial capital of Upper
Austria had a theatre which, relatively speaking,
was not bad. Almost
everything was played there. When I was twelve years old
I saw William
Tell performed. That was my first experience of the theatre.
Some months
later I attended a performance of LOHENGRIN, the first opera I
had ever
heard. I was fascinated at once. My youthful enthusiasm for the
Bayreuth
Master knew no limits. Again and again I was drawn to hear his
operas;
and to-day I consider it a great piece of luck that these modest
productions in the little provincial city prepared the way and made it
possible for me to appreciate the better productions later on.
But all
this helped to intensify my profound aversion for the career
that my father
had chosen for me; and this dislike became especially
strong as the rough
corners of youthful boorishness became worn off, a
process which in my case
caused a good deal of pain. I became more and
more convinced that I should
never be happy as a State official. And now
that the REALSCHULE had
recognized and acknowledged my aptitude for
drawing, my own resolution became
all the stronger. Imprecations and
threats had no longer any chance of
changing it. I wanted to become a
painter and no power in the world could
force me to become a civil
servant. The only peculiar feature of the
situation now was that as I
grew bigger I became more and more interested in
architecture. I
considered this fact as a natural development of my flair for
painting
and I rejoiced inwardly that the sphere of my artistic interests was
thus enlarged. I had no notion that one day it would have to be
otherwise.
The question of my career was decided much sooner than I could have
expected.
When I was in my thirteenth year my father was suddenly taken
from us.
He was still in robust health when a stroke of apoplexy painlessly
ended
his earthly wanderings and left us all deeply bereaved. His most ardent
longing was to be able to help his son to advance in a career and thus
save
me from the harsh ordeal that he himself had to go through. But it
appeared
to him then as if that longing were all in vain. And yet,
though he himself
was not conscious of it, he had sown the seeds of a
future which neither of
us foresaw at that time.
At first nothing changed outwardly.
My
mother felt it her duty to continue my education in accordance with
my
father's wishes, which meant that she would have me study for the
civil
service. For my own part I was even more firmly determined than
ever before
that under no circumstances would I become an official of
the State. The
curriculum and teaching methods followed in the middle
school were so far
removed from my ideals that I became profoundly
indifferent. Illness suddenly
came to my assistance. Within a few weeks
it decided my future and put an end
to the long-standing family
conflict. My lungs became so seriously affected
that the doctor advised
my mother very strongly not under any circumstances
to allow me to take
up a career which would necessitate working in an office.
He ordered
that I should give up attendance at the REALSCHULE for a year at
least.
What I had secretly desired for such a long time, and had persistently
fought for, now became a reality almost at one stroke.
Influenced by my
illness, my mother agreed that I should leave the
REALSCHULE and attend the
Academy.
Those were happy days, which appeared to me almost as a dream;
but they
were bound to remain only a dream. Two years later my mother's death
put
a brutal end to all my fine projects. She succumbed to a long and
painful illness which from the very beginning permitted little hope of
recovery. Though expected, her death came as a terrible blow to me. I
respected my father, but I loved my mother.
Poverty and stern reality
forced me to decide promptly.
The meagre resources of the family had been
almost entirely used up
through my mother's severe illness. The allowance
which came to me as an
orphan was not enough for the bare necessities of
life. Somehow or other
I would have to earn my own bread.
With my
clothes and linen packed in a valise and with an indomitable
resolution in my
heart, I left for Vienna. I hoped to forestall fate, as
my father had done
fifty years before. I was determined to become
'something'--but certainly not
a civil servant.
CHAPTER II
YEARS OF STUDY AND
SUFFERING IN VIENNA
When my mother died my fate had already been
decided in one respect.
During the last months of her illness I went to
Vienna to take the
entrance examination for the Academy of Fine Arts. Armed
with a bulky
packet of sketches, I felt convinced that I should pass the
examination
quite easily. At the REALSCHULE I was by far the best student in
the
drawing class, and since that time I had made more than ordinary
progress in the practice of drawing. Therefore I was pleased with myself
and
was proud and happy at the prospect of what I considered an assured
success.
But there was one misgiving: It seemed to me that I was better qualified
for drawing than for painting, especially in the various branches of
architectural drawing. At the same time my interest in architecture was
constantly increasing. And I advanced in this direction at a still more
rapid
pace after my first visit to Vienna, which lasted two weeks. I was
not yet
sixteen years old. I went to the Hof Museum to study the
paintings in the art
gallery there; but the building itself captured
almost all my interest, from
early morning until late at night I spent
all my time visiting the various
public buildings. And it was the
buildings themselves that were always the
principal attraction for me.
For hours and hours I could stand in wonderment
before the Opera and the
Parliament. The whole Ring Strasse had a magic
effect upon me, as if it
were a scene from the Thousand-and-one-Nights.
And now I was here for the second time in this beautiful city,
impatiently waiting to hear the result of the entrance examination but
proudly confident that I had got through. I was so convinced of my
success
that when the news that I had failed to pass was brought to me
it struck me
like a bolt from the skies. Yet the fact was that I had
failed. I went to see
the Rector and asked him to explain the reasons
why they refused to accept me
as a student in the general School of
Painting, which was part of the
Academy. He said that the sketches which
I had brought with me unquestionably
showed that painting was not what I
was suited for but that the same sketches
gave clear indications of my
aptitude for architectural designing. Therefore
the School of Painting
did not come into question for me but rather the
School of Architecture,
which also formed part of the Academy. At first it
was impossible to
understand how this could be so, seeing that I had never
been to a
school for architecture and had never received any instruction in
architectural designing.
When I left the Hansen Palace, on the SCHILLER
PLATZ, I was quite
crestfallen. I felt out of sorts with myself for the first
time in my
young life. For what I had heard about my capabilities now
appeared to
me as a lightning flash which clearly revealed a dualism under
which I
had been suffering for a long time, but hitherto I could give no
clear
account whatsoever of the why and wherefore.
Within a few days I
myself also knew that I ought to become an
architect. But of course the way
was very difficult. I was now forced
bitterly to rue my former conduct in
neglecting and despising certain
subjects at the REALSCHULE. Before taking up
the courses at the School
of Architecture in the Academy it was necessary to
attend the Technical
Building School; but a necessary qualification for
entrance into this
school was a Leaving Certificate from the Middle School.
And this I
simply did not have. According to the human measure of things my
dream
of following an artistic calling seemed beyond the limits of
possibility.
After the death of my mother I came to Vienna for the third
time. This
visit was destined to last several years. Since I had been there
before
I had recovered my old calm and resoluteness. The former
self-assurance
had come back, and I had my eyes steadily fixed on the goal. I
would be
an architect. Obstacles are placed across our path in life, not to
be
boggled at but to be surmounted. And I was fully determined to surmount
these obstacles, having the picture of my father constantly before my
mind,
who had raised himself by his own efforts to the position of a
civil servant
though he was the poor son of a village shoemaker. I had a
better start, and
the possibilities of struggling through were better.
At that time my lot in
life seemed to me a harsh one; but to-day I see
in it the wise workings of
Providence. The Goddess of Fate clutched me
in her hands and often threatened
to smash me; but the will grew
stronger as the obstacles increased, and
finally the will triumphed.
I am thankful for that period of my life,
because it hardened me and
enabled me to be as tough as I now am. And I am
even more thankful
because I appreciate the fact that I was thus saved from
the emptiness
of a life of ease and that a mother's darling was taken from
tender arms
and handed over to Adversity as to a new mother. Though I then
rebelled
against it as too hard a fate, I am grateful that I was thrown into
a
world of misery and poverty and thus came to know the people for whom I
was afterwards to fight.
It was during this period that my eyes were
opened to two perils, the
names of which I scarcely knew hitherto and had no
notion whatsoever of
their terrible significance for the existence of the
German people.
These two perils were Marxism and Judaism.
For many
people the name of Vienna signifies innocent jollity, a festive
place for
happy mortals. For me, alas, it is a living memory of the
saddest period in
my life. Even to-day the mention of that city arouses
only gloomy thoughts in
my mind. Five years of poverty in that Phaecian
(Note 5) town. Five years in
which, first as a casual labourer and then as
a painter of little trifles, I
had to earn my daily bread. And a meagre
morsel indeed it was, not even
sufficient to still the hunger which I
constantly felt. That hunger was the
faithful guardian which never left
me but took part in everything I did.
Every book that I bought meant
renewed hunger, and every visit I paid to the
opera meant the intrusion
of that inalienabl companion during the following
days. I was always
struggling with my unsympathic friend. And yet during that
time I
learned more than I had ever learned before. Outside my architectural
studies and rare visits to the opera, for which I had to deny myself
food, I
had no other pleasure in life except my books.
[Note 5. The Phaecians
were a legendary people, mentioned in Homer's
Odyssey. They were supposed to
live on some unknown island in the Eastern
Mediterranean, sometimes suggested
to be Corcyra, the modern Corfu. They
loved good living more than work, and
so the name Phaecian has come to be
a synonym for parasite.]
I read a
great deal then, and I pondered deeply over what I read. All
the free time
after work was devoted exclusively to study. Thus within a
few years I was
able to acquire a stock of knowledge which I find useful
even to-day.
But more than that. During those years a view of life and a definite
outlook
on the world took shape in my mind. These became the granite
basis of my
conduct at that time. Since then I have extended that
foundation only very
little, and I have changed nothing in it.
On the contrary: I am firmly
convinced to-day that, generally speaking,
it is in youth that men lay the
essential groundwork of their creative
thought, wherever that creative
thought exists. I make a distinction
between the wisdom of age--which can
only arise from the greater
profundity and foresight that are based on the
experiences of a long
life--and the creative genius of youth, which blossoms
out in thought
and ideas with inexhaustible fertility, without being able to
put these
into practice immediately, because of their very superabundance.
These
furnish the building materials and plans for the future; and it is from
them that age takes the stones and builds the edifice, unless the
so-called
wisdom of the years may have smothered the creative genius of
youth.
The life which I had hitherto led at home with my parents differed in
little
or nothing from that of all the others. I looked forward without
apprehension
to the morrow, and there was no such thing as a social
problem to be faced.
Those among whom I passed my young days belonged to
the small bourgeois
class. Therefore it was a world that had very little
contact with the world
of genuine manual labourers. For, though at first
this may appear
astonishing, the ditch which separates that class, which
is by no means
economically well-off; from the manual labouring class is
often deeper than
people think. The reason for this division, which we
may almost call enmity,
lies in the fear that dominates a social group
which has only just risen
above the level of the manual labourer--a fear
lest it may fall back into its
old condition or at least be classed with
the labourers. Moreover, there is
something repulsive in remembering the
cultural indigence of that lower class
and their rough manners with one
another; so that people who are only on the
first rung of the social
ladder find it unbearable to be forced to have any
contact with the
cultural level and standard of living out of which they have
passed.
And so it happens that very often those who belong to what can
really be
called the upper classes find it much easier than do the upstarts
to
descend to and intermingle with their fellow beings on the lowest social
level. For by the word upstart I mean everyone who has raised himself
through
his own efforts to a social level higher than that to which he
formerly
belonged. In the case of such a person the hard struggle
through which he
passes often destroys his normal human sympathy. His
own fight for existence
kills his sensibility for the misery of those
who have been left behind.
From this point of view fate had been kind to me. Circumstances forced
me
to return to that world of poverty and economic insecurity above
which my
father had raised himself in his early days; and thus the
blinkers of a
narrow PETIT BOURGEOIS education were torn from my eyes.
Now for the first
time I learned to know men and I learned to
distinguish between empty
appearances or brutal manners and the real
inner nature of the people who
outwardly appeared thus.
At the beginning of the century Vienna had
already taken rank among
those cities where social conditions are iniquitous.
Dazzling riches and
loathsome destitution were intermingled in violent
contrast. In the
centre and in the Inner City one felt the pulse-beat of an
Empire which
had a population of fifty-two millions, with all the perilous
charm of a
State made up of multiple nationalities. The dazzling splendour of
the
Court acted like a magnet on the wealth and intelligence of the whole
Empire. And this attraction was further strengthened by the dynastic
policy
of the Habsburg Monarchy in centralizing everything in itself and
for itself.
This centralizing policy was necessary in order to hold together that
hotchpotch of heterogeneous nationalities. But the result of it was an
extraordinary concentration of higher officials in the city, which was
at one
and the same time the metropolis and imperial residence.
But Vienna was
not merely the political and intellectual centre of the
Danubian Monarchy; it
was also the commercial centre. Besides the horde
of military officers of
high rank, State officials, artists and
scientists, there was the still
vaster horde of workers. Abject poverty
confronted the wealth of the
aristocracy and the merchant class face to
face. Thousands of unemployed
loitered in front of the palaces on the
Ring Strasse; and below that VIA
TRIUMPHALIS of the old Austria the
homeless huddled together in the murk and
filth of the canals.
There was hardly any other German city in which the
social problem could
be studied better than in Vienna. But here I must utter
a warning
against the illusion that this problem can be 'studied' from above
downwards. The man who has never been in the clutches of that crushing
viper
can never know what its poison is. An attempt to study it in any
other way
will result only in superficial talk and sentimental
delusions. Both are
harmful. The first because it can never go to the
root of the question, the
second because it evades the question
entirely. I do not know which is the
more nefarious: to ignore social
distress, as do the majority of those who
have been favoured by fortune
and those who have risen in the social scale
through their own routine
labour, or the equally supercilious and often
tactless but always
genteel condescension displayed by people who make a fad
of being
charitable and who plume themselves on 'sympathising with the
people.'
Of course such persons sin more than they can imagine from lack of
instinctive understanding. And thus they are astonished to find that the
'social conscience' on which they pride themselves never produces any
results, but often causes their good intentions to be resented; and then
they
talk of the ingratitude of the people.
Such persons are slow to learn
that here there is no place for merely
social activities and that there can
be no expectation of gratitude; for
in this connection there is no question
at all of distributing favours
but essentially a matter of retributive
justice. I was protected against
the temptation to study the social question
in the way just mentioned,
for the simple reason that I was forced to live in
the midst of
poverty-stricken people. Therefore it was not a question of
studying the
problem objectively, but rather one of testing its effects on
myself.
Though the rabbit came through the ordeal of the experiment, this
must
not be taken as evidence of its harmlessness.
When I try to-day
to recall the succession of impressions received
during that time I find that
I can do so only with approximate
completeness. Here I shall describe only
the more essential impressions
and those which personally affected me and
often staggered me. And I
shall mention the few lessons I then learned from
this experience.
At that time it was for the most part not very difficult
to find work,
because I had to seek work not as a skilled tradesman but as a
so-called
extra-hand ready to take any job that turned up by chance, just for
the
sake of earning my daily bread.
Thus I found myself in the same
situation as all those emigrants who
shake the dust of Europe from their
feet, with the cast-iron
determination to lay the foundations of a new
existence in the New World
and acquire for themselves a new home. Liberated
from all the paralysing
prejudices of class and calling, environment and
tradition, they enter
any service that opens its doors to them, accepting any
work that comes
their way, filled more and more with the idea that honest
work never
disgraced anybody, no matter what kind it may be. And so I was
resolved
to set both feet in what was for me a new world and push forward on
my
own road.
I soon found out that there was some kind of work always
to be got, but
I also learned that it could just as quickly and easily be
lost. The
uncertainty of being able to earn a regular daily livelihood soon
appeared to me as the gloomiest feature in this new life that I had
entered.
Although the skilled worker was not so frequently thrown idle on the
streets as the unskilled worker, yet the former was by no means
protected
against the same fate; because though he may not have to face
hunger as a
result of unemployment due to the lack of demand in the
labour market, the
lock-out and the strike deprived the skilled worker
of the chance to earn his
bread. Here the element of uncertainty in
steadily earning one's daily bread
was the bitterest feature of the
whole social-economic system itself.
The country lad who migrates to the big city feels attracted by what has
been
described as easy work--which it may be in reality--and few working
hours. He
is especially entranced by the magic glimmer spread over the
big cities.
Accustomed in the country to earn a steady wage, he has been
taught not to
quit his former post until a new one is at least in sight.
As there is a
great scarcity of agricultural labour, the probability of
long unemployment
in the country has been very small. It is a mistake to
presume that the lad
who leaves the countryside for the town is not made
of such sound material as
those who remain at home to work on the land.
On the contrary, experience
shows that it is the more healthy and more
vigorous that emigrate, and not
the reverse. Among these emigrants I
include not merely those who emigrate to
America, but also the servant
boy in the country who decides to leave his
native village and migrate
to the big city where he will be a stranger. He is
ready to take the
risk of an uncertain fate. In most cases he comes to town
with a little
money in his pocket and for the first few days he is not
discouraged if
he should not have the good fortune to find work. But if he
finds a job
and then loses it in a little while, the case is much worse. To
find
work anew, especially in winter, is often difficult and indeed sometimes
impossible. For the first few weeks life is still bearable He receives
his
out-of-work money from his trade union and is thus enabled to carry
on. But
when the last of his own money is gone and his trade union
ceases to pay out
because of the prolonged unemployment, then comes the
real distress. He now
loiters about and is hungry. Often he pawns or
sells the last of his
belongings. His clothes begin to get shabby and
with the increasing poverty
of his outward appearance he descends to a
lower social level and mixes up
with a class of human beings through
whom his mind is now poisoned, in
addition to his physical misery. Then
he has nowhere to sleep and if that
happens in winter, which is very
often the case, he is in dire distress.
Finally he gets work. But the
old story repeats itself. A second time the
same thing happens. Then a
third time; and now it is probably much worse.
Little by little he
becomes indifferent to this everlasting insecurity.
Finally he grows
used to the repetition. Thus even a man who is normally of
industrious
habits grows careless in his whole attitude towards life and
gradually
becomes an instrument in the hands of unscrupulous people who
exploit
him for the sake of their own ignoble aims. He has been so often
thrown
out of employment through no fault of his own that he is now more or
less indifferent whether the strike in which he takes part be for the
purpose
of securing his economic rights or be aimed at the destruction
of the State,
the whole social order and even civilization itself.
Though the idea of going
on strike may not be to his natural liking, yet
he joins in it out of sheer
indifference.
I saw this process exemplified before my eyes in thousands
of cases. And
the longer I observed it the greater became my dislike for that
mammoth
city which greedily attracts men to its bosom, in order to break them
mercilessly in the end. When they came they still felt themselves in
communion with their own people at home; if they remained that tie was
broken.
I was thrown about so much in the life of the metropolis that I
experienced the workings of this fate in my own person and felt the
effects
of it in my own soul. One thing stood out clearly before my
eyes: It was the
sudden changes from work to idleness and vice versa; so
that the constant
fluctuations thus caused by earnings and expenditure
finally destroyed the
'sense of thrift for many people and also the
habit of regulating expenditure
in an intelligent way. The body appeared
to grow accustomed to the
vicissitudes of food and hunger, eating
heartily in good times and going
hungry in bad. Indeed hunger shatters
all plans for rationing expenditure on
a regular scale in better times
when employment is again found. The reason
for this is that the
deprivations which the unemployed worker has to endure
must be
compensated for psychologically by a persistent mental mirage in
which
he imagines himself eating heartily once again. And this dream develops
into such a longing that it turns into a morbid impulse to cast off all
self-restraint when work and wages turn up again. Therefore the moment
work
is found anew he forgets to regulate the expenditure of his
earnings but
spends them to the full without thinking of to-morrow. This
leads to
confusion in the little weekly housekeeping budget, because the
expenditure
is not rationally planned. When the phenomenon which I have
mentioned first
happens, the earnings will last perhaps for five days
instead of seven; on
subsequent occasions they will last only for three
days; as the habit recurs,
the earnings will last scarcely for a day;
and finally they will disappear in
one night of feasting.
Often there are wife and children at home. And in
many cases it happens
that these become infected by such a way of living,
especially if the
husband is good to them and wants to do the best he can for
them and
loves them in his own way and according to his own lights. Then the
week's earnings are spent in common at home within two or three days.
The
family eat and drink together as long as the money lasts and at the
end of
the week they hunger together. Then the wife wanders about
furtively in the
neighbourhood, borrows a little, and runs up small
debts with the shopkeepers
in an effort to pull through the lean days
towards the end of the week. They
sit down together to the midday meal
with only meagre fare on the table, and
often even nothing to eat. They
wait for the coming payday, talking of it and
making plans; and while
they are thus hungry they dream of the plenty that is
to come. And so
the little children become acquainted with misery in their
early years.
But the evil culminates when the husband goes his own way
from the
beginning of the week and the wife protests, simply out of love for
the
children. Then there are quarrels and bad feeling and the husband takes
to drink according as he becomes estranged from his wife. He now becomes
drunk every Saturday. Fighting for her own existence and that of the
children, the wife has to hound him along the road from the factory to
the
tavern in order to get a few shillings from him on payday. Then when
he
finally comes home, maybe on the Sunday or the Monday, having parted
with his
last shillings and pence, pitiable scenes follow, scenes that
cry out for
God's mercy.
I have had actual experience of all this in hundreds of
cases. At first
I was disgusted and indignant; but later on I came to
recognize the
whole tragedy of their misfortune and to understand the
profound causes
of it. They were the unhappy victims of evil circumstances.
Housing conditions were very bad at that time. The Vienna manual
labourers lived in surroundings of appalling misery. I shudder even
to-day
when I think of the woeful dens in which people dwelt, the night
shelters and
the slums, and all the tenebrous spectacles of ordure,
loathsome filth and
wickedness.
What will happen one day when hordes of emancipated slaves
come forth
from these dens of misery to swoop down on their unsuspecting
fellow
men? For this other world does not think about such a possibility.
They
have allowed these things to go on without caring and even without
suspecting--in their total lack of instinctive understanding--that
sooner or
later destiny will take its vengeance unless it will have been
appeased in
time.
To-day I fervidly thank Providence for having sent me to such a
school.
There I could not refuse to take an interest in matters that did not
please me. This school soon taught me a profound lesson.
In order not to
despair completely of the people among whom I then lived
I had to set on one
side the outward appearances of their lives and on
the other the reasons why
they had developed in that way. Then I could
hear everything without
discouragement; for those who emerged from all
this misfortune and misery,
from this filth and outward degradation,
were not human beings as such but
rather lamentable results of
lamentable laws. In my own life similar
hardships prevented me from
giving way to a pitying sentimentality at the
sight of these degraded
products which had finally resulted from the pressure
of circumstances.
No, the sentimental attitude would be the wrong one to
adopt.
Even in those days I already saw that there was a two-fold method
by
which alone it would be possible to bring about an amelioration of these
conditions. This method is: first, to create better fundamental
conditions of
social development by establishing a profound feeling for
social
responsibilities among the public; second, to combine this
feeling for social
responsibilities with a ruthless determination to
prune away all excrescences
which are incapable of being improved.
Just as Nature concentrates its
greatest attention, not to the
maintenance of what already exists but on the
selective breeding of
offspring in order to carry on the species, so in human
life also it is
less a matter of artificially improving the existing
generation--which,
owing to human characteristics, is impossible in
ninety-nine cases out
of a hundred--and more a matter of securing from the
very start a better
road for future development.
During my struggle
for existence in Vienna I perceived very clearly that
the aim of all social
activity must never be merely charitable relief,
which is ridiculous and
useless, but it must rather be a means to find a
way of eliminating the
fundamental deficiencies in our economic and
cultural life--deficiencies
which necessarily bring about the
degradation of the individual or at least
lead him towards such
degradation. The difficulty of employing every means,
even the most
drastic, to eradicate the hostility prevailing among the
working classes
towards the State is largely due to an attitude of
uncertainty in
deciding upon the inner motives and causes of this
contemporary
phenomenon. The grounds of this uncertainty are to be found
exclusively
in the sense of guilt which each individual feels for having
permitted
this tragedy of degradation. For that feeling paralyses every
effort at
making a serious and firm decision to act. And thus because the
people
whom it concerns are vacillating they are timid and half-hearted in
putting into effect even the measures which are indispensable for
self-preservation. When the individual is no longer burdened with his
own
consciousness of blame in this regard, then and only then will he
have that
inner tranquillity and outer force to cut off drastically and
ruthlessly all
the parasite growth and root out the weeds.
But because the Austrian
State had almost no sense of social rights or
social legislation its
inability to abolish those evil excrescences was
manifest.
I do not
know what it was that appalled me most at that time: the
economic misery of
those who were then my companions, their crude
customs and morals, or the low
level of their intellectual culture.
How often our bourgeoisie rises up
in moral indignation on hearing from
the mouth of some pitiable tramp that it
is all the same to him whether
he be a German or not and that he will find
himself at home wherever he
can get enough to keep body and soul together.
They protest sternly
against such a lack of 'national pride' and strongly
express their
horror at such sentiments.
But how many people really
ask themselves why it is that their own
sentiments are better? How many of
them understand that their natural
pride in being members of so favoured a
nation arises from the
innumerable succession of instances they have
encountered which remind
them of the greatness of the Fatherland and the
Nation in all spheres of
artistic and cultural life? How many of them realize
that pride in the
Fatherland is largely dependent on knowledge of its
greatness in all
those spheres? Do our bourgeois circles ever think what a
ridiculously
meagre share the people have in that knowledge which is a
necessary
prerequisite for the feeling of pride in one's fatherland?
It cannot be objected here that in other countries similar conditions
exist
and that nevertheless the working classes in those countries have
remained
patriotic. Even if that were so, it would be no excuse for our
negligent
attitude. But it is not so. What we call chauvinistic
education--in the case
of the French people, for example--is only the
excessive exaltation of the
greatness of France in all spheres of
culture or, as the French say,
civilization. The French boy is not
educated on purely objective principles.
Wherever the importance of the
political and cultural greatness of his
country is concerned he is
taught in the most subjective way that one can
imagine.
This education will always have to be confined to general ideas
in a
large perspective and these ought to be deeply engraven, by constant
repetition if necessary, on the memories and feelings of the people.
In
our case, however, we are not merely guilty of negative sins of
omission but
also of positively perverting the little which some
individuals had the luck
to learn at school. The rats that poison our
body-politic gnaw from the
hearts and memories of the broad masses even
that little which distress and
misery have left.
Let the reader try to picture the following:
There is a lodging in a cellar and this lodging consists of two damp
rooms.
In these rooms a workman and his family live--seven people in
all. Let us
assume that one of the children is a boy of three years.
That is the age at
which children first become conscious of the
impressions which they receive.
In the case of highly gifted people
traces of the impressions received in
those early years last in the
memory up to an advanced age. Now the
narrowness and congestion of those
living quarters do not conduce to pleasant
inter-relations. Thus
quarrels and fits of mutual anger arise. These people
can hardly be said
to live with one another, but rather down on top of one
another. The
small misunderstandings which disappear of themselves in a home
where
there is enough space for people to go apart from one another for a
while, here become the source of chronic disputes. As far as the
children are
concerned the situation is tolerable from this point of
view. In such
conditions they are constantly quarrelling with one
another, but the quarrels
are quickly and entirely forgotten. But when
the parents fall out with one
another these daily bickerings often
descend to rudeness such as cannot be
adequately imagined. The results
of such experiences must become apparent
later on in the children. One
must have practical experience of such a MILIEU
so as to be able to
picture the state of affairs that arises from these
mutual
recriminations when the father physically assaults the mother and
maltreats her in a fit of drunken rage. At the age of six the child can
no
longer ignore those sordid details which even an adult would find
revolting.
Infected with moral poison, bodily undernourished, and the
poor little head
filled with vermin, the young 'citizen' goes to the
primary school. With
difficulty he barely learns to read and write.
There is no possibility of
learning any lessons at home. Quite the
contrary. The father and mother
themselves talk before the children in
the most disparaging way about the
teacher and the school and they are
much more inclined to insult the teachers
than to put their offspring
across the knee and knock sound reason into him.
What the little fellow
hears at home does not tend to increase respect for
his human
surroundings. Here nothing good is said of human nature as a whole
and
every institution, from the school to the government, is reviled.
Whether religion and morals are concerned or the State and the social
order,
it is all the same; they are all scoffed at. When the young lad
leaves
school, at the age of fourteen, it would be difficult to say what
are the
most striking features of his character, incredible ignorance in
so far as
real knowledge is concerned or cynical impudence combined with
an attitude
towards morality which is really startling at so young an
age.
What
station in life can such a person fill, to whom nothing is sacred,
who has
never experienced anything noble but, on the contrary, has been
intimately
acquainted with the lowest kind of human existence? This
child of three has
got into the habit of reviling all authority by the
time he is fifteen. He
has been acquainted only with moral filth and
vileness, everything being
excluded that might stimulate his thought
towards higher things. And now this
young specimen of humanity enters
the school of life.
He leads the
same kind of life which was exemplified for him by his
father during his
childhood. He loiters about and comes home at all
hours. He now even
black-guards that broken-hearted being who gave him
birth. He curses God and
the world and finally ends up in a House of
Correction for young people.
There he gets the final polish.
And his bourgeois contemporaries are
astonished at the lack of
'patriotic enthusiasm' which this young 'citizen'
manifests.
Day after day the bourgeois world are witnesses to the
phenomenon of
spreading poison among the people through the instrumentality
of the
theatre and the cinema, gutter journalism and obscene books; and yet
they are astonished at the deplorable 'moral standards' and 'national
indifference' of the masses. As if the cinema bilge and the gutter press
and
suchlike could inculcate knowledge of the greatness of one's
country, apart
entirely from the earlier education of the individual.
I then came to
understand, quickly and thoroughly, what I had never been
aware of before. It
was the following:
The question of 'nationalizing' a people is first and
foremost one of
establishing healthy social conditions which will furnish the
grounds
that are necessary for the education of the individual. For only when
family upbringing and school education have inculcated in the individual
a
knowledge of the cultural and economic and, above all, the political
greatness of his own country--then, and then only, will it be possible
for
him to feel proud of being a citizen of such a country. I can fight
only for
something that I love. I can love only what I respect. And in
order to
respect a thing I must at least have some knowledge of it.
As soon as my
interest in social questions was once awakened I began to
study them in a
fundamental way. A new and hitherto unknown world was
thus revealed to me.
In the years 1909-10 I had so far improved my, position that I no longer
had to earn my daily bread as a manual labourer. I was now working
independently as draughtsman, and painter in water colours. This MÉTIER
was a
poor one indeed as far as earnings were concerned; for these were
only
sufficient to meet the bare exigencies of life. Yet it had an
interest for me
in view of the profession to which I aspired. Moreover,
when I came home in
the evenings I was now no longer dead-tired as
formerly, when I used to be
unable to look into a book without falling
asleep almost immediately. My
present occupation therefore was in line
with the profession I aimed at for
the future. Moreover, I was master of
my own time and could distribute my
working-hours now better than
formerly. I painted in order to earn my bread,
and I studied because I
liked it.
Thus I was able to acquire that
theoretical knowledge of the social
problem which was a necessary complement
to what I was learning through
actual experience. I studied all the books
which I could find that dealt
with this question and I thought deeply on what
I read. I think that the
MILIEU in which I then lived considered me an
eccentric person.
Besides my interest in the social question I naturally
devoted myself
with enthusiasm to the study of architecture. Side by side
with music, I
considered it queen of the arts. To study it was for me not
work but
pleasure. I could read or draw until the small hours of the morning
without ever getting tired. And I became more and more confident that my
dream of a brilliant future would become true, even though I should have
to
wait long years for its fulfilment. I was firmly convinced that one
day I
should make a name for myself as an architect.
The fact that, side by
side with my professional studies, I took the
greatest interest in everything
that had to do with politics did not
seem to me to signify anything of great
importance. On the contrary: I
looked upon this practical interest in
politics merely as part of an
elementary obligation that devolves on every
thinking man. Those who
have no understanding of the political world around
them have no right
to criticize or complain. On political questions therefore
I still
continued to read and study a great deal. But reading had probably a
different significance for me from that which it has for the average run
of
our so-called 'intellectuals'.
I know people who read interminably, book
after book, from page to page,
and yet I should not call them 'well-read
people'. Of course they 'know'
an immense amount; but their brain seems
incapable of assorting and
classifying the material which they have gathered
from books. They have
not the faculty of distinguishing between what is
useful and useless in
a book; so that they may retain the former in their
minds and if
possible skip over the latter while reading it, if that be not
possible,
then--when once read--throw it overboard as useless ballast.
Reading is
not an end in itself, but a means to an end. Its chief purpose is
to
help towards filling in the framework which is made up of the talents
and capabilities that each individual possesses. Thus each one procures
for
himself the implements and materials necessary for the fulfilment of
his
calling in life, no matter whether this be the elementary task of
earning
one's daily bread or a calling that responds to higher human
aspirations.
Such is the first purpose of reading. And the second
purpose is to give a
general knowledge of the world in which we live. In
both cases, however, the
material which one has acquired through reading
must not be stored up in the
memory on a plan that corresponds to the
successive chapters of the book; but
each little piece of knowledge thus
gained must be treated as if it were a
little stone to be inserted into
a mosaic, so that it finds its proper place
among all the other pieces
and particles that help to form a general
world-picture in the brain of
the reader. Otherwise only a confused jumble of
chaotic notions will
result from all this reading. That jumble is not merely
useless, but it
also tends to make the unfortunate possessor of it conceited.
For he
seriously considers himself a well-educated person and thinks that he
understands something of life. He believes that he has acquired
knowledge,
whereas the truth is that every increase in such 'knowledge'
draws him more
and more away from real life, until he finally ends up in
some sanatorium or
takes to politics and becomes a parliamentary deputy.
Such a person never
succeeds in turning his knowledge to practical
account when the opportune
moment arrives; for his mental equipment is
not ordered with a view to
meeting the demands of everyday life. His
knowledge is stored in his brain as
a literal transcript of the books he
has read and the order of succession in
which he has read them. And if
Fate should one day call upon him to use some
of his book-knowledge for
certain practical ends in life that very call will
have to name the book
and give the number of the page; for the poor noodle
himself would never
be able to find the spot where he gathered the
information now called
for. But if the page is not mentioned at the critical
moment the
widely-read intellectual will find himself in a state of hopeless
embarrassment. In a high state of agitation he searches for analogous
cases
and it is almost a dead certainty that he will finally deliver the
wrong
prescription.
If that is not a correct description, then how can we
explain the
political achievements of our Parliamentary heroes who hold the
highest
positions in the government of the country? Otherwise we should have
to
attribute the doings of such political leaders, not to pathological
conditions but simply to malice and chicanery.
On the other hand, one who
has cultivated the art of reading will
instantly discern, in a book or
journal or pamphlet, what ought to be
remembered because it meets one's
personal needs or is of value as
general knowledge. What he thus learns is
incorporated in his mental
analogue of this or that problem or thing, further
correcting the mental
picture or enlarging it so that it becomes more exact
and precise.
Should some practical problem suddenly demand examination or
solution,
memory will immediately select the opportune information from the
mass
that has been acquired through years of reading and will place this
information at the service of one's powers of judgment so as to get a
new and
clearer view of the problem in question or produce a definitive
solution.
Only thus can reading have any meaning or be worth while.
The
speaker, for example, who has not the sources of information ready
to hand
which are necessary to a proper treatment of his subject is
unable to defend
his opinions against an opponent, even though those
opinions be perfectly
sound and true. In every discussion his memory
will leave him shamefully in
the lurch. He cannot summon up arguments to
support his statements or to
refute his opponent. So long as the speaker
has only to defend himself on his
own personal account, the situation is
not serious; but the evil comes when
Chance places at the head of public
affairs such a soi-disant know-it-all,
who in reality knows nothing.
From early youth I endeavoured to read
books in the right way and I was
fortunate in having a good memory and
intelligence to assist me. From
that point of view my sojourn in Vienna was
particularly useful and
profitable. My experiences of everyday life there
were a constant
stimulus to study the most diverse problems from new angles.
Inasmuch as
I was in a position to put theory to the test of reality and
reality to
the test of theory, I was safe from the danger of pedantic
theorizing on
the one hand and, on the other, from being too impressed by the
superficial aspects of reality.
The experience of everyday life at that
time determined me to make a
fundamental theoretical study of two most
important questions outside of
the social question.
It is impossible
to say when I might have started to make a thorough
study of the doctrine and
characteristics of Marxism were it not for the
fact that I then literally ran
head foremost into the problem.
What I knew of Social Democracy in my
youth was precious little and that
little was for the most part wrong. The
fact that it led the struggle
for universal suffrage and the secret ballot
gave me an inner
satisfaction; for my reason then told me that this would
weaken the
Habsburg regime, which I so thoroughly detested. I was convinced
that
even if it should sacrifice the German element the Danubian State could
not continue to exist. Even at the price of a long and slow Slaviz-ation
of
the Austrian Germans the State would secure no guarantee of a really
durable
Empire; because it was very questionable if and how far the
Slavs possessed
the necessary capacity for constructive politics.
Therefore I welcomed every
movement that might lead towards the final
disruption of that impossible
State which had decreed that it would
stamp out the German character in ten
millions of people. The more this
babel of tongues wrought discord and
disruption, even in the Parliament,
the nearer the hour approached for the
dissolution of this Babylonian
Empire. That would mean the liberation of my
German Austrian people, and
only then would it become possible for them to be
re-united to the
Motherland.
Accordingly I had no feelings of
antipathy towards the actual policy of
the Social Democrats. That its avowed
purpose was to raise the level of
the working classes--which in my ignorance
I then foolishly
believed--was a further reason why I should speak in favour
of Social
Democracy rather than against it. But the features that contributed
most
to estrange me from the Social Democratic movement was its hostile
attitude towards the struggle for the conservation of Germanism in
Austria,
its lamentable cocotting with the Slav 'comrades', who received
these
approaches favourably as long as any practical advantages were
forthcoming
but otherwise maintained a haughty reserve, thus giving the
importunate
mendicants the sort of answer their behaviour deserved.
And so at the age
of seventeen the word 'Marxism' was very little known
to me, while I looked
on 'Social Democracy' and 'Socialism' as
synonymous expressions. It was only
as the result of a sudden blow from
the rough hand of Fate that my eyes were
opened to the nature of this
unparalleled system for duping the public.
Hitherto my acquaintance with the Social Democratic Party was only that
of a mere spectator at some of their mass meetings. I had not the
slightest
idea of the social-democratic teaching or the mentality of its
partisans. All
of a sudden I was brought face to face with the products
of their teaching
and what they called their WELTANSCHAUUNG. In this
way a few months sufficed
for me to learn something which under other
circumstances might have
necessitated decades of study--namely, that
under the cloak of social virtue
and love of one's neighbour a veritable
pestilence was spreading abroad and
that if this pestilence be not
stamped out of the world without delay it may
eventually succeed in
exterminating the human race.
I first came into
contact with the Social Democrats while working in the
building trade.
From the very time that I started work the situation was not very
pleasant for me. My clothes were still rather decent. I was careful of
my
speech and I was reserved in manner. I was so occupied with thinking
of my
own present lot and future possibilities that I did not take much
of an
interest in my immediate surroundings. I had sought work so that I
shouldn't
starve and at the same time so as to be able to make further
headway with my
studies, though this headway might be slow. Possibly I
should not have
bothered to be interested in my companions were it not
that on the third or
fourth day an event occurred which forced me to
take a definite stand. I was
ordered to join the trade union.
At that time I knew nothing about the
trades unions. I had had no
opportunity of forming an opinion on their
utility or inutility, as the
case might be. But when I was told that I must
join the union I refused.
The grounds which I gave for my refusal were simply
that I knew nothing
about the matter and that anyhow I would not allow myself
to be forced
into anything. Probably the former reason saved me from being
thrown out
right away. They probably thought that within a few days I might
be
converted' and become more docile. But if they thought that they were
profoundly mistaken. After two weeks I found it utterly impossible for
me to
take such a step, even if I had been willing to take it at first.
During
those fourteen days I came to know my fellow workmen better, and
no power in
the world could have moved me to join an organization whose
representatives
had meanwhile shown themselves in a light which I found
so unfavourable.
During the first days my resentment was aroused.
At midday some of my
fellow workers used to adjourn to the nearest
tavern, while the others
remained on the building premises and there ate
their midday meal, which in
most cases was a very scanty one. These were
married men. Their wives brought
them the midday soup in dilapidated
vessels. Towards the end of the week
there was a gradual increase in the
number of those who remained to eat their
midday meal on the building
premises. I understood the reason for this
afterwards. They now talked
politics.
I drank my bottle of milk and
ate my morsel of bread somewhere on the
outskirts, while I circumspectly
studied my environment or else fell to
meditating on my own harsh lot. Yet I
heard more than enough. And I
often thought that some of what they said was
meant for my ears, in the
hope of bringing me to a decision. But all that I
heard had the effect
of arousing the strongest antagonism in me. Everything
was
disparaged--the nation, because it was held to be an invention of the
'capitalist' class (how often I had to listen to that phrase!); the
Fatherland, because it was held to be an instrument in the hands of the
bourgeoisie for the exploitation of' the working masses; the authority
of the
law, because that was a means of holding down the proletariat;
religion, as a
means of doping the people, so as to exploit them
afterwards; morality, as a
badge of stupid and sheepish docility. There
was nothing that they did not
drag in the mud.
At first I remained silent; but that could not last very
long. Then I
began to take part in the discussion and to reply to their
statements. I
had to recognize, however, that this was bound to be entirely
fruitless,
as long as I did not have at least a certain amount of definite
information about the questions that were discussed. So I decided to
consult
the source from which my interlocutors claimed to have drawn
their so-called
wisdom. I devoured book after book, pamphlet after
pamphlet.
Meanwhile, we argued with one another on the building premises. From day
to
day I was becoming better informed than my companions in the subjects
on
which they claimed to be experts. Then a day came when the more
redoubtable
of my adversaries resorted to the most effective weapon they
had to replace
the force of reason. This was intimidation and physical
force. Some of the
leaders among my adversaries ordered me to leave the
building or else get
flung down from the scaffolding. As I was quite
alone I could not put up any
physical resistance; so I chose the first
alternative and departed, richer
however by an experience.
I went away full of disgust; but at the same
time so deeply moved that
it was quite impossible for me to turn my back on
the whole situation
and think no more about it. When my anger began to calm
down the spirit
of obstinacy got the upper hand and I decided that at all
costs I would
get back to work again in the building trade. This decision
became all
the stronger a few weeks later, when my little savings had
entirely run
out and hunger clutched me once again in its merciless arms. No
alternative was left to me. I got work again and had to leave it for the
same
reasons as before.
Then I asked myself: Are these men worthy of belonging
to a great
people? The question was profoundly disturbing; for if the answer
were
'Yes', then the struggle to defend one's nationality is no longer worth
all the trouble and sacrifice we demand of our best elements if it be in
the
interests of such a rabble. On the other hand, if the answer had to
be
'No--these men are not worthy of the nation', then our nation is poor
indeed
in men. During those days of mental anguish and deep meditation I
saw before
my mind the ever-increasing and menacing army of people who
could no longer
be reckoned as belonging to their own nation.
It was with quite a
different feeling, some days later, that I gazed on
the interminable ranks,
four abreast, of Viennese workmen parading at a
mass demonstration. I stood
dumbfounded for almost two hours, watching
that enormous human dragon which
slowly uncoiled itself there before me.
When I finally left the square and
wandered in the direction of my
lodgings I felt dismayed and depressed. On my
way I noticed the
ARBEITERZEITUNG (The Workman's Journal) in a tobacco shop.
This was the
chief press-organ of the old Austrian Social Democracy. In a
cheap café,
where the common people used to foregather and where I often went
to
read the papers, the ARBEITERZEITUNG was also displayed. But hitherto I
could not bring myself to do more than glance at the wretched thing for
a
couple of minutes: for its whole tone was a sort of mental vitriol to
me.
Under the depressing influence of the demonstration I had witnessed,
some
interior voice urged me to buy the paper in that tobacco shop and
read it
through. So I brought it home with me and spent the whole
evening reading it,
despite the steadily mounting rage provoked by this
ceaseless outpouring of
falsehoods.
I now found that in the social democratic daily papers I
could study the
inner character of this politico-philosophic system much
better than in
all their theoretical literature.
For there was a
striking discrepancy between the two. In the literary
effusions which dealt
with the theory of Social Democracy there was a
display of high-sounding
phraseology about liberty and human dignity and
beauty, all promulgated with
an air of profound wisdom and serene
prophetic assurance; a
meticulously-woven glitter of words to dazzle and
mislead the reader. On the
other hand, the daily Press inculcated this
new doctrine of human redemption
in the most brutal fashion. No means
were too base, provided they could be
exploited in the campaign of
slander. These journalists were real virtuosos
in the art of twisting
facts and presenting them in a deceptive form. The
theoretical
literature was intended for the simpletons of the soi-disant
intellectuals belonging to the middle and, naturally, the upper classes.
The
newspaper propaganda was intended for the masses.
This probing into books
and newspapers and studying the teachings of
Social Democracy reawakened my
love for my own people. And thus what at
first seemed an impassable chasm
became the occasion of a closer
affection.
Having once understood the
working of the colossal system for poisoning
the popular mind, only a fool
could blame the victims of it. During the
years that followed I became more
independent and, as I did so, I became
better able to understand the inner
cause of the success achieved by
this Social Democratic gospel. I now
realized the meaning and purpose of
those brutal orders which prohibited the
reading of all books and
newspapers that were not 'red' and at the same time
demanded that only
the 'red' meetings should be attended. In the clear light
of brutal
reality I was able to see what must have been the inevitable
consequences of that intolerant teaching.
The PSYCHE of the broad masses
is accessible only to what is strong and
uncompromising. Like a woman whose
inner sensibilities are not so much
under the sway of abstract reasoning but
are always subject to the
influence of a vague emotional longing for the
strength that completes
her being, and who would rather bow to the strong man
than dominate the
weakling--in like manner the masses of the people prefer
the ruler to
the suppliant and are filled with a stronger sense of mental
security by
a teaching that brooks no rival than by a teaching which offers
them a
liberal choice. They have very little idea of how to make such a
choice
and thus they are prone to feel that they have been abandoned. They
feel
very little shame at being terrorized intellectually and they are
scarcely conscious of the fact that their freedom as human beings is
impudently abused; and thus they have not the slightest suspicion of the
intrinsic fallacy of the whole doctrine. They see only the ruthless
force and
brutality of its determined utterances, to which they always
submit.
IF SOCIAL DEMOCRACY SHOULD BE OPPOSED BY A MORE TRUTHFUL TEACHING, THEN
EVEN,
THOUGH THE STRUGGLE BE OF THE BITTEREST KIND, THIS TRUTHFUL
TEACHING WILL
FINALLY PREVAIL PROVIDED IT BE ENFORCED WITH EQUAL
RUTHLESSNESS.
Within less than two years I had gained a clear understanding of Social
Democracy, in its teaching and the technique of its operations.
I
recognized the infamy of that technique whereby the movement carried
on a
campaign of mental terrorism against the bourgeoisie, who are
neither morally
nor spiritually equipped to withstand such attacks. The
tactics of Social
Democracy consisted in opening, at a given signal, a
veritable drum-fire of
lies and calumnies against the man whom they
believed to be the most
redoubtable of their adversaries, until the
nerves of the latter gave way and
they sacrificed the man who was
attacked, simply in the hope of being allowed
to live in peace. But the
hope proved always to be a foolish one, for they
were never left in
peace.
The same tactics are repeated again and
again, until fear of these mad
dogs exercises, through suggestion, a
paralysing effect on their
Victims.
Through its own experience Social
Democracy learned the value of
strength, and for that reason it attacks
mostly those in whom it scents
stuff of the more stalwart kind, which is
indeed a very rare possession.
On the other hand it praises every weakling
among its adversaries, more
or less cautiously, according to the measure of
his mental qualities
known or presumed. They have less fear of a man of
genius who lacks
will-power than of a vigorous character with mediocre
intelligence and
at the same time they highly commend those who are devoid of
intelligence and will-power.
The Social Democrats know how to create the
impression that they alone
are the protectors of peace. In this way, acting
very circumspectly but
never losing sight of their ultimate goal, they
conquer one position
after another, at one time by methods of quiet
intimidation and at
another time by sheer daylight robbery, employing these
latter tactics
at those moments when public attention is turned towards other
matters
from which it does not wish to be diverted, or when the public
considers
an incident too trivial to create a scandal about it and thus
provoke
the anger of a malignant opponent.
These tactics are based on
an accurate estimation of human frailties and
must lead to success, with
almost mathematical certainty, unless the
other side also learns how to fight
poison gas with poison gas. The
weaker natures must be told that here it is a
case of to be or not to
be.
I also came to understand that physical
intimidation has its
significance for the mass as well as for the individual.
Here again the
Socialists had calculated accurately on the psychological
effect.
Intimidation in workshops and in factories, in assembly halls and
at
mass demonstrations, will always meet with success as long as it does
not have to encounter the same kind of terror in a stronger form.
Then of
course the Party will raise a horrified outcry, yelling blue
murder and
appealing to the authority of the State, which they have just
repudiated. In
doing this their aim generally is to add to the general
confusion, so that
they may have a better opportunity of reaching their
own goal unobserved.
Their idea is to find among the higher government
officials some bovine
creature who, in the stupid hope that he may win
the good graces of these
awe-inspiring opponents so that they may
remember him in case of future
eventualities, will help them now to
break all those who may oppose this
world pest.
The impression which such successful tactics make on the
minds of the
broad masses, whether they be adherents or opponents, can be
estimated
only by one who knows the popular mind, not from books but from
practical life. For the successes which are thus obtained are taken by
the
adherents of Social Democracy as a triumphant symbol of the
righteousness of
their own cause; on the other hand the beaten opponent
very often loses faith
in the effectiveness of any further resistance.
The more I understood the
methods of physical intimidation that were
employed, the more sympathy I had
for the multitude that had succumbed
to it.
I am thankful now for the
ordeal which I had to go through at that time;
for it was the means of
bringing me to think kindly again of my own
people, inasmuch as the
experience enabled me to distinguish between the
false leaders and the
victims who have been led astray.
We must look upon the latter simply as
victims. I have just now tried to
depict a few traits which express the
mentality of those on the lowest
rung of the social ladder; but my picture
would be disproportionate if I
do not add that amid the social depths I still
found light; for I
experienced a rare spirit of self-sacrifice and loyal
comradeship among
those men, who demanded little from life and were content
amid their
modest surroundings. This was true especially of the older
generation of
workmen. And although these qualities were disappearing more
and more in
the younger generation, owing to the all-pervading influence of
the big
city, yet among the younger generation also there were many who were
sound at the core and who were able to maintain themselves
uncontaminated
amid the sordid surroundings of their everyday existence.
If these men, who
in many cases meant well and were upright in
themselves, gave the support to
the political activities carried on by
the common enemies of our people, that
was because those decent
workpeople did not and could not grasp the downright
infamy of the
doctrine taught by the socialist agitators. Furthermore, it was
because
no other section of the community bothered itself about the lot of
the
working classes. Finally, the social conditions became such that men who
otherwise would have acted differently were forced to submit to them,
even
though unwillingly at first. A day came when poverty gained the
upper hand
and drove those workmen into the Social Democratic ranks.
On innumerable
occasions the bourgeoisie took a definite stand against
even the most
legitimate human demands of the working classes. That
conduct was ill-judged
and indeed immoral and could bring no gain
whatsoever to the bourgeois class.
The result was that the honest
workman abandoned the original concept of the
trades union organization
and was dragged into politics.
There were
millions and millions of workmen who began by being hostile
to the Social
Democratic Party; but their defences were repeatedly
stormed and finally they
had to surrender. Yet this defeat was due to
the stupidity of the bourgeois
parties, who had opposed every social
demand put forward by the working
class. The short-sighted refusal to
make an effort towards improving labour
conditions, the refusal to adopt
measures which would insure the workman in
case of accidents in the
factories, the refusal to forbid child labour, the
refusal to consider
protective measures for female workers, especially
expectant
mothers--all this was of assistance to the Social Democratic
leaders,
who were thankful for every opportunity which they could exploit for
forcing the masses into their net. Our bourgeois parties can never
repair the
damage that resulted from the mistake they then made. For
they sowed the
seeds of hatred when they opposed all efforts at social
reform. And thus they
gave, at least, apparent grounds to justify the
claim put forward by the
Social Democrats--namely, that they alone stand
up for the interests of the
working class.
And this became the principal ground for the moral
justification of the
actual existence of the Trades Unions, so that the
labour organization
became from that time onwards the chief political
recruiting ground to
swell the ranks of the Social Democratic Party.
While thus studying the social conditions around me I was forced,
whether I
liked it or not, to decide on the attitude I should take
towards the Trades
Unions. Because I looked upon them as inseparable
from the Social Democratic
Party, my decision was hasty--and mistaken. I
repudiated them as a matter of
course. But on this essential question
also Fate intervened and gave me a
lesson, with the result that I
changed the opinion which I had first formed.
When I was twenty years old I had learned to distinguish between the
Trades Union as a means of defending the social rights of the employees
and
fighting for better living conditions for them and, on the other
hand, the
Trades Union as a political instrument used by the Party in
the class
struggle.
The Social Democrats understood the enormous importance of the
Trades
Union movement. They appropriated it as an instrument and used it with
success, while the bourgeois parties failed to understand it and thus
lost
their political prestige. They thought that their own arrogant VETO
would
arrest the logical development of the movement and force it into
an illogical
position. But it is absurd and also untrue to say that the
Trades Union
movement is in itself hostile to the nation. The opposite
is the more correct
view. If the activities of the Trades Union are
directed towards improving
the condition of a class, and succeed in
doing so, such activities are not
against the Fatherland or the State
but are, in the truest sense of the word,
national. In that way the
trades union organization helps to create the
social conditions which
are indispensable in a general system of national
education. It deserves
high recognition when it destroys the psychological
and physical germs
of social disease and thus fosters the general welfare of
the nation.
It is superfluous to ask whether the Trades Union is
indispensable.
So long as there are employers who attack social
understanding and have
wrong ideas of justice and fair play it is not only
the right but also
the duty of their employees--who are, after all, an
integral part of our
people--to protect the general interests against the
greed and unreason
of the individual. For to safeguard the loyalty and
confidence of the
people is as much in the interests of the nation as to
safeguard public
health.
Both are seriously menaced by dishonourable
employers who are not
conscious of their duty as members of the national
community. Their
personal avidity or irresponsibility sows the seeds of
future trouble.
To eliminate the causes of such a development is an action
that surely
deserves well of the country.
It must not be answered here
that the individual workman is free at any
time to escape from the
consequences of an injustice which he has
actually suffered at the hands of
an employer, or which he thinks he has
suffered--in other words, he can
leave. No. That argument is only a ruse
to detract attention from the
question at issue. Is it, or is it not, in
the interests of the nation to
remove the causes of social unrest? If it
is, then the fight must be carried
on with the only weapons that promise
success. But the individual workman is
never in a position to stand up
against the might of the big employer; for
the question here is not one
that concerns the triumph of right. If in such a
relation right had been
recognized as the guiding principle, then the
conflict could not have
arisen at all. But here it is a question of who is
the stronger. If the
case were otherwise, the sentiment of justice alone
would solve the
dispute in an honourable way; or, to put the case more
correctly,
matters would not have come to such a dispute at all.
No.
If unsocial and dishonourable treatment of men provokes resistance,
then the
stronger party can impose its decision in the conflict until
the
constitutional legislative authorities do away with the evil through
legislation. Therefore it is evident that if the individual workman is
to
have any chance at all of winning through in the struggle he must be
grouped
with his fellow workmen and present a united front before the
individual
employer, who incorporates in his own person the massed
strength of the
vested interests in the industrial or commercial
undertaking which he
conducts.
Thus the trades unions can hope to inculcate and strengthen a
sense of
social responsibility in workaday life and open the road to
practical
results. In doing this they tend to remove those causes of friction
which are a continual source of discontent and complaint.
Blame for the
fact that the trades unions do not fulfil this
much-desired function must be
laid at the doors of those who barred the
road to legislative social reform,
or rendered such a reform ineffective
by sabotaging it through their
political influence.
The political bourgeoisie failed to understand--or,
rather, they did not
wish to understand--the importance of the trades union
movement. The
Social Democrats accordingly seized the advantage offered them
by this
mistaken policy and took the labour movement under their exclusive
protection, without any protest from the other side. In this way they
established for themselves a solid bulwark behind which they could
safely
retire whenever the struggle assumed a critical aspect. Thus the
genuine
purpose of the movement gradually fell into oblivion, and was
replaced by new
objectives. For the Social Democrats never troubled
themselves to respect and
uphold the original purpose for which the
trade unionist movement was
founded. They simply took over the Movement,
lock, stock and barrel, to serve
their own political ends.
Within a few decades the Trades Union Movement
was transformed, by the
expert hand of Social Democracy, from an instrument
which had been
originally fashioned for the defence of human rights into an
instrument
for the destruction of the national economic structure. The
interests of
the working class were not allowed for a moment to cross the
path of
this purpose; for in politics the application of economic pressure is
always possible if the one side be sufficiently unscrupulous and the
other
sufficiently inert and docile. In this case both conditions were
fulfilled.
By the beginning of the present century the Trades Unionist Movement had
already ceased to recognize the purpose for which it had been founded.
From
year to year it fell more and more under the political control of
the Social
Democrats, until it finally came to be used as a
battering-ram in the class
struggle. The plan was to shatter, by means
of constantly repeated blows, the
economic edifice in the building of
which so much time and care had been
expended. Once this objective had
been reached, the destruction of the State
would become a matter of
course, because the State would already have been
deprived of its
economic foundations. Attention to the real interests of the
working-classes, on the part of the Social Democrats, steadily decreased
until the cunning leaders saw that it would be in their immediate
political
interests if the social and cultural demands of the broad
masses remained
unheeded; for there was a danger that if these masses
once felt content they
could no longer be employed as mere passive
material in the political
struggle.
The gloomy prospect which presented itself to the eyes of the
CONDOTTIERI of the class warfare, if the discontent of the masses were
no
longer available as a war weapon, created so much anxiety among them
that
they suppressed and opposed even the most elementary measures of
social
reform. And conditions were such that those leaders did not have
to trouble
about attempting to justify such an illogical policy.
As the masses were
taught to increase and heighten their demands the
possibility of satisfying
them dwindled and whatever ameliorative
measures were taken became less and
less significant; so that it was at
that time possible to persuade the masses
that this ridiculous measure
in which the most sacred claims of the
working-classes were being
granted represented a diabolical plan to weaken
their fighting power in
this easy way and, if possible, to paralyse it. One
will not be
astonished at the success of these allegations if one remembers
what a
small measure of thinking power the broad masses possess.
In
the bourgeois camp there was high indignation over the bad faith of
the
Social Democratic tactics; but nothing was done to draw a practical
conclusion and organize a counter attack from the bourgeois side. The
fear of
the Social Democrats, to improve the miserable conditions of the
working-classes ought to have induced the bourgeois parties to make the
most
energetic efforts in this direction and thus snatch from the hands
of the
class-warfare leaders their most important weapon; but nothing of
this kind
happened.
Instead of attacking the position of their adversaries the
bourgeoisie
allowed itself to be pressed and harried. Finally it adopted
means that
were so tardy and so insignificant that they were ineffective and
were
repudiated. So the whole situation remained just as it had been before
the bourgeois intervention; but the discontent had thereby become more
serious.
Like a threatening storm, the 'Free Trades Union' hovered above
the
political horizon and above the life of each individual. It was one of
the most frightful instruments of terror that threatened the security
and
independence of the national economic structure, the foundations of
the State
and the liberty of the individual. Above all, it was the 'Free
Trades Union'
that turned democracy into a ridiculous and scorned
phrase, insulted the
ideal of liberty and stigmatized that of fraternity
with the slogan 'If you
will not become our comrade we shall crack your
skull'.
It was thus
that I then came to know this friend of humanity. During the
years that
followed my knowledge of it became wider and deeper; but I
have never changed
anything in that regard.
The more I became acquainted with the external
forms of Social
Democracy, the greater became my desire to understand the
inner nature
of its doctrines.
For this purpose the official
literature of the Party could not help
very much. In discussing economic
questions its statements were false
and its proofs unsound. In treating of
political aims its attitude was
insincere. Furthermore, its modern methods of
chicanery in the
presentation of its arguments were profoundly repugnant to
me. Its
flamboyant sentences, its obscure and incomprehensible phrases,
pretended to contain great thoughts, but they were devoid of thought,
and
meaningless. One would have to be a decadent Bohemian in one of our
modern
cities in order to feel at home in that labyrinth of mental
aberration, so
that he might discover 'intimate experiences' amid the
stinking fumes of this
literary Dadism. These writers were obviously
counting on the proverbial
humility of a certain section of our people,
who believe that a person who is
incomprehensible must be profoundly
wise.
In confronting the
theoretical falsity and absurdity of that doctrine
with the reality of its
external manifestations, I gradually came to
have a clear idea of the ends at
which it aimed.
During such moments I had dark presentiments and feared
something evil.
I had before me a teaching inspired by egoism and hatred,
mathematically
calculated to win its victory, but the triumph of which would
be a
mortal blow to humanity.
Meanwhile I had discovered the relations
existing between this
destructive teaching and the specific character of a
people, who up to
that time had been to me almost unknown.
Knowledge
of the Jews is the only key whereby one may understand the
inner nature and
therefore the real aims of Social Democracy.
The man who has come to know
this race has succeeded in removing from
his eyes the veil through which he
had seen the aims and meaning of his
Party in a false light; and then, out of
the murk and fog of social
phrases rises the grimacing figure of Marxism.
To-day it is hard and almost impossible for me to say when the word
'Jew'
first began to raise any particular thought in my mind. I do not
remember
even having heard the word at home during my father's lifetime.
If this name
were mentioned in a derogatory sense I think the old
gentleman would just
have considered those who used it in this way as
being uneducated
reactionaries. In the course of his career he had come
to be more or less a
cosmopolitan, with strong views on nationalism,
which had its effect on me as
well. In school, too, I found no reason to
alter the picture of things I had
formed at home.
At the REALSCHULE I knew one Jewish boy. We were all on
our guard in our
relations with him, but only because his reticence and
certain actions
of his warned us to be discreet. Beyond that my companions
and myself
formed no particular opinions in regard to him.
It was not
until I was fourteen or fifteen years old that I frequently
ran up against
the word 'Jew', partly in connection with political
controversies. These
references aroused a slight aversion in me, and I
could not avoid an
uncomfortable feeling which always came over me when
I had to listen to
religious disputes. But at that time I had no other
feelings about the Jewish
question.
There were very few Jews in Linz. In the course of centuries
the Jews
who lived there had become Europeanized in external appearance and
were
so much like other human beings that I even looked upon them as Germans.
The reason why I did not then perceive the absurdity of such an illusion
was
that the only external mark which I recognized as distinguishing
them from us
was the practice of their strange religion. As I thought
that they were
persecuted on account of their Faith my aversion to
hearing remarks against
them grew almost into a feeling of abhorrence. I
did not in the least suspect
that there could be such a thing as a
systematic anti-Semitism.
Then I came to Vienna.
Confused by the mass of impressions I
received from the architectural
surroundings and depressed by my own
troubles, I did not at first
distinguish between the different social strata
of which the population
of that mammoth city was composed. Although Vienna
then had about two
hundred thousand Jews among its population of two
millions, I did not
notice them. During the first weeks of my sojourn my eyes
and my mind
were unable to cope with the onrush of new ideas and values. Not
until I
gradually settled down to my surroundings, and the confused picture
began to grow clearer, did I acquire a more discriminating view of my
new
world. And with that I came up against the Jewish problem.
I will not say
that the manner in which I first became acquainted with
it was particularly
unpleasant for me. In the Jew I still saw only a man
who was of a different
religion, and therefore, on grounds of human
tolerance, I was against the
idea that he should be attacked because he
had a different faith. And so I
considered that the tone adopted by the
anti-Semitic Press in Vienna was
unworthy of the cultural traditions of
a great people. The memory of certain
events which happened in the
middle ages came into my mind, and I felt that I
should not like to see
them repeated. Generally speaking, these anti-Semitic
newspapers did not
belong to the first rank--but I did not then understand
the reason of
this--and so I regarded them more as the products of jealousy
and envy
rather than the expression of a sincere, though wrong-headed,
feeling.
My own opinions were confirmed by what I considered to be the
infinitely
more dignified manner in which the really great Press replied to
those
attacks or simply ignored them, which latter seemed to me the most
respectable way.
I diligently read what was generally called the World
Press--NEUE FREIE
PRESSE, WIENER TAGEBLATT, etc.--and I was astonished by the
abundance of
information they gave their readers and the impartial way in
which they
presented particular problems. I appreciated their dignified tone;
but
sometimes the flamboyancy of the style was unconvincing, and I did not
like it. But I attributed all this to the overpowering influence of the
world
metropolis.
Since I considered Vienna at that time as such a world
metropolis, I
thought this constituted sufficient grounds to excuse these
shortcomings
of the Press. But I was frequently disgusted by the grovelling
way in
which the Vienna Press played lackey to the Court. Scarcely a move
took
place at the Hofburg which was not presented in glorified colours to the
readers. It was a foolish practice, which, especially when it had to do
with
'The Wisest Monarch of all Times', reminded one almost of the dance
which the
mountain cock performs at pairing time to woo his mate. It was
all empty
nonsense. And I thought that such a policy was a stain on the
ideal of
liberal democracy. I thought that this way of currying favour
at the Court
was unworthy of the people. And that was the first blot
that fell on my
appreciation of the great Vienna Press.
While in Vienna I continued to
follow with a vivid interest all the
events that were taking place in
Germany, whether connected with
political or cultural question. I had a
feeling of pride and admiration
when I compared the rise of the young German
Empire with the decline of
the Austrian State. But, although the foreign
policy of that Empire was
a source of real pleasure on the whole, the
internal political
happenings were not always so satisfactory. I did not
approve of the
campaign which at that time was being carried on against
William II. I
looked upon him not only as the German Emperor but, above all,
as the
creator of the German Navy. The fact that the Emperor was prohibited
from speaking in the Reichstag made me very angry, because the
prohibition
came from a side which in my eyes had no authority to make
it. For at a
single sitting those same parliamentary ganders did more
cackling together
than the whole dynasty of Emperors, comprising even
the weakest, had done in
the course of centuries.
It annoyed me to have to acknowledge that in a
nation where any
half-witted fellow could claim for himself the right to
criticize and
might even be let loose on the people as a 'Legislator' in the
Reichstag, the bearer of the Imperial Crown could be the subject of a
'reprimand' on the part of the most miserable assembly of drivellers
that had
ever existed.
I was even more disgusted at the way in which this same
Vienna Press
salaamed obsequiously before the meanest steed belonging to the
Habsburg
royal equipage and went off into wild ecstacies of delight if the
nag
wagged its tail in response. And at the same time these newspapers took
up an attitude of anxiety in matters that concerned the German Emperor,
trying to cloak their enmity by the serious air they gave themselves.
But in
my eyes that enmity appeared to be only poorly cloaked. Naturally
they
protested that they had no intention of mixing in Germany's
internal
affairs--God forbid! They pretended that by touching a delicate
spot in such
a friendly way they were fulfilling a duty that devolved
upon them by reason
of the mutual alliance between the two countries and
at the same time
discharging their obligations of journalistic
truthfulness. Having thus
excused themselves about tenderly touching a
sore spot, they bored with the
finger ruthlessly into the wound.
That sort of thing made my blood boil.
And now I began to be more and
more on my guard when reading the great Vienna
Press.
I had to acknowledge, however, that on such subjects one of the
anti-Semitic papers--the DEUTSCHE VOLKSBLATT--acted more decently.
What
got still more on my nerves was the repugnant manner in which the
big
newspapers cultivated admiration for France. One really had to feel
ashamed
of being a German when confronted by those mellifluous hymns of
praise for
'the great culture-nation'. This wretched Gallomania more
often than once
made me throw away one of those 'world newspapers'. I
now often turned to the
VOLKSBLATT, which was much smaller in size but
which treated such subjects
more decently. I was not in accord with its
sharp anti-Semitic tone; but
again and again I found that its arguments
gave me grounds for serious
thought.
Anyhow, it was as a result of such reading that I came to know
the man
and the movement which then determined the fate of Vienna. These were
Dr. Karl Lueger and the Christian Socialist Movement. At the time I came
to
Vienna I felt opposed to both. I looked on the man and the movement
as
'reactionary'.
But even an elementary sense of justice enforced me to
change my opinion
when I had the opportunity of knowing the man and his work,
and slowly
that opinion grew into outspoken admiration when I had better
grounds
for forming a judgment. To-day, as well as then, I hold Dr. Karl
Lueger
as the most eminent type of German Burgermeister. How many prejudices
were thrown over through such a change in my attitude towards the
Christian-Socialist Movement!
My ideas about anti-Semitism changed also
in the course of time, but
that was the change which I found most difficult.
It cost me a greater
internal conflict with myself, and it was only after a
struggle between
reason and sentiment that victory began to be decided in
favour of the
former. Two years later sentiment rallied to the side of
reasons and
became a faithful guardian and counsellor.
At the time of
this bitter struggle, between calm reason and the
sentiments in which I had
been brought up, the lessons that I learned on
the streets of Vienna rendered
me invaluable assistance. A time came
when I no longer passed blindly along
the street of the mighty city, as
I had done in the early days, but now with
my eyes open not only to
study the buildings but also the human beings.
Once, when passing through the inner City, I suddenly encountered a
phenomenon in a long caftan and wearing black side-locks. My first
thought
was: Is this a Jew? They certainly did not have this appearance
in Linz. I
watched the man stealthily and cautiously; but the longer I
gazed at the
strange countenance and examined it feature by feature, the
more the question
shaped itself in my brain: Is this a German?
As was always my habit with
such experiences, I turned to books for help
in removing my doubts. For the
first time in my life I bought myself
some anti-Semitic pamphlets for a few
pence. But unfortunately they all
began with the assumption that in principle
the reader had at least a
certain degree of information on the Jewish
question or was even
familiar with it. Moreover, the tone of most of these
pamphlets was such
that I became doubtful again, because the statements made
were partly
superficial and the proofs extraordinarily unscientific. For
weeks, and
indeed for months, I returned to my old way of thinking. The
subject
appeared so enormous and the accusations were so far-reaching that I
was
afraid of dealing with it unjustly and so I became again anxious and
uncertain.
Naturally I could no longer doubt that here there was not a
question of
Germans who happened to be of a different religion but rather
that there
was question of an entirely different people. For as soon as I
began to
investigate the matter and observe the Jews, then Vienna appeared to
me
in a different light. Wherever I now went I saw Jews, and the more I saw
of them the more strikingly and clearly they stood out as a different
people
from the other citizens. Especially the Inner City and the
district
northwards from the Danube Canal swarmed with a people who,
even in outer
appearance, bore no similarity to the Germans.
But any indecision which I
may still have felt about that point was
finally removed by the activities of
a certain section of the Jews
themselves. A great movement, called Zionism,
arose among them. Its aim
was to assert the national character of Judaism,
and the movement was
strongly represented in Vienna.
To outward
appearances it seemed as if only one group of Jews championed
this movement,
while the great majority disapproved of it, or even
repudiated it. But an
investigation of the situation showed that those
outward appearances were
purposely misleading. These outward appearances
emerged from a mist of
theories which had been produced for reasons of
expediency, if not for
purposes of downright deception. For that part of
Jewry which was styled
Liberal did not disown the Zionists as if they
were not members of their race
but rather as brother Jews who publicly
professed their faith in an
unpractical way, so as to create a danger
for Jewry itself.
Thus there
was no real rift in their internal solidarity.
This fictitious conflict
between the Zionists and the Liberal Jews soon
disgusted me; for it was false
through and through and in direct
contradiction to the moral dignity and
immaculate character on which
that race had always prided itself.
Cleanliness, whether moral or of another kind, had its own peculiar
meaning
for these people. That they were water-shy was obvious on
looking at them
and, unfortunately, very often also when not looking at
them at all. The
odour of those people in caftans often used to make me
feel ill. Beyond that
there were the unkempt clothes and the ignoble
exterior.
All these
details were certainly not attractive; but the revolting
feature was that
beneath their unclean exterior one suddenly perceived
the moral mildew of the
chosen race.
What soon gave me cause for very serious consideration were
the
activities of the Jews in certain branches of life, into the mystery of
which I penetrated little by little. Was there any shady undertaking,
any
form of foulness, especially in cultural life, in which at least one
Jew did
not participate? On putting the probing knife carefully to that
kind of
abscess one immediately discovered, like a maggot in a
putrescent body, a
little Jew who was often blinded by the sudden light.
In my eyes the
charge against Judaism became a grave one the moment I
discovered the Jewish
activities in the Press, in art, in literature and
the theatre. All unctuous
protests were now more or less futile. One
needed only to look at the posters
announcing the hideous productions of
the cinema and theatre, and study the
names of the authors who were
highly lauded there in order to become
permanently adamant on Jewish
questions. Here was a pestilence, a moral
pestilence, with which the
public was being infected. It was worse than the
Black Plague of long
ago. And in what mighty doses this poison was
manufactured and
distributed. Naturally, the lower the moral and intellectual
level of
such an author of artistic products the more inexhaustible his
fecundity. Sometimes it went so far that one of these fellows, acting
like a
sewage pump, would shoot his filth directly in the face of other
members of
the human race. In this connection we must remember there is
no limit to the
number of such people. One ought to realize that for
one, Goethe, Nature may
bring into existence ten thousand such
despoilers who act as the worst kind
of germ-carriers in poisoning human
souls. It was a terrible thought, and yet
it could not be avoided, that
the greater number of the Jews seemed specially
destined by Nature to
play this shameful part.
And is it for this
reason that they can be called the chosen people?
I began then to
investigate carefully the names of all the fabricators
of these unclean
products in public cultural life. The result of that
inquiry was still more
disfavourable to the attitude which I had
hitherto held in regard to the
Jews. Though my feelings might rebel a
thousand time, reason now had to draw
its own conclusions.
The fact that nine-tenths of all the smutty
literature, artistic tripe
and theatrical banalities, had to be charged to
the account of people
who formed scarcely one per cent. of the nation--that
fact could not be
gainsaid. It was there, and had to be admitted. Then I
began to examine
my favourite 'World Press', with that fact before my mind.
The deeper my soundings went the lesser grew my respect for that Press
which I formerly admired. Its style became still more repellent and I
was
forced to reject its ideas as entirely shallow and superficial. To
claim that
in the presentation of facts and views its attitude was
impartial seemed to
me to contain more falsehood than truth. The writers
were--Jews.
Thousands of details that I had scarcely noticed before seemed to me now
to
deserve attention. I began to grasp and understand things which I had
formerly looked at in a different light.
I saw the Liberal policy of that
Press in another light. Its dignified
tone in replying to the attacks of its
adversaries and its dead silence
in other cases now became clear to me as
part of a cunning and
despicable way of deceiving the readers. Its brilliant
theatrical
criticisms always praised the Jewish authors and its adverse,
criticism
was reserved exclusively for the Germans.
The light
pin-pricks against William II showed the persistency of its
policy, just as
did its systematic commendation of French culture and
civilization. The
subject matter of the feuilletons was trivial and
often pornographic. The
language of this Press as a whole had the accent
of a foreign people. The
general tone was openly derogatory to the
Germans and this must have been
definitely intentional.
What were the interests that urged the Vienna
Press to adopt such a
policy? Or did they do so merely by chance? In
attempting to find an
answer to those questions I gradually became more and
more dubious.
Then something happened which helped me to come to an early
decision. I
began to see through the meaning of a whole series of events that
were
taking place in other branches of Viennese life. All these were inspired
by a general concept of manners and morals which was openly put into
practice
by a large section of the Jews and could be established as
attributable to
them. Here, again, the life which I observed on the
streets taught me what
evil really is.
The part which the Jews played in the social phenomenon
of prostitution,
and more especially in the white slave traffic, could be
studied here
better than in any other West-European city, with the possible
exception
of certain ports in Southern France. Walking by night along the
streets
of the Leopoldstadt, almost at every turn whether one wished it or
not,
one witnessed certain happenings of whose existence the Germans knew
nothing until the War made it possible and indeed inevitable for the
soldiers
to see such things on the Eastern front.
A cold shiver ran down my spine
when I first ascertained that it was the
same kind of cold-blooded,
thick-skinned and shameless Jew who showed
his consummate skill in conducting
that revolting exploitation of the
dregs of the big city. Then I became fired
with wrath.
I had now no more hesitation about bringing the Jewish
problem to light
in all its details. No. Henceforth I was determined to do
so. But as I
learned to track down the Jew in all the different spheres of
cultural
and artistic life, and in the various manifestations of this life
everywhere, I suddenly came upon him in a position where I had least
expected
to find him. I now realized that the Jews were the leaders of
Social
Democracy. In face of that revelation the scales fell from my
eyes. My long
inner struggle was at an end.
In my relations with my fellow workmen I
was often astonished to find
how easily and often they changed their opinions
on the same questions,
sometimes within a few days and sometimes even within
the course of a
few hours. I found it difficult to understand how men who
always had
reasonable ideas when they spoke as individuals with one another
suddenly lost this reasonableness the moment they acted in the mass.
That
phenomenon often tempted one almost to despair. I used to dispute
with them
for hours and when I succeeded in bringing them to what I
considered a
reasonable way of thinking I rejoiced at my success. But
next day I would
find that it had been all in vain. It was saddening to
think I had to begin
it all over again. Like a pendulum in its eternal
sway, they would fall back
into their absurd opinions.
I was able to understand their position
fully. They were dissatisfied
with their lot and cursed the fate which had
hit them so hard. They
hated their employers, whom they looked upon as the
heartless
administrators of their cruel destiny. Often they used abusive
language
against the public officials, whom they accused of having no
sympathy
with the situation of the working people. They made public protests
against the cost of living and paraded through the streets in defence of
their claims. At least all this could be explained on reasonable
grounds. But
what was impossible to understand was the boundless hatred
they expressed
against their own fellow citizens, how they disparaged
their own nation,
mocked at its greatness, reviled its history and
dragged the names of its
most illustrious men in the gutter.
This hostility towards their own kith
and kin, their own native land and
home was as irrational as it was
incomprehensible. It was against
Nature.
One could cure that malady
temporarily, but only for some days or at
least some weeks. But on meeting
those whom one believed to have been
converted one found that they had become
as they were before. That
malady against Nature held them once again in its
clutches.
I gradually discovered that the Social Democratic Press was
predominantly controlled by Jews. But I did not attach special
importance to
this circumstance, for the same state of affairs existed
also in other
newspapers. But there was one striking fact in this
connection. It was that
there was not a single newspaper with which Jews
were connected that could be
spoken of as National, in the meaning that
my education and convictions
attached to that word.
Making an effort to overcome my natural
reluctance, I tried to read
articles of this nature published in the Marxist
Press; but in doing so
my aversion increased all the more. And then I set
about learning
something of the people who wrote and published this
mischievous stuff.
From the publisher downwards, all of them were Jews. I
recalled to mind
the names of the public leaders of Marxism, and then I
realized that
most of them belonged to the Chosen Race--the Social Democratic
representatives in the Imperial Cabinet as well as the secretaries of
the
Trades Unions and the street agitators. Everywhere the same sinister
picture
presented itself. I shall never forget the row of
names--Austerlitz, David,
Adler, Ellenbogen, and others. One fact became
quite evident to me. It was
that this alien race held in its hands the
leadership of that Social
Democratic Party with whose minor
representatives I had been disputing for
months past. I was happy at
last to know for certain that the Jew is not a
German.
Thus I finally discovered who were the evil spirits leading our
people
astray. The sojourn in Vienna for one year had proved long enough to
convince me that no worker is so rooted in his preconceived notions that
he
will not surrender them in face of better and clearer arguments and
explanations. Gradually I became an expert in the doctrine of the
Marxists
and used this knowledge as an instrument to drive home my own
firm
convictions. I was successful in nearly every case. The great
masses can be
rescued, but a lot of time and a large share of human
patience must be
devoted to such work.
But a Jew can never be rescued from his fixed
notions.
It was then simple enough to attempt to show them the absurdity
of their
teaching. Within my small circle I talked to them until my throat
ached
and my voice grew hoarse. I believed that I could finally convince them
of the danger inherent in the Marxist follies. But I only achieved the
contrary result. It seemed to me that immediately the disastrous effects
of
the Marxist Theory and its application in practice became evident,
the
stronger became their obstinacy.
The more I debated with them the more
familiar I became with their
argumentative tactics. At the outset they
counted upon the stupidity of
their opponents, but when they got so entangled
that they could not find
a way out they played the trick of acting as
innocent simpletons. Should
they fail, in spite of their tricks of logic,
they acted as if they
could not understand the counter arguments and bolted
away to another
field of discussion. They would lay down truisms and
platitudes; and, if
you accepted these, then they were applied to other
problems and matters
of an essentially different nature from the original
theme. If you faced
them with this point they would escape again, and you
could not bring
them to make any precise statement. Whenever one tried to get
a firm
grip on any of these apostles one's hand grasped only jelly and slime
which slipped through the fingers and combined again into a solid mass a
moment afterwards. If your adversary felt forced to give in to your
argument,
on account of the observers present, and if you then thought
that at last you
had gained ground, a surprise was in store for you on
the following day. The
Jew would be utterly oblivious to what had
happened the day before, and he
would start once again by repeating his
former absurdities, as if nothing had
happened. Should you become
indignant and remind him of yesterday's defeat,
he pretended
astonishment and could not remember anything, except that on the
previous day he had proved that his statements were correct. Sometimes I
was
dumbfounded. I do not know what amazed me the more--the abundance of
their
verbiage or the artful way in which they dressed up their
falsehoods. I
gradually came to hate them.
Yet all this had its good side; because the
more I came to know the
individual leaders, or at least the propagandists, of
Social Democracy,
my love for my own people increased correspondingly.
Considering the
Satanic skill which these evil counsellors displayed, how
could their
unfortunate victims be blamed? Indeed, I found it extremely
difficult
myself to be a match for the dialectical perfidy of that race. How
futile it was to try to win over such people with argument, seeing that
their
very mouths distorted the truth, disowning the very words they had
just used
and adopting them again a few moments afterwards to serve
their own ends in
the argument! No. The more I came to know the Jew, the
easier it was to
excuse the workers.
In my opinion the most culpable were not to be found
among the workers
but rather among those who did not think it worth while to
take the
trouble to sympathize with their own kinsfolk and give to the
hard-working son of the national family what was his by the iron logic
of
justice, while at the same time placing his seducer and corrupter
against the
wall.
Urged by my own daily experiences, I now began to investigate more
thoroughly the sources of the Marxist teaching itself. Its effects were
well
known to me in detail. As a result of careful observation, its
daily progress
had become obvious to me. And one needed only a little
imagination in order
to be able to forecast the consequences which must
result from it. The only
question now was: Did the founders foresee the
effects of their work in the
form which those effects have shown
themselves to-day, or were the founders
themselves the victims of an
error? To my mind both alternatives were
possible.
If the second question must be answered in the affirmative,
then it was
the duty of every thinking person to oppose this sinister
movement with
a view to preventing it from producing its worst results. But
if the
first question must be answered in the affirmative, then it must be
admitted that the original authors of this evil which has infected the
nations were devils incarnate. For only in the brain of a monster, and
not
that of a man, could the plan of this organization take shape whose
workings
must finally bring about the collapse of human civilization and
turn this
world into a desert waste.
Such being the case the only alternative left
was to fight, and in that
fight to employ all the weapons which the human
spirit and intellect and
will could furnish leaving it to Fate to decide in
whose favour the
balance should fall.
And so I began to gather
information about the authors of this teaching,
with a view to studying the
principles of the movement. The fact that I
attained my object sooner than I
could have anticipated was due to the
deeper insight into the Jewish question
which I then gained, my
knowledge of this question being hitherto rather
superficial. This newly
acquired knowledge alone enabled me to make a
practical comparison
between the real content and the theoretical
pretentiousness of the
teaching laid down by the apostolic founders of Social
Democracy;
because I now understood the language of the Jew. I realized that
the
Jew uses language for the purpose of dissimulating his thought or at
least veiling it, so that his real aim cannot be discovered by what he
says
but rather by reading between the lines. This knowledge was the
occasion of
the greatest inner revolution that I had yet experienced.
From being a
soft-hearted cosmopolitan I became an out-and-out
anti-Semite.
Only on
one further occasion, and that for the last time, did I give way
to
oppressing thoughts which caused me some moments of profound anxiety.
As
I critically reviewed the activities of the Jewish people throughout
long
periods of history I became anxious and asked myself whether for
some
inscrutable reasons beyond the comprehension of poor mortals such
as
ourselves, Destiny may not have irrevocably decreed that the final
victory
must go to this small nation? May it not be that this people
which has lived
only for the earth has been promised the earth as a
recompense? is our right
to struggle for our own self-preservation based
on reality, or is it a merely
subjective thing? Fate answered the
question for me inasmuch as it led me to
make a detached and exhaustive
inquiry into the Marxist teaching and the
activities of the Jewish
people in connection with it.
The Jewish
doctrine of Marxism repudiates the aristocratic principle of
Nature and
substitutes for it the eternal privilege of force and energy,
numerical mass
and its dead weight. Thus it denies the individual worth
of the human
personality, impugns the teaching that nationhood and race
have a primary
significance, and by doing this it takes away the very
foundations of human
existence and human civilization. If the Marxist
teaching were to be accepted
as the foundation of the life of the
universe, it would lead to the
disappearance of all order that is
conceivable to the human mind. And thus
the adoption of such a law would
provoke chaos in the structure of the
greatest organism that we know,
with the result that the inhabitants of this
earthly planet would
finally disappear.
Should the Jew, with the aid
of his Marxist creed, triumph over the
people of this world, his Crown will
be the funeral wreath of mankind,
and this planet will once again follow its
orbit through ether, without
any human life on its surface, as it did
millions of years ago.
And so I believe to-day that my conduct is in
accordance with the will
of the Almighty Creator. In standing guard against
the Jew I am
defending the handiwork of the Lord.
CHAPTER
III
POLITICAL REFLECTIONS ARISING OUT OF MY SOJOURN IN VIENNA
Generally speaking a man should not publicly take part in politics
before he has reached the age of thirty, though, of course, exceptions
must
be made in the case of those who are naturally gifted with
extraordinary
political abilities. That at least is my opinion to-day.
And the reason for
it is that until he reaches his thirtieth year or
thereabouts a man's mental
development will mostly consist in acquiring
and sifting such knowledge as is
necessary for the groundwork of a
general platform from which he can examine
the different political
problems that arise from day to day and be able to
adopt a definite
attitude towards each. A man must first acquire a fund of
general ideas
and fit them together so as to form an organic structure of
personal
thought or outlook on life--a WELTANSCHAUUNG. Then he will have that
mental equipment without which he cannot form his own judgments on
particular
questions of the day, and he will have acquired those
qualities that are
necessary for consistency and steadfastness in the
formation of political
opinions. Such a man is now qualified, at least
subjectively, to take his
part in the political conduct of public
affairs.
If these
pre-requisite conditions are not fulfilled, and if a man should
enter
political life without this equipment, he will run a twofold risk.
In the
first place, he may find during the course of events that the
stand which he
originally took in regard to some essential question was
wrong. He will now
have to abandon his former position or else stick to
it against his better
knowledge and riper wisdom and after his reason
and convictions have already
proved it untenable. If he adopt the former
line of action he will find
himself in a difficult personal situation;
because in giving up a position
hitherto maintained he will appear
inconsistent and will have no right to
expect his followers to remain as
loyal to his leadership as they were
before. And, as regards the
followers themselves, they may easily look upon
their leader's change of
policy as showing a lack of judgment inherent in his
character.
Moreover, the change must cause in them a certain feeling of
discomfiture VIS-À-VIS those whom the leader formerly opposed.
If he
adopts the second alternative--which so very frequently happens
to-day--then
public pronouncements of the leader have no longer his
personal persuasion to
support them. And the more that is the case the
defence of his cause will be
all the more hollow and superficial. He now
descends to the adoption of
vulgar means in his defence. While he
himself no longer dreams seriously of
standing by his political
protestations to the last--for no man will die in
defence of something
in which he does not believe--he makes increasing
demands on his
followers. Indeed, the greater be the measure of his own
insincerity,
the more unfortunate and inconsiderate become his claims on his
party
adherents. Finally, he throws aside the last vestiges of true
leadership
and begins to play politics. This means that he becomes one of
those
whose only consistency is their inconsistency, associated with
overbearing insolence and oftentimes an artful mendacity developed to a
shamelessly high degree.
Should such a person, to the misfortune of all
decent people, succeed in
becoming a parliamentary deputy it will be clear
from the outset that
for him the essence of political activity consists in a
heroic struggle
to keep permanent hold on this milk-bottle as a source of
livelihood for
himself and his family. The more his wife and children are
dependent on
him, the more stubbornly will he fight to maintain for himself
the
representation of his parliamentary constituency. For that reason any
other person who gives evidence of political capacity is his personal
enemy.
In every new movement he will apprehend the possible beginning of
his own
downfall. And everyone who is a better man than himself will
appear to him in
the light of a menace.
I shall subsequently deal more fully with the
problem to which this kind
of parliamentary vermin give rise.
When a
man has reached his thirtieth year he has still a great deal to
learn. That
is obvious. But henceforward what he learns will principally
be an
amplification of his basic ideas; it will be fitted in with them
organically
so as to fill up the framework of the fundamental
WELTANSCHAUUNG which he
already possesses. What he learns anew will not
imply the abandonment of
principles already held, but rather a deeper
knowledge of those principles.
And thus his colleagues will never have
the discomforting feeling that they
have been hitherto falsely led by
him. On the contrary, their confidence is
increased when they perceive
that their leader's qualities are steadily
developing along the lines of
an organic growth which results from the
constant assimilation of new
ideas; so that the followers look upon this
process as signifying an
enrichment of the doctrines in which they themselves
believe, in their
eyes every such development is a new witness to the
correctness of that
whole body of opinion which has hitherto been held.
A leader who has to abandon the platform founded on his general
principles, because he recognizes the foundation as false, can act with
honour only when he declares his readiness to accept the final
consequences
of his erroneous views. In such a case he ought to refrain
from taking public
part in any further political activity. Having once
gone astray on essential
things he may possibly go astray a second time.
But, anyhow, he has no right
whatsoever to expect or demand that his
fellow citizens should continue to
give him their support.
How little such a line of conduct commends itself
to our public leaders
nowadays is proved by the general corruption prevalent
among the cabal
which at the present moment feels itself called to political
leadership.
In the whole cabal there is scarcely one who is properly equipped
for
this task.
Although in those days I used to give more time than
most others to the
consideration of political question, yet I carefully
refrained from
taking an open part in politics. Only to a small circle did I
speak of
those things which agitated my mind or were the cause of constant
preoccupation for me. The habit of discussing matters within such a
restricted group had many advantages in itself. Rather than talk at
them, I
learned to feel my way into the modes of thought and views of
those men
around me. Oftentimes such ways of thinking and such views
were quite
primitive. Thus I took every possible occasion to increase my
knowledge of
men.
Nowhere among the German people was the opportunity for making such
a
study so favourable as in Vienna.
In the old Danubian Monarchy
political thought was wider in its range
and had a richer variety of
interests than in the Germany of that
epoch--excepting certain parts of
Prussia, Hamburg and the districts
bordering on the North Sea. When I speak
of Austria here I mean that
part of the great Habsburg Empire which, by
reason of its German
population, furnished not only the historic basis for
the formation of
this State but whose population was for several centuries
also the
exclusive source of cultural life in that political system whose
structure was so artificial. As time went on the stability of the
Austrian
State and the guarantee of its continued existence depended
more and more on
the maintenance of this germ-cell of that Habsburg
Empire.
The
hereditary imperial provinces constituted the heart of the Empire.
And it was
this heart that constantly sent the blood of life pulsating
through the whole
political and cultural system. Corresponding to the
heart of the Empire,
Vienna signified the brain and the will. At that
time Vienna presented an
appearance which made one think of her as an
enthroned queen whose
authoritative sway united the conglomeration of
heterogenous nationalities
that lived under the Habsburg sceptre. The
radiant beauty of the capital city
made one forget the sad symptoms of
senile decay which the State manifested
as a whole.
Though the Empire was internally rickety because of the
terrific
conflict going on between the various nationalities, the outside
world--and Germany in particular--saw only that lovely picture of the
city.
The illusion was all the greater because at that time Vienna
seemed to have
risen to its highest pitch of splendour. Under a Mayor,
who had the true
stamp of administrative genius, the venerable
residential City of the
Emperors of the old Empire seemed to have the
glory of its youth renewed. The
last great German who sprang from the
ranks of the people that had colonized
the East Mark was not a
'statesman', in the official sense. This Dr. Luegar,
however, in his
rôle as Mayor of 'the Imperial Capital and Residential City',
had
achieved so much in almost all spheres of municipal activity, whether
economic or cultural, that the heart of the whole Empire throbbed with
renewed vigour. He thus proved himself a much greater statesman than the
so-called 'diplomats' of that period.
The fact that this political system
of heterogeneous races called
AUSTRIA, finally broke down is no evidence
whatsoever of political
incapacity on the part of the German element in the
old East Mark. The
collapse was the inevitable result of an impossible
situation. Ten
million people cannot permanently hold together a State of
fifty
millions, composed of different and convicting nationalities, unless
certain definite pre-requisite conditions are at hand while there is
still
time to avail of them.
The German-Austrian had very big ways of thinking.
Accustomed to live in
a great Empire, he had a keen sense of the obligations
incumbent on him
in such a situation. He was the only member of the Austrian
State who
looked beyond the borders of the narrow lands belonging to the
Crown and
took in all the frontiers of the Empire in the sweep of his mind.
Indeed
when destiny severed him from the common Fatherland he tried to master
the tremendous task which was set before him as a consequence. This task
was
to maintain for the German-Austrians that patrimony which, through
innumerable struggles, their ancestors had originally wrested from the
East.
It must be remembered that the German-Austrians could not put
their undivided
strength into this effort, because the hearts and minds
of the best among
them were constantly turning back towards their
kinsfolk in the Motherland,
so that only a fraction of their energy
remained to be employed at home.
The mental horizon of the German-Austrian was comparatively broad. His
commercial interests comprised almost every section of the heterogeneous
Empire. The conduct of almost all important undertakings was in his
hands. He
provided the State, for the most part, with its leading
technical experts and
civil servants. He was responsible for carrying on
the foreign trade of the
country, as far as that sphere of activity was
not under Jewish control, The
German-Austrian exclusively represented
the political cement that held the
State together. His military duties
carried him far beyond the narrow
frontiers of his homeland. Though the
recruit might join a regiment made up
of the German element, the
regiment itself might be stationed in Herzegovina
as well as in Vienna
or Galicia. The officers in the Habsburg armies were
still Germans and
so was the predominating element in the higher branches of
the civil
service. Art and science were in German hands. Apart from the new
artistic trash, which might easily have been produced by a negro tribe,
all
genuine artistic inspiration came from the German section of the
population.
In music, architecture, sculpture and painting, Vienna
abundantly supplied
the entire Dual Monarchy. And the source never
seemed to show signs of a
possible exhaustion. Finally, it was the
German element that determined the
conduct of foreign policy, though a
small number of Hungarians were also
active in that field.
All efforts, however, to save the unity of the
State were doomed to end
in failure, because the essential pre-requisites
were missing.
There was only one possible way to control and hold in
check the
centrifugal forces of the different and differing nationalities.
This
way was: to govern the Austrian State and organize it internally on the
principle of centralization. In no other way imaginable could the
existence
of that State be assured.
Now and again there were lucid intervals in the
higher ruling quarters
when this truth was recognized. But it was soon
forgotten again, or else
deliberately ignored, because of the difficulties to
be overcome in
putting it into practice. Every project which aimed at giving
the Empire
a more federal shape was bound to be ineffective because there was
no
strong central authority which could exercise sufficient power within
the State to hold the federal elements together. It must be remembered
in
this connection that conditions in Austria were quite different from
those
which characterized the German State as founded by Bismarck.
Germany was
faced with only one difficulty, which was that of
transforming the purely
political traditions, because throughout the
whole of Bismarck's Germany
there was a common cultural basis. The
German Empire contained only members
of one and the same racial or
national stock, with the exception of a few
minor foreign fragments.
Demographic conditions in Austria were quite the
reverse. With the
exception of Hungary there was no political tradition,
coming down from
a great past, in any of the various affiliated countries. If
there had
been, time had either wiped out all traces of it, or at least,
rendered
them obscure. Moreover, this was the epoch when the principle of
nationality began to be in ascendant; and that phenomenon awakened the
national instincts in the various countries affiliated under the
Habsburg
sceptre. It was difficult to control the action of these newly
awakened
national forces; because, adjacent to the frontiers of the Dual
Monarchy, new
national States were springing up whose people were of the
same or kindred
racial stock as the respective nationalities that
constituted the Habsburg
Empire. These new States were able to exercise
a greater influence than the
German element.
Even Vienna could not hold out for a lengthy period in
this conflict.
When Budapest had developed into a metropolis a rival had
grown up whose
mission was, not to help in holding together the various
divergent parts
of the Empire, but rather to strengthen one part. Within a
short time
Prague followed the example of Budapest; and later on came
Lemberg,
Laibach and others. By raising these places which had formerly been
provincial towns to the rank of national cities, rallying centres were
provided for an independent cultural life. Through this the local
national
instincts acquired a spiritual foundation and therewith gained
a more
profound hold on the people. The time was bound to come when the
particularist interests of those various countries would become stronger
than
their common imperial interests. Once that stage had been reached,
Austria's
doom was sealed.
The course of this development was clearly perceptible
since the death
of Joseph II. Its rapidity depended on a number of factors,
some of
which had their source in the Monarchy itself; while others resulted
from the position which the Empire had taken in foreign politics.
It was
impossible to make anything like a successful effort for the
permanent
consolidation of the Austrian State unless a firm and
persistent policy of
centralization were put into force. Before
everything else the principle
should have been adopted that only one
common language could be used as the
official language of the State.
Thus it would be possible to emphasize the
formal unity of that imperial
commonwealth. And thus the administration would
have in its hands a
technical instrument without which the State could not
endure as a
political unity. In the same way the school and other forms of
education
should have been used to inculcate a feeling of common citizenship.
Such
an objective could not be reached within ten or twenty years. The effort
would have to be envisaged in terms of centuries; just as in all
problems of
colonization, steady perseverance is a far more important
element than the
output of energetic effort at the moment.
It goes without saying that in
such circumstances the country must be
governed and administered by strictly
adhering to the principle of
uniformity.
For me it was quite
instructive to discover why this did not take place,
or rather why it was not
done. Those who were guilty of the omission
must be held responsible for the
break-up of the Habsburg Empire.
More than any other State, the existence
of the old Austria depended on
a strong and capable Government. The Habsburg
Empire lacked ethnical
uniformity, which constitutes the fundamental basis of
a national State
and will preserve the existence of such a State even though
the ruling
power should be grossly inefficient. When a State is composed of a
homogeneous population, the natural inertia of such a population will
hold
the Stage together and maintain its existence through astonishingly
long
periods of misgovernment and maladministration. It may often seem
as if the
principle of life had died out in such a body-politic; but a
time comes when
the apparent corpse rises up and displays before the
world an astonishing
manifestation of its indestructible vitality.
But the situation is
utterly different in a country where the population
is not homogeneous, where
there is no bond of common blood but only that
of one ruling hand. Should the
ruling hand show signs of weakness in
such a State the result will not be to
cause a kind of hibernation of
the State but rather to awaken the
individualist instincts which are
slumbering in the ethnological groups.
These instincts do not make
themselves felt as long as these groups are
dominated by a strong
central will-to-govern. The danger which exists in
these slumbering
separatist instincts can be rendered more or less innocuous
only through
centuries of common education, common traditions and common
interests.
The younger such States are, the more their existence will depend
on the
ability and strength of the central government. If their foundation
was
due only to the work of a strong personality or a leader who is a man of
genius, in many cases they will break up as soon as the founder
disappears;
because, though great, he stood alone. But even after
centuries of a common
education and experiences these separatist
instincts I have spoken of are not
always completely overcome. They may
be only dormant and may suddenly awaken
when the central government
shows weakness and the force of a common
education as well as the
prestige of a common tradition prove unable to
withstand the vital
energies of separatist nationalities forging ahead
towards the shaping
of their own individual existence.
The failure to
see the truth of all this constituted what may be called
the tragic crime of
the Habsburg rulers.
Only before the eyes of one Habsburg ruler, and that
for the last time,
did the hand of Destiny hold aloft the torch that threw
light on the
future of his country. But the torch was then extinguished for
ever.
Joseph II, Roman Emperor of the German nation, was filled with a
growing
anxiety when he realized the fact that his House was removed to an
outlying frontier of his Empire and that the time would soon be at hand
when
it would be overturned and engulfed in the whirlpool caused by that
Babylon
of nationalities, unless something was done at the eleventh hour
to overcome
the dire consequences resulting from the negligence of his
ancestors. With
superhuman energy this 'Friend of Mankind' made every
possible effort to
counteract the effects of the carelessness and
thoughtlessness of his
predecessors. Within one decade he strove to
repair the damage that had been
done through centuries. If Destiny had
only granted him forty years for his
labours, and if only two
generations had carried on the work which he had
started, the miracle
might have been performed. But when he died, broken in
body and spirit
after ten years of rulership, his work sank with him into the
grave and
rests with him there in the Capucin Crypt, sleeping its eternal
sleep,
having never again showed signs of awakening.
His successors
had neither the ability nor the will-power necessary for
the task they had to
face.
When the first signs of a new revolutionary epoch appeared in
Europe
they gradually scattered the fire throughout Austria. And when the
fire
began to glow steadily it was fed and fanned not by the social or
political conditions but by forces that had their origin in the
nationalist
yearnings of the various ethnic groups.
The European revolutionary
movement of 1848 primarily took the form of a
class conflict in almost every
other country, but in Austria it took the
form of a new racial struggle. In
so far as the German-Austrians there
forgot the origins of the movement, or
perhaps had failed to recognize
them at the start and consequently took part
in the revolutionary
uprising, they sealed their own fate. For they thus
helped to awaken the
spirit of Western Democracy which, within a short while,
shattered the
foundations of their own existence.
The setting up of a
representative parliamentary body, without insisting
on the preliminary that
only one language should be used in all public
intercourse under the State,
was the first great blow to the
predominance of the German element in the
Dual Monarchy. From that
moment the State was also doomed to collapse sooner
or later. All that
followed was nothing but the historical liquidation of an
Empire.
To watch that process of progressive disintegration was a tragic
and at
the same time an instructive experience. The execution of history's
decree was carried out in thousands of details. The fact that great
numbers
of people went about blindfolded amid the manifest signs of
dissolution only
proves that the gods had decreed the destruction of
Austria.
I do not
wish to dwell on details because that would lie outside the
scope of this
book. I want to treat in detail only those events which
are typical among the
causes that lead to the decline of nations and
States and which are therefore
of importance to our present age.
Moreover, the study of these events helped
to furnish the basis of my
own political outlook.
Among the
institutions which most clearly manifested unmistakable signs
of decay, even
to the weak-sighted Philistine, was that which, of all
the institutions of
State, ought to have been the most firmly founded--I
mean the Parliament, or
the Reichsrat (Imperial Council) as it was
called in Austria.
The
pattern for this corporate body was obviously that which existed in
England,
the land of classic democracy. The whole of that excellent
organization was
bodily transferred to Austria with as little alteration
as possible.
As the Austrian counterpart to the British two-chamber system a Chamber
of
Deputies and a House of Lords (HERRENHAUS) were established in
Vienna. The
Houses themselves, considered as buildings were somewhat
different. When
Barry built his palaces, or, as we say the Houses of
Parliament, on the shore
of the Thames, he could look to the history of
the British Empire for the
inspiration of his work. In that history he
found sufficient material to fill
and decorate the 1,200 niches,
brackets, and pillars of his magnificent
edifice. His statues and
paintings made the House of Lords and the House of
Commons temples
dedicated to the glory of the nation.
There it was
that Vienna encountered the first difficulty. When Hansen,
the Danish
architect, had completed the last gable of the marble palace
in which the new
body of popular representatives was to be housed he had
to turn to the
ancient classical world for subjects to fill out his
decorative plan. This
theatrical shrine of 'Western Democracy' was
adorned with the statues and
portraits of Greek and Roman statesmen and
philosophers. As if it were meant
for a symbol of irony, the horses of
the quadriga that surmounts the two
Houses are pulling apart from one
another towards all four quarters of the
globe. There could be no better
symbol for the kind of activity going on
within the walls of that same
building.
The 'nationalities' were
opposed to any kind of glorification of
Austrian history in the decoration of
this building, insisting that such
would constitute an offence to them and a
provocation. Much the same
happened in Germany, where the Reich-stag, built
by Wallot, was not
dedicated to the German people until the cannons were
thundering in the
World War. And then it was dedicated by an inscription.
I was not yet twenty years of age when I first entered the Palace on the
Franzens-ring to watch and listen in the Chamber of Deputies. That first
experience aroused in me a profound feeling of repugnance.
I had always
hated the Parliament, but not as an institution in itself.
Quite the
contrary. As one who cherished ideals of political freedom I
could not even
imagine any other form of government. In the light of my
attitude towards the
House of Habsburg I should then have considered it
a crime against liberty
and reason to think of any kind of dictatorship
as a possible form of
government.
A certain admiration which I had for the British Parliament
contributed
towards the formation of this opinion. I became imbued with that
feeling
of admiration almost without my being conscious of the effect of it
through so much reading of newspapers while I was yet quite young. I
could
not discard that admiration all in a moment. The dignified way in
which the
British House of Commons fulfilled its function impressed me
greatly, thanks
largely to the glowing terms in which the Austrian Press
reported these
events. I used to ask myself whether there could be any
nobler form of
government than self-government by the people.
But these considerations
furnished the very motives of my hostility to
the Austrian Parliament. The
form in which parliamentary government was
here represented seemed unworthy
of its great prototype. The following
considerations also influenced my
attitude:
The fate of the German element in the Austrian State depended
on its
position in Parliament. Up to the time that universal suffrage by
secret
ballot was introduced the German representatives had a majority in the
Parliament, though that majority was not a very substantial one. This
situation gave cause for anxiety because the Social-Democratic fraction
of
the German element could not be relied upon when national questions
were at
stake. In matters that were of critical concern for the German
element, the
Social-Democrats always took up an anti-German stand
because they were afraid
of losing their followers among the other
national groups. Already at that
time--before the introduction of
universal suffrage--the Social-Democratic
Party could no longer be
considered as a German Party. The introduction of
universal suffrage put
an end even to the purely numerical predominance of
the German element.
The way was now clear for the further 'de-Germanization'
of the Austrian
State.
The national instinct of self-preservation made
it impossible for me to
welcome a representative system in which the German
element was not
really represented as such, but always betrayed by the
Social-Democratic
fraction. Yet all these, and many others, were defects
which could not
be attributed to the parliamentary system as such, but rather
to the
Austrian State in particular. I still believed that if the German
majority could be restored in the representative body there would be no
occasion to oppose such a system as long as the old Austrian State
continued
to exist.
Such was my general attitude at the time when I first entered
those
sacred and contentious halls. For me they were sacred only because of
the radiant beauty of that majestic edifice. A Greek wonder on German
soil.
But I soon became enraged by the hideous spectacle that met my eyes.
Several hundred representatives were there to discuss a problem of great
economical importance and each representative had the right to have his
say.
That experience of a day was enough to supply me with food for thought
during several weeks afterwards.
The intellectual level of the debate was
quite low. Some times the
debaters did not make themselves intelligible at
all. Several of those
present did not speak German but only their Slav
vernaculars or
dialects. Thus I had the opportunity of hearing with my own
ears what I
had been hitherto acquainted with only through reading the
newspapers. A
turbulent mass of people, all gesticulating and bawling against
one
another, with a pathetic old man shaking his bell and making frantic
efforts to call the House to a sense of its dignity by friendly appeals,
exhortations, and grave warnings.
I could not refrain from laughing.
Several weeks later I paid a second visit. This time the House presented
an entirely different picture, so much so that one could hardly
recognize it
as the same place. The hall was practically empty. They
were sleeping in the
other rooms below. Only a few deputies were in
their places, yawning in each
other's faces. One was speechifying. A
deputy speaker was in the chair. When
he looked round it was quite plain
that he felt bored.
Then I began to
reflect seriously on the whole thing. I went to the
Parliament whenever I had
any time to spare and watched the spectacle
silently but attentively. I
listened to the debates, as far as they
could be understood, and I studied
the more or less intelligent features
of those 'elect' representatives of the
various nationalities which
composed that motley State. Gradually I formed my
own ideas about what I
saw.
A year of such quiet observation was
sufficient to transform or
completely destroy my former convictions as to the
character of this
parliamentary institution. I no longer opposed merely the
perverted form
which the principle of parliamentary representation had
assumed in
Austria. No. It had become impossible for me to accept the system
in
itself. Up to that time I had believed that the disastrous deficiencies
of the Austrian Parliament were due to the lack of a German majority,
but now
I recognized that the institution itself was wrong in its very
essence and
form.
A number of problems presented themselves before my mind. I studied
more
closely the democratic principle of 'decision by the majority vote', and
I scrutinized no less carefully the intellectual and moral worth of the
gentlemen who, as the chosen representatives of the nation, were
entrusted
with the task of making this institution function.
Thus it happened that
at one and the same time I came to know the
institution itself and those of
whom it was composed. And it was thus
that, within the course of a few years,
I came to form a clear and vivid
picture of the average type of that most
lightly worshipped phenomenon
of our time--the parliamentary deputy. The
picture of him which I then
formed became deeply engraved on my mind and I
have never altered it
since, at least as far as essentials go.
Once
again these object-lessons taken from real life saved me from
getting firmly
entangled by a theory which at first sight seems so
alluring to many people,
though that theory itself is a symptom of human
decadence.
Democracy,
as practised in Western Europe to-day, is the fore-runner of
Marxism. In
fact, the latter would not be conceivable without the
former. Democracy is
the breeding-ground in which the bacilli of the
Marxist world pest can grow
and spread. By the introduction of
parliamentarianism, democracy produced an
abortion of filth and fire
(Note 6), the creative fire of which, however,
seems to have died out.
[Note 6. SPOTTGEBURT VON DRECK UND FEUER. This is
the epithet that Faust
hurls at Mephistopheles as the latter intrudes on the
conversation
between Faust and Martha in the garden:
Mephistopheles:
Thou, full of sensual, super-sensual desire,
A girl by the nose is leading
thee.
Faust: Abortion, thou of filth and fire.]
I am more than
grateful to Fate that this problem came to my notice when
I was still in
Vienna; for if I had been in Germany at that time I might
easily have found
only a superficial solution. If I had been in Berlin
when I first discovered
what an illogical thing this institution is
which we call Parliament, I might
easily have gone to the other extreme
and believed--as many people believed,
and apparently not without good
reason--that the salvation of the people and
the Empire could be secured
only by restrengthening the principle of imperial
authority. Those who
had this belief did not discern the tendencies of their
time and were
blind to the aspirations of the people.
In Austria one
could not be so easily misled. There it was impossible to
fall from one error
into another. If the Parliament were worthless, the
Habsburgs were worse; or
at least not in the slightest degree better.
The problem was not solved by
rejecting the parliamentary system.
Immediately the question arose: What
then? To repudiate and abolish the
Vienna Parliament would have resulted in
leaving all power in the hands
of the Habsburgs. For me, especially, that
idea was impossible.
Since this problem was specially difficult in regard
to Austria, I was
forced while still quite young to go into the essentials of
the whole
question more thoroughly than I otherwise should have done.
The aspect of the situation that first made the most striking impression
on
me and gave me grounds for serious reflection was the manifest lack
of any
individual responsibility in the representative body.
The parliament
passes some acts or decree which may have the most
devastating consequences,
yet nobody bears the responsibility for it.
Nobody can be called to account.
For surely one cannot say that a
Cabinet discharges its responsibility when
it retires after having
brought about a catastrophe. Or can we say that the
responsibility is
fully discharged when a new coalition is formed or
parliament dissolved?
Can the principle of responsibility mean anything else
than the
responsibility of a definite person?
Is it at all possible
actually to call to account the leaders of a
parliamentary government for any
kind of action which originated in the
wishes of the whole multitude of
deputies and was carried out under
their orders or sanction? Instead of
developing constructive ideas and
plans, does the business of a statesman
consist in the art of making a
whole pack of blockheads understand his
projects? Is it his business to
entreat and coach them so that they will
grant him their generous
consent?
Is it an indispensable quality in a
statesman that he should possess a
gift of persuasion commensurate with the
statesman's ability to conceive
great political measures and carry them
through into practice?
Does it really prove that a statesman is
incompetent if he should fail
to win over a majority of votes to support his
policy in an assembly
which has been called together as the chance result of
an electoral
system that is not always honestly administered.
Has
there ever been a case where such an assembly has worthily appraised
a great
political concept before that concept was put into practice and
its greatness
openly demonstrated through its success?
In this world is not the
creative act of the genius always a protest
against the inertia of the mass?
What shall the statesman do if he does not succeed in coaxing the
parliamentary multitude to give its consent to his policy? Shall he
purchase
that consent for some sort of consideration?
Or, when confronted with the
obstinate stupidity of his fellow citizens,
should he then refrain from
pushing forward the measures which he deems
to be of vital necessity to the
life of the nation? Should he retire or
remain in power?
In such
circumstances does not a man of character find himself face to
face with an
insoluble contradiction between his own political insight
on the one hand
and, on the other, his moral integrity, or, better
still, his sense of
honesty?
Where can we draw the line between public duty and personal
honour?
Must not every genuine leader renounce the idea of degrading
himself to
the level of a political jobber?
And, on the other hand,
does not every jobber feel the itch to 'play
politics', seeing that the final
responsibility will never rest with him
personally but with an anonymous mass
which can never be called to
account for their deeds?
Must not our
parliamentary principle of government by numerical majority
necessarily lead
to the destruction of the principle of leadership?
Does anybody honestly
believe that human progress originates in the
composite brain of the majority
and not in the brain of the individual
personality?
Or may it be
presumed that for the future human civilization will be
able to dispense with
this as a condition of its existence?
But may it not be that, to-day,
more than ever before, the creative
brain of the individual is indispensable?
The parliamentary principle of vesting legislative power in the decision
of the majority rejects the authority of the individual and puts a
numerical
quota of anonymous heads in its place. In doing so it
contradicts the
aristrocratic principle, which is a fundamental law of
nature; but, of
course, we must remember that in this decadent era of
ours the aristrocratic
principle need not be thought of as incorporated
in the upper ten thousand.
The devastating influence of this parliamentary institution might not
easily be recognized by those who read the Jewish Press, unless the
reader
has learned how to think independently and examine the facts for
himself.
This institution is primarily responsible for the crowded
inrush of mediocre
people into the field of politics. Confronted with
such a phenomenon, a man
who is endowed with real qualities of
leadership will be tempted to refrain
from taking part in political
life; because under these circumstances the
situation does not call for
a man who has a capacity for constructive
statesmanship but rather for a
man who is capable of bargaining for the
favour of the majority. Thus
the situation will appeal to small minds and
will attract them
accordingly.
The narrower the mental outlook and the
more meagre the amount of
knowledge in a political jobber, the more accurate
is his estimate of
his own political stock, and thus he will be all the more
inclined to
appreciate a system which does not demand creative genius or even
high-class talent; but rather that crafty kind of sagacity which makes
an
efficient town clerk. Indeed, he values this kind of small craftiness
more
than the political genius of a Pericles. Such a mediocrity does not
even have
to worry about responsibility for what he does. From the
beginning he knows
that whatever be the results of his 'statesmanship'
his end is already
prescribed by the stars; he will one day have to
clear out and make room for
another who is of similar mental calibre.
For it is another sign of our
decadent times that the number of eminent
statesmen grows according as the
calibre of individual personality
dwindles. That calibre will become smaller
and smaller the more the
individual politician has to depend upon
parliamentary majorities. A man
of real political ability will refuse to be
the beadle for a bevy of
footling cacklers; and they in their turn, being the
representatives of
the majority--which means the dunder-headed
multitude--hate nothing so
much as a superior brain.
For footling
deputies it is always quite a consolation to be led by a
person whose
intellectual stature is on a level with their own. Thus
each one may have the
opportunity to shine in debate among such compeers
and, above all, each one
feels that he may one day rise to the top. If
Peter be boss to-day, then why
not Paul tomorrow?
This new invention of democracy is very closely
connected with a
peculiar phenomenon which has recently spread to a
pernicious extent,
namely the cowardice of a large section of our so-called
political
leaders. Whenever important decisions have to be made they always
find
themselves fortunate in being able to hide behind the backs of what they
call the majority.
In observing one of these political manipulators one
notices how he
wheedles the majority in order to get their sanction for
whatever action
he takes. He has to have accomplices in order to be able to
shift
responsibility to other shoulders whenever it is opportune to do so.
That is the main reason why this kind of political activity is abhorrent
to
men of character and courage, while at the same time it attracts
inferior
types; for a person who is not willing to accept responsibility
for his own
actions, but is always seeking to be covered by something,
must be classed
among the knaves and the rascals. If a national leader
should come from that
lower class of politicians the evil consequences
will soon manifest
themselves. Nobody will then have the courage to take
a decisive step. They
will submit to abuse and defamation rather than
pluck up courage to take a
definite stand. And thus nobody is left who
is willing to risk his position
and his career, if needs be, in support
of a determined line of policy.
One truth which must always be borne in mind is that the majority can
never replace the man. The majority represents not only ignorance but
also
cowardice. And just as a hundred blockheads do not equal one man of
wisdom,
so a hundred poltroons are incapable of any political line of
action that
requires moral strength and fortitude.
The lighter the burden of
responsibility on each individual leader, the
greater will be the number of
those who, in spite of their sorry
mediocrity, will feel the call to place
their immortal energies at the
disposal of the nation. They are so much on
the tip-toe of expectation
that they find it hard to wait their turn. They
stand in a long queue,
painfully and sadly counting the number of those ahead
of them and
calculating the hours until they may eventually come forward.
They watch
every change that takes place in the personnel of the office
towards
which their hopes are directed, and they are grateful for every
scandal
which removes one of the aspirants waiting ahead of them in the
queue.
If somebody sticks too long to his office stool they consider this as
almost a breach of a sacred understanding based on their mutual
solidarity.
They grow furious and give no peace until that inconsiderate
person is
finally driven out and forced to hand over his cosy berth for
public
disposal. After that he will have little chance of getting
another
opportunity. Usually those placemen who have been forced to give
up their
posts push themselves again into the waiting queue unless they
are hounded
away by the protestations of the other aspirants.
The result of all this
is that, in such a State, the succession of
sudden changes in public
positions and public offices has a very
disquieting effect in general, which
may easily lead to disaster when an
adverse crisis arises. It is not only the
ignorant and the incompetent
person who may fall victim to those
parliamentary conditions, for the
genuine leader may be affected just as much
as the others, if not more
so, whenever Fate has chanced to place a capable
man in the position of
leader. Let the superior quality of such a leader be
once recognized and
the result will be that a joint front will be organized
against him,
particularly if that leader, though not coming from their ranks,
should
fall into the habit of intermingling with these illustrious
nincompoops
on their own level. They want to have only their own company and
will
quickly take a hostile attitude towards any man who might show himself
obviously above and beyond them when he mingles in their ranks. Their
instinct, which is so blind in other directions, is very sharp in this
particular.
The inevitable result is that the intellectual level of the
ruling class
sinks steadily. One can easily forecast how much the nation and
State
are bound to suffer from such a condition of affairs, provided one does
not belong to that same class of 'leaders'.
The parliamentary régime in
the old Austria was the very archetype of
the institution as I have described
it.
Though the Austrian Prime Minister was appointed by the King-Emperor,
this act of appointment merely gave practical effect to the will of the
parliament. The huckstering and bargaining that went on in regard to
every
ministerial position showed all the typical marks of Western
Democracy. The
results that followed were in keeping with the principles
applied. The
intervals between the replacement of one person by another
gradually became
shorter, finally ending up in a wild relay chase. With
each change the
quality of the 'statesman' in question deteriorated,
until finally only the
petty type of political huckster remained. In
such people the qualities of
statesmanship were measured and valued
according to the adroitness with which
they pieced together one
coalition after another; in other words, their
craftiness in
manipulating the pettiest political transactions, which is the
only kind
of practical activity suited to the aptitudes of these
representatives.
In this sphere Vienna was the school which offered the
most impressive
examples.
Another feature that engaged my attention
quite as much as the features
I have already spoken of was the contrast
between the talents and
knowledge of these representatives of the people on
the one hand and, on
the other, the nature of the tasks they had to face.
Willingly or
unwillingly, one could not help thinking seriously of the narrow
intellectual outlook of these chosen representatives of the various
constituent nationalities, and one could not avoid pondering on the
methods
through which these noble figures in our public life were first
discovered.
It was worth while to make a thorough study and examination of the way
in
which the real talents of these gentlemen were devoted to the service
of
their country; in other words, to analyse thoroughly the technical
procedure
of their activities.
The whole spectacle of parliamentary life became
more and more desolate
the more one penetrated into its intimate structure
and studied the
persons and principles of the system in a spirit of ruthless
objectivity. Indeed, it is very necessary to be strictly objective in
the
study of the institution whose sponsors talk of 'objectivity' in
every other
sentence as the only fair basis of examination and judgment.
If one studied
these gentlemen and the laws of their strenuous existence
the results were
surprising.
There is no other principle which turns out to be quite so
ill-conceived
as the parliamentary principle, if we examine it objectively.
In our examination of it we may pass over the methods according to which
the election of the representatives takes place, as well as the ways
which
bring them into office and bestow new titles on them. It is quite
evident
that only to a tiny degree are public wishes or public
necessities satisfied
by the manner in which an election takes place;
for everybody who properly
estimates the political intelligence of the
masses can easily see that this
is not sufficiently developed to enable
them to form general political
judgments on their own account, or to
select the men who might be competent
to carry out their ideas in
practice.
Whatever definition we may give
of the term 'public opinion', only a
very small part of it originates from
personal experience or individual
insight. The greater portion of it results
from the manner in which
public matters have been presented to the people
through an
overwhelmingly impressive and persistent system of 'information'.
In the religious sphere the profession of a denominational belief is
largely the result of education, while the religious yearning itself
slumbers
in the soul; so too the political opinions of the masses are
the final result
of influences systematically operating on human
sentiment and intelligence in
virtue of a method which is applied
sometimes with almost-incredible
thoroughness and perseverance.
By far the most effective branch of
political education, which in this
connection is best expressed by the word
'propaganda', is carried on by
the Press. The Press is the chief means
employed in the process of
political 'enlightenment'. It represents a kind of
school for adults.
This educational activity, however, is not in the hands of
the State but
in the clutches of powers which are partly of a very inferior
character.
While still a young man in Vienna I had excellent opportunities
for
coming to know the men who owned this machine for mass instruction, as
well as those who supplied it with the ideas it distributed. At first I
was
quite surprised when I realized how little time was necessary for
this
dangerous Great Power within the State to produce a certain belief
among the
public; and in doing so the genuine will and convictions of
the public were
often completely misconstrued. It took the Press only a
few days to transform
some ridiculously trivial matter into an issue of
national importance, while
vital problems were completely ignored or
filched and hidden away from public
attention.
The Press succeeded in the magical art of producing names from
nowhere
within the course of a few weeks. They made it appear that the great
hopes of the masses were bound up with those names. And so they made
those
names more popular than any man of real ability could ever hope to
be in a
long lifetime. All this was done, despite the fact that such
names were
utterly unknown and indeed had never been heard of even up to
a month before
the Press publicly emblazoned them. At the same time old
and tried figures in
the political and other spheres of life quickly
faded from the public memory
and were forgotten as if they were dead,
though still healthy and in the
enjoyment of their full viguour. Or
sometimes such men were so vilely abused
that it looked as if their
names would soon stand as permanent symbols of the
worst kind of
baseness. In order to estimate properly the really pernicious
influence
which the Press can exercise one had to study this infamous Jewish
method whereby honourable and decent people were besmirched with mud and
filth, in the form of low abuse and slander, from hundreds and hundreds
of
quarters simultaneously, as if commanded by some magic formula.
These
highway robbers would grab at anything which might serve their
evil ends.
They would poke their noses into the most intimate family affairs and
would not rest until they had sniffed out some petty item which could be
used
to destroy the reputation of their victim. But if the result of all
this
sniffing should be that nothing derogatory was discovered in the
private or
public life of the victim, they continued to hurl abuse at
him, in the belief
that some of their animadversions would stick even
though refuted a thousand
times. In most cases it finally turned out
impossible for the victim to
continue his defence, because the accuser
worked together with so many
accomplices that his slanders were
re-echoed interminably. But these
slanderers would never own that they
were acting from motives which influence
the common run of humanity or
are understood by them. Oh, no. The scoundrel
who defamed his
contemporaries in this villainous way would crown himself
with a halo of
heroic probity fashioned of unctuous phraseology and twaddle
about his
'duties as a journalist' and other mouldy nonsense of that kind.
When
these cuttle-fishes gathered together in large shoals at meetings and
congresses they would give out a lot of slimy talk about a special kind
of
honour which they called the professional honour of the journalist.
Then the
assembled species would bow their respects to one another.
These are the
kind of beings that fabricate more than two-thirds of what
is called public
opinion, from the foam of which the parliamentary
Aphrodite eventually
arises.
Several volumes would be needed if one were to give an adequate
account
of the whole procedure and fully describe all its hollow fallacies.
But
if we pass over the details and look at the product itself while it is
in operation I think this alone will be sufficient to open the eyes of
even
the most innocent and credulous person, so that he may recognize
the
absurdity of this institution by looking at it objectively.
In order to
realize how this human aberration is as harmful as it is
absurd, the test and
easiest method is to compare democratic
parliamentarianism with a genuine
German democracy.
The remarkable characteristic of the parliamentary form
of democracy is
the fact that a number of persons, let us say five
hundred--including,
in recent time, women also--are elected to parliament and
invested with
authority to give final judgment on anything and everything. In
practice
they alone are the governing body; for although they may appoint a
Cabinet, which seems outwardly to direct the affairs of state, this
Cabinet
has not a real existence of its own. In reality the so-called
Government
cannot do anything against the will of the assembly. It can
never be called
to account for anything, since the right of decision is
not vested in the
Cabinet but in the parliamentary majority. The Cabinet
always functions only
as the executor of the will of the majority. Its
political ability can be
judged only according to how far it succeeds in
adjusting itself to the will
of the majority or in persuading the
majority to agree to its proposals. But
this means that it must descend
from the level of a real governing power to
that of a mendicant who has
to beg the approval of a majority that may be got
together for the time
being. Indeed, the chief preoccupation of the Cabinet
must be to secure
for itself, in the case of' each individual measure, the
favour of the
majority then in power or, failing that, to form a new majority
that
will be more favourably disposed. If it should succeed in either of
these efforts it may go on 'governing' for a little while. If it should
fail
to win or form a majority it must retire. The question whether its
policy as
such has been right or wrong does not matter at all.
Thereby all
responsibility is abolished in practice. To what
consequences such a state of
affairs can lead may easily be understood
from the following simple
considerations:
Those five hundred deputies who have been elected by the
people come
from various dissimilar callings in life and show very varying
degrees
of political capacity, with the result that the whole combination is
disjointed and sometimes presents quite a sorry picture. Surely nobody
believes that these chosen representatives of the nation are the choice
spirits or first-class intellects. Nobody, I hope, is foolish enough to
pretend that hundreds of statesmen can emerge from papers placed in the
ballot box by electors who are anything else but averagely intelligent.
The
absurd notion that men of genius are born out of universal suffrage
cannot be
too strongly repudiated. In the first place, those times may
be really called
blessed when one genuine statesman makes his appearance
among a people. Such
statesmen do not appear all at once in hundreds or
more. Secondly, among the
broad masses there is instinctively a definite
antipathy towards every
outstanding genius. There is a better chance of
seeing a camel pass through
the eye of a needle than of seeing a really
great man 'discovered' through an
election.
Whatever has happened in history above the level of the average
of the
broad public has mostly been due to the driving force of an individual
personality.
But here five hundred persons of less than modest
intellectual qualities
pass judgment on the most important problems affecting
the nation. They
form governments which in turn learn to win the approval of
the
illustrious assembly for every legislative step that may be taken, which
means that the policy to be carried out is actually the policy of the
five
hundred.
And indeed, generally speaking, the policy bears the stamp of
its
origin.
But let us pass over the intellectual qualities of these
representatives
and ask what is the nature of the task set before them. If we
consider
the fact that the problems which have to be discussed and solved
belong
to the most varied and diverse fields we can very well realize how
inefficient a governing system must be which entrusts the right of
decision
to a mass assembly in which only very few possess the knowledge
and
experience such as would qualify them to deal with the matters that
have to
be settled. The most important economic measures are submitted
to a tribunal
in which not more than one-tenth of the members have
studied the elements of
economics. This means that final authority is
vested in men who are utterly
devoid of any preparatory training which
might make them competent to decide
on the questions at issue.
The same holds true of every other problem. It
is always a majority of
ignorant and incompetent people who decide on each
measure; for the
composition of the institution does not vary, while the
problems to be
dealt with come from the most varied spheres of public life.
An
intelligent judgment would be possible only if different deputies had
the authority to deal with different issues. It is out of the question
to
think that the same people are fitted to decide on transport
questions as
well as, let us say, on questions of foreign policy, unless
each of them be a
universal genius. But scarcely more than one genius
appears in a century.
Here we are scarcely ever dealing with real
brains, but only with dilettanti
who are as narrow-minded as they are
conceited and arrogant, intellectual
DEMI-MONDES of the worst kind. This
is why these honourable gentlemen show
such astonishing levity in
discussing and deciding on matters that would
demand the most
painstaking consideration even from great minds. Measures of
momentous
importance for the future existence of the State are framed and
discussed in an atmosphere more suited to the card-table. Indeed the
latter
suggests a much more fitting occupation for these gentlemen than
that of
deciding the destinies of a people.
Of course it would be unfair to
assume that each member in such a
parliament was endowed by nature with such
a small sense of
responsibility. That is out of the question.
But this
system, by forcing the individual to pass judgment on questions
for which he
is not competent gradually debases his moral character.
Nobody will have the
courage to say: "Gentlemen, I am afraid we know
nothing about what we are
talking about. I for one have no competency in
the matter at all." Anyhow if
such a declaration were made it would not
change matters very much; for such
outspoken honesty would not be
understood. The person who made the
declaration would be deemed an
honourable ass who ought not to be allowed to
spoil the game. Those who
have a knowledge of human nature know that nobody
likes to be considered
a fool among his associates; and in certain circles
honesty is taken as
an index of stupidity.
Thus it happens that a
naturally upright man, once he finds himself
elected to parliament, may
eventually be induced by the force of
circumstances to acquiesce in a general
line of conduct which is base in
itself and amounts to a betrayal of the
public trust. That feeling that
if the individual refrained from taking part
in a certain decision his
attitude would not alter the situation in the
least, destroys every real
sense of honour which might occasionally arouse
the conscience of one
person or another. Finally, the otherwise upright
deputy will succeed in
persuading himself that he is by no means the worst of
the lot and that
by taking part in a certain line of action he may prevent
something
worse from happening.
A counter argument may be put forward
here. It may be said that of
course the individual member may not have the
knowledge which is
requisite for the treatment of this or that question, yet
his attitude
towards it is taken on the advice of his Party as the guiding
authority
in each political matter; and it may further be said that the Party
sets
up special committees of experts who have even more than the requisite
knowledge for dealing with the questions placed before them.
At first
sight, that argument seems sound. But then another question
arises--namely,
why are five hundred persons elected if only a few have
the wisdom which is
required to deal with the more important problems?
It is not the aim of
our modern democratic parliamentary system to bring
together an assembly of
intelligent and well-informed deputies. Not at
all. The aim rather is to
bring together a group of nonentities who are
dependent on others for their
views and who can be all the more easily
led, the narrower the mental outlook
of each individual is. That is the
only way in which a party policy,
according to the evil meaning it has
to-day, can be put into effect. And by
this method alone it is possible
for the wirepuller, who exercises the real
control, to remain in the
dark, so that personally he can never be brought to
account for his
actions. For under such circumstances none of the decisions
taken, no
matter how disastrous they may turn out for the nation as a whole,
can
be laid at the door of the individual whom everybody knows to be the
evil genius responsible for the whole affair. All responsibility is
shifted
to the shoulders of the Party as a whole.
In practice no actual
responsibility remains. For responsibility arises
only from personal duty and
not from the obligations that rest with a
parliamentary assembly of empty
talkers.
The parliamentary institution attracts people of the badger
type, who do
not like the open light. No upright man, who is ready to accept
personal
responsibility for his acts, will be attracted to such an
institution.
That is the reason why this brand of democracy has become a
tool in the
hand of that race which, because of the inner purposes it wishes
to
attain, must shun the open light, as it has always done and always will
do. Only a Jew can praise an institution which is as corrupt and false
as
himself.
As a contrast to this kind of democracy we have the German
democracy,
which is a true democracy; for here the leader is freely chosen
and is
obliged to accept full responsibility for all his actions and
omissions.
The problems to be dealt with are not put to the vote of the
majority;
but they are decided upon by the individual, and as a guarantee of
responsibility for those decisions he pledges all he has in the world
and
even his life.
The objection may be raised here that under such
conditions it would be
very difficult to find a man who would be ready to
devote himself to so
fateful a task. The answer to that objection is as
follows:
We thank God that the inner spirit of our German democracy will
of
itself prevent the chance careerist, who may be intellectually worthless
and a moral twister, from coming by devious ways to a position in which
he
may govern his fellow-citizens. The fear of undertaking such
far-reaching
responsibilities, under German democracy, will scare off
the ignorant and the
feckless.
But should it happen that such a person might creep in
surreptitiously
it will be easy enough to identify him and apostrophize him
ruthlessly.
somewhat thus: "Be off, you scoundrel. Don't soil these steps
with your
feet; because these are the steps that lead to the portals of the
Pantheon of History, and they are not meant for place-hunters but for
men of
noble character."
Such were the views I formed after two years of
attendance at the
sessions of the Viennese Parliament. Then I went there no
more.
The parliamentary regime became one of the causes why the strength
of
the Habsburg State steadily declined during the last years of its
existence. The more the predominance of the German element was whittled
away
through parliamentary procedure, the more prominent became the
system of
playing off one of the various constituent nationalities
against the other.
In the Imperial Parliament it was always the German
element that suffered
through the system, which meant that the results
were detrimental to the
Empire as a whole; for at the close of the
century even the most
simple-minded people could recognize that the
cohesive forces within the Dual
Monarchy no longer sufficed to
counterbalance the separatist tendencies of
the provincial
nationalities. On the contrary!
The measures which the
State adopted for its own maintenance became more
and more mean spirited and
in a like degree the general disrespect for
the State increased. Not only
Hungary but also the various Slav
provinces gradually ceased to identify
themselves with the monarchy
which embraced them all, and accordingly they
did not feel its weakness
as in any way detrimental to themselves. They
rather welcomed those
manifestations of senile decay. They looked forward to
the final
dissolution of the State, and not to its recovery.
The
complete collapse was still forestalled in Parliament by the
humiliating
concessions that were made to every kind of importunate
demands, at the cost
of the German element. Throughout the country the
defence of the State rested
on playing off the various nationalities
against one another. But the general
trend of this development was
directed against the Germans. Especially since
the right of succession
to the throne conferred certain influence on the
Archduke Franz
Ferdinand, the policy of increasing the power of the Czechs
was carried
out systematically from the upper grades of the administration
down to
the lower. With all the means at his command the heir to the Dual
Monarchy personally furthered the policy that aimed at eliminating the
influence of the German element, or at least he acted as protector of
that
policy. By the use of State officials as tools, purely German
districts were
gradually but decisively brought within the danger zone
of the mixed
languages. Even in Lower Austria this process began to make
headway with a
constantly increasing tempo and Vienna was looked upon by
the Czechs as their
biggest city.
In the family circle of this new Habsburger the Czech
language was
favoured. The wife of the Archduke had formerly been a Czech
Countess
and was wedded to the Prince by a morganatic marriage. She came from
an
environment where hostility to the Germans had been traditional. The
leading idea in the mind of the Archduke was to establish a Slav State
in
Central Europe, which was to be constructed on a purely Catholic
basis, so as
to serve as a bulwark against Orthodox Russia.
As had happened often in
Habsburg history, religion was thus exploited
to serve a purely political
policy, and in this case a fatal policy, at
least as far as German interests
were concerned. The result was
lamentable in many respects.
Neither
the House of Habsburg nor the Catholic Church received the
reward which they
expected. Habsburg lost the throne and the Church lost
a great State. By
employing religious motives in the service of
politics, a spirit was aroused
which the instigators of that policy had
never thought possible.
From
the attempt to exterminate Germanism in the old monarchy by every
available
means arose the Pan-German Movement in Austria, as a response.
In the
'eighties of the last century Manchester Liberalism, which was
Jewish in its
fundamental ideas, had reached the zenith of its influence
in the Dual
Monarchy, or had already passed that point. The reaction
which set in did not
arise from social but from nationalistic
tendencies, as was always the case
in the old Austria. The instinct of
self-preservation drove the German
element to defend itself
energetically. Economic considerations only slowly
began to gain an
important influence; but they were of secondary concern. But
of the
general political chaos two party organizations emerged. The one was
more of a national, and the other more of a social, character; but both
were
highly interesting and instructive for the future.
After the war of 1866,
which had resulted in the humiliation of Austria,
the House of Habsburg
contemplated a REVANCHE on the battlefield. Only
the tragic end of the
Emperor Maximilian of Mexico prevented a still
closer collaboration with
France. The chief blame for Maximilian's
disastrous expedition was attributed
to Napoleon III and the fact that
the Frenchman left him in the lurch aroused
a general feeling of
indignation. Yet the Habsburgs were still lying in wait
for their
opportunity. If the war of 1870-71 had not been such a singular
triumph,
the Viennese Court might have chanced the game of blood in order to
get
its revenge for Sadowa. But when the first reports arrived from the
Franco-German battlefield, which, though true, seemed miraculous and
almost
incredible, the 'most wise' of all monarchs recognized that the
moment was
inopportune and tried to accept the unfavourable situation
with as good a
grace as possible.
The heroic conflict of those two years (1870-71)
produced a still
greater miracle; for with the Habsburgs the change of
attitude never
came from an inner heartfelt urge but only from the pressure
of
circumstances. The German people of the East Mark, however, were
entranced by the triumphant glory of the newly established German Empire
and
were profoundly moved when they saw the dream of their fathers
resurgent in a
magnificent reality.
For--let us make no mistake about it--the true
German-Austrian realized
from this time onward, that Königgrätz was the
tragic, though necessary,
pre-condition for the re-establishment of an Empire
which should no
longer be burdened with the palsy of the old alliance and
which indeed
had no share in that morbid decay. Above all, the
German-Austrian had
come to feel in the very depths of his own being that the
historical
mission of the House of Habsburg had come to an end and that the
new
Empire could choose only an Emperor who was of heroic mould and was
therefore worthy to wear the 'Crown of the Rhine'. It was right and just
that
Destiny should be praised for having chosen a scion of that House
of which
Frederick the Great had in past times given the nation an
elevated and
resplendent symbol for all time to come.
After the great war of 1870-71
the House of Habsburg set to work with
all its determination to exterminate
the dangerous German element--about
whose inner feelings and attitude there
could be no doubt--slowly but
deliberately. I use the word exterminate,
because that alone expresses
what must have been the final result of the
Slavophile policy. Then it
was that the fire of rebellion blazed up among the
people whose
extermination had been decreed. That fire was such as had never
been
witnessed in modern German history.
For the first time
nationalists and patriots were transformed into
rebels.
Not rebels
against the nation or the State as such but rebels against
that form of
government which they were convinced, would inevitably
bring about the ruin
of their own people. For the first time in modern
history the traditional
dynastic patriotism and national love of
fatherland and people were in open
conflict.
It was to the merit of the Pan-German movement in Austria
during the
closing decade of the last century that it pointed out clearly and
unequivocally that a State is entitled to demand respect and protection
for
its authority only when such authority is administered in accordance
with the
interests of the nation, or at least not in a manner
detrimental to those
interests.
The authority of the State can never be an end in itself; for,
if that
were so, any kind of tyranny would be inviolable and sacred.
If a government uses the instruments of power in its hands for the
purpose of
leading a people to ruin, then rebellion is not only the
right but also the
duty of every individual citizen.
The question of whether and when such a
situation exists cannot be
answered by theoretical dissertations but only by
the exercise of force,
and it is success that decides the issue.
Every
government, even though it may be the worst possible and even
though it may
have betrayed the nation's trust in thousands of ways,
will claim that its
duty is to uphold the authority of the State. Its
adversaries, who are
fighting for national self-preservation, must use
the same weapons which the
government uses if they are to prevail
against such a rule and secure their
own freedom and independence.
Therefore the conflict will be fought out with
'legal' means as long as
the power which is to be overthrown uses them; but
the insurgents will
not hesitate to apply illegal means if the oppressor
himself employs
them.
Generally speaking, we must not forget that the
highest aim of human
existence is not the maintenance of a State of
Government but rather the
conservation of the race.
If the race is in
danger of being oppressed or even exterminated the
question of legality is
only of secondary importance. The established
power may in such a case employ
only those means which are recognized as
'legal'. yet the instinct of
self-preservation on the part of the
oppressed will always justify, to the
highest degree, the employment of
all possible resources.
Only on the
recognition of this principle was it possible for those
struggles to be
carried through, of which history furnishes magnificent
examples in
abundance, against foreign bondage or oppression at home.
Human rights
are above the rights of the State. But if a people be
defeated in the
struggle for its human rights this means that its weight
has proved too light
in the scale of Destiny to have the luck of being
able to endure in this
terrestrial world.
The world is not there to be possessed by the
faint-hearted races.
Austria affords a very clear and striking
example of how easy it is for
tyranny to hide its head under the cloak of
what is called 'legality'.
The legal exercise of power in the Habsburg
State was then based on the
anti-German attitude of the parliament, with its
non-German majorities,
and on the dynastic House, which was also hostile to
the German element.
The whole authority of the State was incorporated in
these two factors.
To attempt to alter the lot of the German element through
these two
factors would have been senseless. Those who advised the 'legal'
way as
the only possible way, and also obedience to the State authority,
could
offer no resistance; because a policy of resistance could not have been
put into effect through legal measures. To follow the advice of the
legalist
counsellors would have meant the inevitable ruin of the German
element within
the Monarchy, and this disaster would not have taken long
to come. The German
element has actually been saved only because the
State as such collapsed.
The spectacled theorist would have given his life for his doctrine
rather
than for his people.
Because man has made laws he subsequently comes to
think that he exists
for the sake of the laws.
A great service
rendered by the pan-German movement then was that it
abolished all such
nonsense, though the doctrinaire theorists and other
fetish worshippers were
shocked.
When the Habsburgs attempted to come to close quarters with the
German
element, by the employment of all the means of attack which they had
at
their command, the Pan-German Party hit out ruthlessly against the
'illustrious' dynasty. This Party was the first to probe into and expose
the
corrupt condition of the State; and in doing so they opened the eyes
of
hundreds of thousands. To have liberated the high ideal of love for
one's
country from the embrace of this deplorable dynasty was one of the
great
services rendered by the Pan-German movement.
When that Party first made
its appearance it secured a large
following--indeed, the movement threatened
to become almost an
avalanche. But the first successes were not maintained.
At the time I
came to Vienna the pan-German Party had been eclipsed by the
Christian-Socialist Party, which had come into power in the meantime.
Indeed,
the Pan-German Party had sunk to a level of almost complete
insignificance.
The rise and decline of the Pan-German movement on the one hand and the
marvellous progress of the Christian-Socialist Party on the other,
became a
classic object of study for me, and as such they played an
important part in
the development of my own views.
When I came to Vienna all my sympathies
were exclusively with the
Pan-German Movement.
I was just as much
impressed by the fact that they had the courage to
shout HEIL HOHENZOLLERN as
I rejoiced at their determination to consider
themselves an integral part of
the German Empire, from which they were
separated only provisionally. They
never missed an opportunity to
explain their attitude in public, which raised
my enthusiasm and
confidence. To avow one's principles publicly on every
problem that
concerned Germanism, and never to make any compromises, seemed
to me the
only way of saving our people. What I could not understand was how
this
movement broke down so soon after such a magnificent start; and it was
no less incomprehensible that the Christian-Socialists should gain such
tremendous power within such a short time. They had just reached the
pinnacle
of their popularity.
When I began to compare those two movements Fate
placed before me the
best means of understanding the causes of this puzzling
problem. The
action of Fate in this case was hastened by my own straitened
circumstances.
I shall begin my analysis with an account of the two men
who must be
regarded as the founders and leaders of the two movements. These
were
George von Schönerer and Dr. Karl Lueger.
As far as personality
goes, both were far above the level and stature of
the so-called
parliamentary figures. They lived lives of immaculate and
irreproachable
probity amidst the miasma of all-round political
corruption. Personally I
first liked the Pan-German representative,
Schönerer, and it was only
afterwards and gradually that I felt an equal
liking for the
Christian-Socialist leader.
When I compared their respective abilities
Schönerer seemed to me a
better and more profound thinker on fundamental
problems. He foresaw the
inevitable downfall of the Austrian State more
clearly and accurately
than anyone else. If this warning in regard to the
Habsburg Empire had
been heeded in Germany the disastrous world war, which
involved Germany
against the whole of Europe, would never have taken place.
But though Schönerer succeeded in penetrating to the essentials of a
problem he was very often much mistaken in his judgment of men.
And
herein lay Dr. Lueger's special talent. He had a rare gift of
insight into
human nature and he was very careful not to take men as
something better than
they were in reality. He based his plans on the
practical possibilities which
human life offered him, whereas Schönerer
had only little discrimination in
that respect. All ideas that this
Pan-German had were right in the abstract,
but he did not have the
forcefulness or understanding necessary to put his
ideas across to the
broad masses. He was not able to formulate them so that
they could be
easily grasped by the masses, whose powers of comprehension are
limited
and will always remain so. Therefore all Schönerer's knowledge was
only
the wisdom of a prophet and he never could succeed in having it put into
practice.
This lack of insight into human nature led him to form a wrong
estimate
of the forces behind certain movements and the inherent strength of
old
institutions.
Schönerer indeed realized that the problems he had
to deal with were in
the nature of a WELTANSCHAUUNG; but he did not
understand that only the
broad masses of a nation can make such convictions
prevail, which are
almost of a religious nature.
Unfortunately he
understood only very imperfectly how feeble is the
fighting spirit of the
so-called bourgeoisie. That weakness is due to
their business interests,
which individuals are too much afraid of
risking and which therefore deter
them from taking action. And,
generally speaking, a WELTANSCHAUUNG can have
no prospect of success
unless the broad masses declare themselves ready to
act as its
standard-bearers and to fight on its behalf wherever and to
whatever
extent that may be necessary.
This failure to understand the
importance of the lower strata of the
population resulted in a very
inadequate concept of the social problem.
In all this Dr. Lueger was the
opposite of Schönerer. His profound
knowledge of human nature enabled him to
form a correct estimate of the
various social forces and it saved him from
under-rating the power of
existing institutions. And it was perhaps this very
quality which
enabled him to utilize those institutions as a means to serve
the
purposes of his policy.
He saw only too clearly that, in our
epoch, the political fighting power
of the upper classes is quite
insignificant and not at all capable of
fighting for a great new movement
until the triumph of that movement be
secured. Thus he devoted the greatest
part of his political activity to
the task of winning over those sections of
the population whose
existence was in danger and fostering the militant
spirit in them rather
than attempting to paralyse it. He was also quick to
adopt all available
means for winning the support of long-established
institutions, so as to
be able to derive the greatest possible advantage for
his movement from
those old sources of power.
Thus it was that, first
of all, he chose as the social basis of his new
Party that middle class which
was threatened with extinction. In this
way he secured a solid following
which was willing to make great
sacrifices and had good fighting stamina. His
extremely wise attitude
towards the Catholic Church rapidly won over the
younger clergy in such
large numbers that the old Clerical Party was forced
to retire from the
field of action or else, which was the wiser course, join
the new Party,
in the hope of gradually winning back one position after
another.
But it would be a serious injustice to the man if we were to
regard this
as his essential characteristic. For he possessed the qualities
of an
able tactician, and had the true genius of a great reformer; but all
these were limited by his exact perception of the possibilities at hand
and
also of his own capabilities.
The aims which this really eminent man
decided to pursue were intensely
practical. He wished to conquer Vienna, the
heart of the Monarchy. It
was from Vienna that the last pulses of life beat
through the diseased
and worn-out body of the decrepit Empire. If the heart
could be made
healthier the others parts of the body were bound to revive.
That idea
was correct in principle; but the time within which it could be
applied
in practice was strictly limited. And that was the man's weak point.
His achievements as Burgomaster of the City of Vienna are immortal, in
the best sense of the word. But all that could not save the Monarchy. It
came
too late.
His rival, Schönerer, saw this more clearly. What Dr. Lueger
undertook
to put into practice turned out marvellously successful. But the
results
which he expected to follow these achievements did not come.
Schönerer
did not attain the ends he had proposed to himself; but his fears
were
realized, alas, in a terrible fashion. Thus both these men failed to
attain their further objectives. Lueger could not save Austria and
Schönerer
could not prevent the downfall of the German people in
Austria.
To
study the causes of failure in the case of these two parties is to
learn a
lesson that is highly instructive for our own epoch. This is
specially useful
for my friends, because in many points the
circumstances of our own day are
similar to those of that time.
Therefore such a lesson may help us to guard
against the mistakes which
brought one of those movements to an end and
rendered the other barren
of results.
In my opinion, the wreck of the
Pan-German Movement in Austria must be
attributed to three causes.
The
first of these consisted in the fact that the leaders did not have a
clear
concept of the importance of the social problem, particularly for
a new
movement which had an essentially revolutionary character.
Schönerer and his
followers directed their attention principally to the
bourgeois classes. For
that reason their movement was bound to turn out
mediocre and tame. The
German bourgeoisie, especially in its upper
circles, is pacifist even to the
point of complete
self-abnegation--though the individual may not be aware of
this--wherever the internal affairs of the nation or State are
concerned. In
good times, which in this case means times of good
government, such a
psychological attitude makes this social layer
extraordinarily valuable to
the State. But when there is a bad
government, such a quality has a
destructive effect. In order to assure
the possibility of carrying through a
really strenuous struggle, the
Pan-German Movement should have devoted its
efforts to winning over the
masses. The failure to do this left the movement
from the very beginning
without the elementary impulse which such a wave
needs if it is not to
ebb within a short while.
In failing to see the
truth of this principle clearly at the very outset
of the movement and in
neglecting to put it into practice the new Party
made an initial mistake
which could not possibly be rectified
afterwards. For the numerous moderate
bourgeois elements admitted into
the movements increasingly determined its
internal orientation and thus
forestalled all further prospects of gaining
any appreciable support
among the masses of the people. Under such conditions
such a movement
could not get beyond mere discussion and criticism.
Quasi-religious
faith and the spirit of sacrifice were not to be found in the
movement
any more. Their place was taken by the effort towards 'positive'
collaboration, which in this case meant the acknowledgment of the
existing
state of affairs, gradually whittling away the rough corners of
the questions
in dispute, and ending up with the making of a
dishonourable peace.
Such was the fate of the Pan-German Movement, because at the start the
leaders did not realize that the most important condition of success was
that
they should recruit their following from the broad masses of the
people. The
Movement thus became bourgeois and respectable and radical
only in
moderation.
From this failure resulted the second cause of its rapid
decline.
The position of the Germans in Austria was already desperate
when
Pan-Germanism arose. Year after year Parliament was being used more and
more as an instrument for the gradual extinction of the German-Austrian
population. The only hope for any eleventh-hour effort to save it lay in
the
overthrow of the parliamentary system; but there was very little
prospect of
this happening.
Therewith the Pan-German Movement was confronted with a
question of
primary importance.
To overthrow the Parliament, should
the Pan-Germanists have entered it
'to undermine it from within', as the
current phrase was? Or should they
have assailed the institution as such from
the outside?
They entered the Parliament and came out defeated. But they
had found
themselves obliged to enter.
For in order to wage an
effective war against such a power from the
outside, indomitable courage and
a ready spirit of sacrifice were
necessary weapons. In such cases the bull
must be seized by the horns.
Furious drives may bring the assailant to the
ground again and again;
but if he has a stout heart he will stand up, even
though some bones may
be broken, and only after a long and tough struggle
will he achieve his
triumph. New champions are attracted to a cause by the
appeal of great
sacrifices made for its sake, until that indomitable spirit
is finally
crowned with success.
For such a result, however, the
children of the people from the great
masses are necessary. They alone have
the requisite determination and
tenacity to fight a sanguinary issue through
to the end. But the
Pan-German Movement did not have these broad masses as
its champions,
and so no other means of solution could be tried out except
that of
entering Parliamcnt.
It would be a mistake to think that this
decision resulted from a long
series of internal hesitations of a moral kind,
or that it was the
outcome of careful calculation. No. They did not even
think of another
solution. Those who participated in this blunder were
actuated by
general considerations and vague notions as to what would be the
significance and effect of taking part in such a special way in that
institution which they had condemned on principle. In general they hoped
that
they would thus have the means of expounding their cause to the
great masses
of the people, because they would be able to speak before
'the forum of the
whole nation'. Also, it seemed reasonable to believe
that by attacking the
evil in the root they would be more effective than
if the attack came from
outside. They believed that, if protected by the
immunity of Parliament, the
position of the individual protagonists
would be strengthened and that thus
the force of their attacks would be
enhanced.
In reality everything
turned out quite otherwise.
The Forum before which the Pan-German
representatives spoke had not
grown greater, but had actually become smaller;
for each spoke only to
the circle that was ready to listen to him or could
read the report of
his speech in the newspapers.
But the greater forum
of immediate listeners is not the parliamentary
auditorium: it is the large
public meeting. For here alone will there be
thousands of men who have come
simply to hear what a speaker has to say,
whereas in the parliamentary
sittings only a few hundred are present;
and for the most part these are
there only to earn their daily allowance
for attendance and not to be
enlightened by the wisdom of one or other
of the 'representatives of the
people'.
The most important consideration is that the same public is
always
present and that this public does not wish to learn anything new;
because, setting aside the question of its intelligence, it lacks even
that
modest quantum of will-power which is necessary for the effort of
learning.
Not one of the representatives of the people will pay homage to a
superior truth and devote himself to its service. No. Not one of these
gentry
will act thus, except he has grounds for hoping that by such a
conversion he
may be able to retain the representation of his
constituency in the coming
legislature. Therefore, only when it becomes
quite clear that the old party
is likely to have a bad time of it at the
forthcoming elections--only then
will those models of manly virtue set
out in search of a new party or a new
policy which may have better
electoral prospects; but of course this change
of position will be
accompanied by a veritable deluge of high moral motives
to justify it.
And thus it always happens that when an existing Party has
incurred such
general disfavour among the public that it is threatened with
the
probability of a crushing defeat, then a great migration commences. The
parliamentary rats leave the Party ship.
All this happens not because the
individuals in the case have become
better informed on the questions at issue
and have resolved to act
accordingly. These changes of front are evidence
only of that gift of
clairvoyance which warns the parliamentary flea at the
right moment and
enables him to hop into another warm Party bed.
To
speak before such a forum signifies casting pearls before certain
animals.
Verily it does not repay the pains taken; for the result must always be
negative.
And that is actually what happened. The Pan-German
representatives might
have talked themselves hoarse, but to no effect
whatsoever.
The Press either ignored them totally or so mutilated their
speeches
that the logical consistency was destroyed or the meaning twisted
round
in such a way that the public got only a very wrong impression
regarding
the aims of the new movement. What the individual members said was
not
of importance. The important matter was what people read as coming from
them. This consisted of mere extracts which had been torn out of the
context
of the speeches and gave an impression of incoherent nonsense,
which indeed
was purposely meant. Thus the only public before which they
really spoke
consisted merely of five hundred parliamentarians; and that
says enough.
The worst was the following:
The Pan-German Movement could hope for
success only if the leaders
realized from the very first moment that here
there was no question so
much of a new Party as of a new WELTANSCHAUUNG. This
alone could arouse
the inner moral forces that were necessary for such a
gigantic struggle.
And for this struggle the leaders must be men of
first-class brains and
indomitable courage. If the struggle on behalf of a
WELTANSCHAUUNG is
not conducted by men of heroic spirit who are ready to
sacrifice,
everything, within a short while it will become impossible to find
real
fighting followers who are ready to lay down their lives for the cause.
A man who fights only for his own existence has not much left over for
the
service of the community.
In order to secure the conditions that are
necessary for success,
everybody concerned must be made to understand that
the new movement
looks to posterity for its honour and glory but that it has
no
recompense to offer to the present-day members. If a movement should
offer a large number of positions and offices that are easily accessible
the
number of unworthy candidates admitted to membership will be
constantly on
the increase and eventually a day will come when there
will be such a
preponderance of political profiteers among the
membership of a successful
Party that the combatants who bore the brunt
of the battle in the earlier
stages of the movement can now scarcely
recognize their own Party and may be
ejected by the later arrivals as
unwanted ballast. Therewith the movement
will no longer have a mission
to fulfil.
Once the Pan-Germanists
decided to collaborate with Parliament they were
no longer leaders and
combatants in a popular movement, but merely
parliamentarians. Thus the
Movement sank to the common political party
level of the day and no longer
had the strength to face a hostile fate
and defy the risk of martyrdom.
Instead of fighting, the Pan-German
leaders fell into the habit of talking
and negotiating. The new
parliamentarians soon found that it was a more
satisfactory, because
less risky, way of fulfilling their task if they would
defend the new
WELTANSCHAUUNG with the spiritual weapon of parliamentary
rhetoric
rather than take up a fight in which they placed their lives in
danger,
the outcome of which also was uncertain and even at the best could
offer
no prospect of personal gain for themselves.
When they had taken
their seats in Parliament their adherents outside
hoped and waited for
miracles to happen. Naturally no such miracles
happened or could happen.
Whereupon the adherents of the movement soon
grew impatient, because reports
they read about their own deputies did
not in the least come up to what had
been expected when they voted for
these deputies at the elections. The reason
for this was not far to
seek. It was due to the fact that an unfriendly Press
refrained from
giving a true account of what the Pan-German representatives
of the
people were actually doing.
According as the new deputies got
to like this mild form of
'revolutionary' struggle in Parliament and in the
provincial diets they
gradually became reluctant to resume the more hazardous
work of
expounding the principles of the movement before the broad masses of
the
people.
Mass meetings in public became more and more rare, though
these are the
only means of exercising a really effective influence on the
people;
because here the influence comes from direct personal contact and in
this way the support of large sections of the people can be obtained.
When the tables on which the speakers used to stand in the great
beer-halls,
addressing an assembly of thousands, were deserted for the
parliamentary
tribune and the speeches were no longer addressed to the
people directly but
to the so-called 'chosen' representatives, the
Pan-German Movement lost its
popular character and in a little while
degenerated to the level of a more or
less serious club where problems
of the day are discussed academically.
The wrong impression created by the Press was no longer corrected by
personal contact with the people through public meetings, whereby the
individual representatives might have given a true account of their
activities. The final result of this neglect was that the word
'Pan-German'
came to have an unpleasant sound in the ears of the masses.
The knights
of the pen and the literary snobs of to-day should be made
to realize that
the great transformations which have taken place in this
world were never
conducted by a goosequill. No. The task of the pen must
always be that of
presenting the theoretical concepts which motivate
such changes. The force
which has ever and always set in motion great
historical avalanches of
religious and political movements is the magic
power of the spoken word.
The broad masses of a population are more amenable to the appeal of
rhetoric than to any other force. All great movements are popular
movements.
They are the volcanic eruptions of human passions and
emotions, stirred into
activity by the ruthless Goddess of Distress or
by the torch of the spoken
word cast into the midst of the people. In no
case have great movements been
set afoot by the syrupy effusions of
aesthetic littérateurs and drawing-room
heroes.
The doom of a nation can be averted only by a storm of glowing
passion;
but only those who are passionate themselves can arouse passion in
others. It is only through the capacity for passionate feeling that
chosen
leaders can wield the power of the word which, like hammer blows,
will open
the door to the hearts of the people.
He who is not capable of passionate
feeling and speech was never chosen
by Providence to be the herald of its
will. Therefore a writer should
stick to his ink-bottle and busy himself with
theoretical questions if
he has the requisite ability and knowledge. He has
not been born or
chosen to be a leader.
A movement which has great
ends to achieve must carefully guard against
the danger of losing contact
with the masses of the people. Every
problem encountered must be examined
from this viewpoint first of all
and the decision to be made must always be
in harmony with this
principle.
The movement must avoid everything
which might lessen or weaken its
power of influencing the masses; not from
demagogical motives but
because of the simple fact that no great idea, no
matter how sublime and
exalted it may appear, can be realized in practice
without the effective
power which resides in the popular masses. Stern
reality alone must mark
the way to the goal. To be unwilling to walk the road
of hardship means,
only too often in this world, the total renunciation of
our aims and
purposes, whether that renunciation be consciously willed or
not.
The moment the Pan-German leaders, in virtue of their acceptance of
the
parliamentary principle, moved the centre of their activities away from
the people and into Parliament, in that moment they sacrificed the
future for
the sake of a cheap momentary success. They chose the easier
way in the
struggle and in doing so rendered themselves unworthy of the
final victory.
While in Vienna I used to ponder seriously over these two questions, and
I saw that the main reason for the collapse of the Pan-German Movement
lay in
the fact that these very questions were not rightly appreciated.
To my mind
at that time the Movement seemed chosen to take in its hands
the leadership
of the German element in Austria.
These first two blunders which led to
the downfall of the Pan-German
Movement were very closely connected with one
another. Faulty
recognition of the inner driving forces that urge great
movements
forward led to an inadequate appreciation of the part which the
broad
masses play in bringing about such changes. The result was that too
little attention was given to the social problem and that the attempts
made
by the movement to capture the minds of the lower classes were too
few and
too weak. Another result was the acceptance of the parliamentary
policy,
which had a similar effect in regard to the importance of the
masses.
If there had been a proper appreciation of the tremendous powers of
endurance
always shown by the masses in revolutionary movements a
different attitude
towards the social problem would have been taken, and
also a different policy
in the matter of propaganda. Then the centre of
gravity of the movement would
not have been transferred to the
Parliament but would have remained in the
workshops and in the streets.
There was a third mistake, which also had
its roots in the failure to
understand the worth of the masses. The masses
are first set in motion,
along a definite direction, by men of superior
talents; but then these
masses once in motion are like a flywheel inasmuch as
they sustain the
momentum and steady balance of the offensive.
The
policy of the Pan-German leaders in deciding to carry through a
difficult
fight against the Catholic Church can be explained only by
attributing it to
an inadequate understanding of the spiritual character
of the people.
The reasons why the new Party engaged in a violent campaign against Rome
were
as follows:
As soon as the House of Habsburg had definitely decided to
transform
Austria into a Slav State all sorts of means were adopted which
seemed
in any way serviceable for that purpose. The Habsburg rulers had no
scruples of conscience about exploiting even religious institutions in
the
service of this new 'State Idea'. One of the many methods thus
employed was
the use of Czech parishes and their clergy as instruments
for spreading Slav
hegemony throughout Austria. This proceeding was
carried out as follows:
Parish priests of Czech nationality were appointed in purely German
districts. Gradually but steadily pushing forward the interests of the
Czech
people before those of the Church, the parishes and their priests
became
generative cells in the process of de-Germanization.
Unfortunately the
German-Austrian clergy completely failed to counter
this procedure. Not only
were they incapable of taking a similar
initiative on the German side, but
they showed themselves unable to meet
the Czech offensive with adequate
resistance. The German element was
accordingly pushed backwards, slowly but
steadily, through the
perversion of religious belief for political ends on
the one side, and
the Jack of proper resistance on the other side. Such were
the tactics
used in dealing with the smaller problems; but those used in
dealing
with the larger problems were not very different.
The
anti-German aims pursued by the Habsburgs, especially through the
instrumentality of the higher clergy, did not meet with any vigorous
resistance, while the clerical representatives of the German interests
withdrew completely to the rear. The general impression created could
not be
other than that the Catholic clergy as such were grossly
neglecting the
rights of the German population.
Therefore it looked as if the Catholic
Church was not in sympathy with
the German people but that it unjustly
supported their adversaries. The
root of the whole evil, especially according
to Schönerer's opinion, lay
in the fact that the leadership of the Catholic
Church was not in
Germany, and that this fact alone was sufficient reason for
the hostile
attitude of the Church towards the demands of our people.
The so-called cultural problem receded almost completely into the
background,
as was generally the case everywhere throughout Austria at
that time. In
assuming a hostile attitude towards the Catholic Church,
the Pan-German
leaders were influenced not so much by the Church's
position in questions of
science but principally by the fact that the
Church did not defend German
rights, as it should have done, but always
supported those who encroached on
these rights, especially then Slavs.
George Schönerer was not a man who
did things by halves. He went into
battle against the Church because he was
convinced that this was the
only way in which the German people could be
saved. The LOS-VON-ROM
(Away from Rome) Movement seemed the most formidable,
but at the same
time most difficult, method of attacking and destroying the
adversary's
citadel. Schönerer believed that if this movement could be
carried
through successfully the unfortunate division between the two great
religious denominations in Germany would be wiped out and that the inner
forces of the German Empire and Nation would be enormously enhanced by
such a
victory.
But the premises as well as the conclusions in this case were
both
erroneous.
It was undoubtedly true that the national powers of
resistance, in
everything concerning Germanism as such, were much weaker
among the
German Catholic clergy than among their non-German confrères,
especially
the Czechs. And only an ignorant person could be unaware of the
fact
that it scarcely ever entered the mind of the German clergy to take the
offensive on behalf of German interests.
But at the same time everybody
who is not blind to facts must admit that
all this should be attributed to a
characteristic under which we Germans
have all been doomed to suffer. This
characteristic shows itself in our
objective way of regarding our own
nationality, as if it were something
that lay outside of us.
While the
Czech priest adopted a subjective attitude towards his own
people and only an
objective attitude towards the Church, the German
parish priest showed a
subjective devotion to his Church and remained
objective in regard to his
nation. It is a phenomenon which,
unfortunately for us, can be observed
occurring in exactly the same way
in thousands of other cases.
It is
by no means a peculiar inheritance from Catholicism; but it is
something in
us which does not take long to gnaw the vitals of almost
every institution,
especially institutions of State and those which have
ideal aims. Take, for
example, the attitude of our State officials in
regard to the efforts made
for bringing about a national resurgence and
compare that attitude with the
stand which the public officials of any
other nation would have taken in such
a case. Or is it to be believed
that the military officers of any other
country in the world would
refuse to come forward on behalf of the national
aspirations, but would
rather hide behind the phrase 'Authority of the
State', as has been the
case in our country during the last five years and
has even been deemed
a meritorious attitude? Or let us take another example.
In regard to the
Jewish problem, do not the two Christian denominations take
up a
standpoint to-day which does not respond to the national exigencies or
even the interests of religion? Consider the attitude of a Jewish Rabbi
towards any question, even one of quite insignificant importance,
concerning
the Jews as a race, and compare his attitude with that of the
majority of our
clergy, whether Catholic or Protestant.
We observe the same phenomenon
wherever it is a matter of standing up
for some abstract idea.
'Authority of the State', 'Democracy', 'Pacifism', 'International
Solidarity', etc., all such notions become rigid, dogmatic concepts with
us;
and the more vital the general necessities of the nation, the more
will they
be judged exclusively in the light of those concepts.
This unfortunate
habit of looking at all national demands from the
viewpoint of a
pre-conceived notion makes it impossible for us to see
the subjective side of
a thing which objectively contradicts one's own
doctrine. It finally leads to
a complete reversion in the relation of
means to an end. Any attempt at a
national revival will be opposed if
the preliminary condition of such a
revival be that a bad and pernicious
regime must first of all be overthrown;
because such an action will be
considered as a violation of the 'Authority of
the State'. In the eyes
of those who take that standpoint, the 'Authority of
the State' is not a
means which is there to serve an end but rather, to the
mind of the
dogmatic believer in objectivity, it is an end in itself; and he
looks
upon that as sufficient apology for his own miserable existence. Such
people would raise an outcry, if, for instance, anyone should attempt to
set
up a dictatorship, even though the man responsible for it were
Frederick the
Great and even though the politicians for the time being,
who constituted the
parliamentary majority, were small and incompetent
men or maybe even on a
lower grade of inferiority; because to such
sticklers for abstract principles
the law of democracy is more sacred
than the welfare of the nation. In
accordance with his principles, one
of these gentry will defend the worst
kind of tyranny, though it may be
leading a people to ruin, because it is the
fleeting embodiment of the
'Authority of the State', and another will reject
even a highly
beneficent government if it should happen not to be in accord
with his
notion of 'democracy'.
In the same way our German pacifist
will remain silent while the nation
is groaning under an oppression which is
being exercised by a sanguinary
military power, when this state of affairs
gives rise to active
resistance; because such resistance means the employment
of physical
force, which is against the spirit of the pacifist associations.
The
German International Socialist may be rooked and plundered by his
comrades in all the other countries of the world in the name of
'solidarity',
but he responds with fraternal kindness and never thinks
of trying to get his
own back, or even of defending himself. And why?
Because he is a--German.
It may be unpleasant to dwell on such truths, but if something is to be
changed we must start by diagnosing the disease.
The phenomenon which I
have just described also accounts for the feeble
manner in which German
interests are promoted and defended by a section
of the clergy.
Such
conduct is not the manifestation of a malicious intent, nor is it
the outcome
of orders given from 'above', as we say; but such a lack of
national grit and
determination is due to defects in our educational
system. For, instead of
inculcating in the youth a lively sense of their
German nationality, the aim
of the educational system is to make the
youth prostrate themselves in homage
to the idea, as if the idea were an
idol.
The education which makes
them the devotees of such abstract notions as
'Democracy', 'International
Socialism', 'Pacifism', etc., is so
hard-and-fast and exclusive and,
operating as it does from within
outwards, is so purely subjective that in
forming their general picture
of outside life as a whole they are
fundamentally influenced by these
A PRIORI notions. But, on the other hand,
the attitude towards their own
German nationality has been very objective
from youth upwards. The
Pacifist--in so far as he is a German--who surrenders
himself
subjectively, body and soul, to the dictates of his dogmatic
principles,
will always first consider the objective right or wrong of a
situation
when danger threatens his own people, even though that danger be
grave
and unjustly wrought from outside. But he will never take his stand in
the ranks of his own people and fight for and with them from the sheer
instinct of self-preservation.
Another example may further illustrate how
far this applies to the
different religious denominations. In so far as its
origin and tradition
are based on German ideals, Protestantism of itself
defends those ideals
better. But it fails the moment it is called upon to
defend national
interests which do not belong to the sphere of its ideals and
traditional development, or which, for some reason or other, may be
rejected
by that sphere.
Therefore Protestantism will always take its part in
promoting German
ideals as far as concerns moral integrity or national
education, when
the German spiritual being or language or spiritual freedom
are to be
defended: because these represent the principles on which
Protestantism
itself is grounded. But this same Protestantism violently
opposes every
attempt to rescue the nation from the clutches of its mortal
enemy;
because the Protestant attitude towards the Jews is more or less
rigidly
and dogmatically fixed. And yet this is the first problem which has
to
be solved, unless all attempts to bring about a German resurgence or to
raise the level of the nation's standing are doomed to turn out
nonsensical
and impossible.
During my sojourn in Vienna I had ample leisure and
opportunity to study
this problem without allowing any prejudices to
intervene; and in my
daily intercourse with people I was able to establish
the correctness of
the opinion I formed by the test of thousands of
instances.
In this focus where the greatest varieties of nationality had
converged
it was quite clear and open to everybody to see that the German
pacifist
was always and exclusively the one who tried to consider the
interests
of his own nation objectively; but you could never find a Jew who
took a
similar attitude towards his own race. Furthermore, I found that only
the German Socialist is 'international' in the sense that he feels
himself
obliged not to demand justice for his own people in any other
manner than by
whining and wailing to his international comrades. Nobody
could ever reproach
Czechs or Poles or other nations with such conduct.
In short, even at that
time, already I recognized that this evil is only
partly a result of the
doctrines taught by Socialism, Pacifism, etc.,
but mainly the result of our
totally inadequate system of education, the
defects of which are responsible
for the lack of devotion to our own
national ideals.
Therefore the
first theoretical argument advanced by the Pan-German
leaders as the basis of
their offensive against Catholicism was quite
entenable.
The only way
to remedy the evil I have been speaking of is to train the
Germans from youth
upwards to an absolute recognition of the rights of
their own people, instead
of poisoning their minds, while they are still
only children, with the virus
of this curbed 'objectivity', even in
matters concerning the very maintenance
of our own existence. The result
of this would be that the Catholic in
Germany, just as in Ireland,
Poland or France, will be a German first and
foremost. But all this
presupposes a radical change in the national
government.
The strongest proof in support of my contention is furnished
by what
took place at that historical juncture when our people were called
for
the last time before the tribunal of History to defend their own
existence, in a life-or-death struggle.
As long as there was no lack of
leadership in the higher circles, the
people fulfilled their duty and
obligations to an overwhelming extent.
Whether Protestant pastor or Catholic
priest, each did his very utmost
in helping our powers of resistance to hold
out, not only in the
trenches but also, and even more so, at home. During
those years, and
especially during the first outburst of enthusiasm, in both
religious
camps there was one undivided and sacred German Empire for whose
preservation and future existence they all prayed to Heaven.
The
Pan-German Movement in Austria ought to have asked itself this one
question:
Is the maintenance of the German element in Austria possible
or not, as long
as that element remains within the fold of the Catholic
Faith? If that
question should have been answered in the affirmative,
then the political
Party should not have meddled in religious and
denominational questions. But
if the question had to be answered in the
negative, then a religious
reformation should have been started and not
a political party movement.
Anyone who believes that a religious reformation can be achieved through
the agency of a political organization shows that he has no idea of the
development of religious conceptions and doctrines of faith and how
these are
given practical effect by the Church.
No man can serve two masters. And I
hold that the foundation or
overthrow of a religion has far greater
consequences than the foundation
or overthrow of a State, to say nothing of a
Party.
It is no argument to the contrary to say that the attacks were
only
defensive measures against attacks from the other side.
Undoubtedly there have always been unscrupulous rogues who did not
hesitate
to degrade religion to the base uses of politics. Nearly always
such a people
had nothing else in their minds except to make a business
of religions and
politics. But on the other hand it would be wrong to
hold religion itself, or
a religious denomination, responsible for a
number of rascals who exploit the
Church for their own base interests
just as they would exploit anything else
in which they had a part.
Nothing could be more to the taste of one of
these parliamentary
loungers and tricksters than to be able to find a
scapegoat for his
political sharp-practice--after the event, of course. The
moment
religion or a religious denomination is attacked and made responsible
for his personal misdeeds this shrewd fellow will raise a row at once
and
call the world to witness how justified he was in acting as he did,
proclaiming that he and his eloquence alone have saved religion and the
Church. The public, which is mostly stupid and has a very short memory,
is
not capable of recognizing the real instigator of the quarrel in the
midst of
the turmoil that has been raised. Frequently it does not
remember the
beginning of the fight and so the rogue gets by with his
stunt.
A
cunning fellow of that sort is quite well aware that his misdeeds have
nothing to do with religion. And so he will laugh up his sleeve all the
more
heartily when his honest but artless adversary loses the game and,
one day
losing all faith in humanity, retires from the activities of
public life.
But from another viewpoint also it would be wrong to make religion, or
the Church as such, responsible for the misdeeds of individuals. If one
compares the magnitude of the organization, as it stands visible to
every
eye, with the average weakness of human nature we shall have to
admit that
the proportion of good to bad is more favourable here than
anywhere else.
Among the priests there may, of course, be some who use
their sacred calling
to further their political ambitions. There are
clergy who unfortunately
forget that in the political mêlée they ought
to be the paladins of the more
sublime truths and not the abettors of
falsehood and slander. But for each
one of these unworthy specimens we
can find a thousand or more who fulfil
their mission nobly as the
trustworthy guardians of souls and who tower above
the level of our
corrupt epoch, as little islands above the seaswamp.
I cannot condemn the Church as such, and I should feel quite as little
justified in doing so if some depraved person in the robe of a priest
commits
some offence against the moral law. Nor should I for a moment
think of
blaming the Church if one of its innumerable members betrays
and besmirches
his compatriots, especially not in epochs when such
conduct is quite common.
We must not forget, particularly in our day,
that for one such Ephialtes
(Note 7) there are a thousand whose hearts
bleed in sympathy with their
people during these years of misfortune and
who, together with the best of
our nation, yearn for the hour when fortune
will smile on us again.
[Note 7. Herodotus (Book VII, 213-218) tells the story of how a Greek
traitor, Ephialtes, helped the Persian invaders at the Battle of
Thermopylae
(480 B.C.) When the Persian King, Xerxes, had begun to
despair of being able
tobreak through the Greek defence, Ephialtes came
to him and, on being
promiseda definite payment, told the King of a
pathway over the shoulder of
the mountainto the Greek end of the Pass.
The bargain being clinched,
Ephialtes led adetachment of the Persian
troops under General Hydarnes over
the mountainpathway. Thus taken in
the rear, the Greek defenders, under
Leonidas, King of Sparta, had to
fight in two opposite directions within the
narrow pass. Terrible
slaughter ensued and Leonidas fell in the thick of the
fighting.
The bravery of Leonidas and the treason of Ephialtes impressed
Hitler,
asit does almost every schoolboy. The incident is referred to again
in
MEIN KAMPF (Chap. VIII, Vol. I), where Hitler compares the German troops
thatfell in France and Flanders to the Greeks at Thermopylae, the
treachery
of Ephialtes being suggested as the prototype of the defeatist
policy of the
German politicians towards the end of the Great War.]
If it be objected
that here we are concerned not with the petty problems
of everyday life but
principally with fundamental truths and questions
of dogma, the only way of
answering that objection is to ask a question:
Do you feel that
Providence has called you to proclaim the Truth to the
world? If so, then go
and do it. But you ought to have the courage to do
it directly and not use
some political party as your mouthpiece; for in
this way you shirk your
vocation. In the place of something that now
exists and is bad put something
else that is better and will last into
the future.
If you lack the
requisite courage or if you yourself do not know clearly
what your better
substitute ought to be, leave the whole thing alone.
But, whatever happens,
do not try to reach the goal by the roundabout
way of a political party if
you are not brave enough to fight with your
visor lifted.
Political
parties have no right to meddle in religious questions except
when these
relate to something that is alien to the national well-being
and thus
calculated to undermine racial customs and morals.
If some ecclesiastical
dignitaries should misuse religious ceremonies or
religious teaching to
injure their own nation their opponents ought
never to take the same road and
fight them with the same weapons.
To a political leader the religious
teachings and practices of his
people should be sacred and inviolable.
Otherwise he should not be a
statesman but a reformer, if he has the
necessary qualities for such a
mission.
Any other line of conduct will
lead to disaster, especially in Germany.
In studying the Pan-German
Movement and its conflict with Rome I was
then firmly persuaded, and
especially in the course of later years, that
by their failure to understand
the importance of the social problem the
Pan-Germanists lost the support of
the broad masses, who are the
indispensable combatants in such a movement. By
entering Parliament the
Pan-German leaders deprived themselves of the great
driving force which
resides in the masses and at the same time they laid on
their own
shoulders all the defects of the parliamentary institution. Their
struggle against the Church made their position impossible in numerous
circles of the lower and middle class, while at the same time it robbed
them
of innumerable high-class elements--some of the best indeed that
the nation
possessed. The practical outcome of the Austrian Kulturkampf
was negative.
Although they succeeded in winning 100,000 members away from the Church,
that did not do much harm to the latter. The Church did not really need
to
shed any tears over these lost sheep, for it lost only those who had
for a
long time ceased to belong to it in their inner hearts. The
difference
between this new reformation and the great Reformation was
that in the
historic epoch of the great Reformation some of the best
members left the
Church because of religious convictions, whereas in
this new reformation only
those left who had been indifferent before and
who were now influenced by
political considerations. From the political
point of view alone the result
was as ridiculous as it was deplorable.
Once again a political movement
which had promised so much for the
German nation collapsed, because it was
not conducted in a spirit of
unflinching adherence to naked reality, but lost
itself in fields where
it was bound to get broken up.
The Pan-German
Movement would never have made this mistake if it had
properly understood the
PSYCHE of the broad masses. If the leaders had
known that, for psychological
reasons alone, it is not expedient to
place two or more sets of adversaries
before the masses--since that
leads to a complete splitting up of their
fighting strength--they would
have concentrated the full and undivided force
of their attack against a
single adversary. Nothing in the policy of a
political party is so
fraught with danger as to allow its decisions to be
directed by people
who want to have their fingers in every pie though they do
not know how
to cook the simplest dish.
But even though there is much
that can really be said against the
various religious denominations,
political leaders must not forget that
the experience of history teaches us
that no purely political party in
similar circumstances ever succeeded in
bringing about a religious
reformation. One does not study history for the
purpose of forgetting or
mistrusting its lessons afterwards, when the time
comes to apply these
lessons in practice. It would be a mistake to believe
that in this
particular case things were different, so that the eternal
truths of
history were no longer applicable. One learns history in order to
be
able to apply its lessons to the present time and whoever fails to do
this cannot pretend to be a political leader. In reality he is quite a
superficial person or, as is mostly the case, a conceited simpleton
whose
good intentions cannot make up for his incompetence in practical
affairs.
The art of leadership, as displayed by really great popular leaders in
all ages, consists in consolidating the attention of the people against
a
single adversary and taking care that nothing will split up that
attention
into sections. The more the militant energies of the people
are directed
towards one objective the more will new recruits join the
movement, attracted
by the magnetism of its unified action, and thus the
striking power will be
all the more enhanced. The leader of genius must
have the ability to make
different opponents appear as if they belonged
to the one category; for weak
and wavering natures among a leader's
following may easily begin to be
dubious about the justice of their own
cause if they have to face different
enemies.
As soon as the vacillating masses find themselves facing an
opposition
that is made up of different groups of enemies their sense of
objectivity will be aroused and they will ask how is it that all the
others
can be in the wrong and they themselves, and their movement,
alone in the
right.
Such a feeling would be the first step towards a paralysis of
their
fighting vigour. Where there are various enemies who are split up into
divergent groups it will be necessary to block them all together as
forming
one solid front, so that the mass of followers in a popular
movement may see
only one common enemy against whom they have to fight.
Such uniformity
intensifies their belief in the justice of their own
cause and strengthens
their feeling of hostility towards the opponent.
The Pan-German Movement
was unsuccessful because the leaders did not
grasp the significance of that
truth. They saw the goal clearly and
their intentions were right; but they
took the wrong road. Their action
may be compared to that of an Alpine
climber who never loses sight of
the peak he wants to reach, who has set out
with the greatest
determination and energy, but pays no attention to the road
beneath his
feet. With his eye always fixed firmly on the goal he does not
think
over or notice the nature of the ascent and finally he fails.
The manner in which the great rival of the Pan-German Party set out to
attain
its goal was quite different. The way it took was well and
shrewdly chosen;
but it did not have a clear vision of the goal. In
almost all the questions
where the Pan-German Movement failed, the
policy of the Christian-Socialist
Party was correct and systematic.
They assessed the importance of the
masses correctly, and thus they
gained the support of large numbers of the
popular masses by emphasizing
the social character of the Movement from the
very start. By directing
their appeal especially to the lower middle class
and the artisans, they
gained adherents who were faithful, persevering and
self-sacrificing.
The Christian-Socialist leaders took care to avoid all
controversy with
the institutions of religion and thus they secured the
support of that
mighty organization, the Catholic Church. Those leaders
recognized the
value of propaganda on a large scale and they were veritable
virtuosos
in working up the spiritual instincts of the broad masses of their
adherents.
The failure of this Party to carry into effect the dream of
saving
Austria from dissolution must be attributed to two main defects in the
means they employed and also the lack of a clear perception of the ends
they
wished to reach.
The anti-Semitism of the Christian-Socialists was based
on religious
instead of racial principles. The reason for this mistake gave
rise to
the second error also.
The founders of the Christian-Socialist
Party were of the opinion that
they could not base their position on the
racial principle if they
wished to save Austria, because they felt that a
general disintegration
of the State might quickly result from the adoption of
such a policy. In
the opinion of the Party chiefs the situation in Vienna
demanded that
all factors which tended to estrange the nationalities from one
another
should be carefully avoided and that all factors making for unity
should
be encouraged.
At that time Vienna was so honeycombed with
foreign elements, especially
the Czechs, that the greatest amount of
tolerance was necessary if these
elements were to be enlisted in the ranks of
any party that was not
anti-German on principle. If Austria was to be saved
those elements were
indispensable. And so attempts were made to win the
support of the small
traders, a great number of whom were Czechs, by
combating the liberalism
of the Manchester School; and they believed that by
adopting this
attitude they had found a slogan against Jewry which, because
of its
religious implications, would unite all the different nationalities
which made up the population of the old Austria.
It was obvious, however,
that this kind of anti-Semitism did not upset
the Jews very much, simply
because it had a purely religious foundation.
If the worst came to the worst
a few drops of baptismal water would
settle the matter, hereupon the Jew
could still carry on his business
safely and at the same time retain his
Jewish nationality.
On such superficial grounds it was impossible to deal
with the whole
problem in an earnest and rational way. The consequence was
that many
people could not understand this kind of anti-Semitism and
therefore
refused to take part in it.
The attractive force of the idea
was thus restricted exclusively to
narrow-minded circles, because the leaders
failed to go beyond the mere
emotional appeal and did not ground their
position on a truly rational
basis. The intellectuals were opposed to such a
policy on principle. It
looked more and more as if the whole movement was a
new attempt to
proselytize the Jews, or, on the other hand, as if it were
merely
organized from the wish to compete with other contemporary movements.
Thus the struggle lost all traces of having been organized for a
spiritual
and sublime mission. Indeed, it seemed to some people--and
these were by no
means worthless elements--to be immoral and
reprehensible. The movement
failed to awaken a belief that here there
was a problem of vital importance
for the whole of humanity and on the
solution of which the destiny of the
whole Gentile world depended.
Through this shilly-shally way of dealing
with the problem the
anti-Semitism of the Christian-Socialists turned out to
be quite
ineffective.
It was anti-Semitic only in outward appearance.
And this was worse than
if it had made no pretences at all to anti-Semitism;
for the pretence
gave rise to a false sense of security among people who
believed that
the enemy had been taken by the ears; but, as a matter of fact,
the
people themselves were being led by the nose.
The Jew readily
adjusted himself to this form of anti-Semitism and found
its continuance more
profitable to him than its abolition would be.
This whole movement led to
great sacrifices being made for the sake of
that State which was composed of
many heterogeneous nationalities; but
much greater sacrifices had to be made
by the trustees of the German
element.
One did not dare to be
'nationalist', even in Vienna, lest the ground
should fall away from under
one's feet. It was hoped that the Habsburg
State might be saved by a silent
evasion of the nationalist question;
but this policy led that State to ruin.
The same policy also led to the
collapse of Christian Socialism, for thus the
Movement was deprived of
the only source of energy from which a political
party can draw the
necessary driving force.
During those years I
carefully followed the two movements and observed
how they developed, one
because my heart was with it and the other
because of my admiration for that
remarkable man who then appeared to me
as a bitter symbol of the whole German
population in Austria.
When the imposing funeral CORTÈGE of the dead
Burgomaster wound its way
from the City Hall towards the Ring Strasse I stood
among the hundreds
of thousands who watched the solemn procession pass by. As
I stood there
I felt deeply moved, and my instinct clearly told me that the
work of
this man was all in vain, because a sinister Fate was inexorably
leading
this State to its downfall. If Dr. Karl Lueger had lived in Germany
he
would have been ranked among the great leaders of our people. It was a
misfortune for his work and for himseif that he had to live in this
impossible State.
When he died the fire had already been enkindled in the
Balkans and was
spreading month by month. Fate had been merciful in sparing
him the
sight of what, even to the last, he had hoped to prevent.
I
endeavoured to analyse the cause which rendered one of those movements
futile
and wrecked the progress of the other. The result of this
investigation was
the profound conviction that, apart from the inherent
impossibility of
consolidating the position of the State in the old
Austria, the two parties
made the following fatal mistake:
The Pan-German Party was perfectly
right in its fundamental ideas
regarding the aim of the Movement, which was
to bring about a German
restoration, but it was unfortunate in its choice of
means. It was
nationalist, but unfortunately it paid too little heed to the
social
problem, and thus it failed to gain the support of the masses. Its
anti-Jewish policy, however, was grounded on a correct perception of the
significance of the racial problem and not on religious principles. But
it
was mistaken in its assessment of facts and adopted the wrong tactics
when it
made war against one of the religious denominations.
The
Christian-Socialist Movement had only a vague concept of a German
revival as
part of its object, but it was intelligent and fortunate in
the choice of
means to carry out its policy as a Party. The
Christian-Socialists grasped
the significance of the social question;
but they adopted the wrong
principles in their struggle against Jewry,
and they utterly failed to
appreciate the value of the national idea as
a source of political energy.
If the Christian-Socialist Party, together with its shrewd judgment in
regard to the worth of the popular masses, had only judged rightly also
on
the importance of the racial problem--which was properly grasped by
the
Pan-German Movement--and if this party had been really nationalist;
or if the
Pan-German leaders, on the other hand, in addition to their
correct judgment
of the Jewish problem and of the national idea, had
adopted the practical
wisdom of the Christian-Socialist Party, and
particularly their attitude
towards Socialism--then a movement would
have developed which, in my opinion,
might at that time have
successfully altered the course of German destiny.
If things did not turn out thus, the fault lay for the most part in the
inherent nature of the Austrian State.
I did not find my own convictions
upheld by any party then in existence,
and so I could not bring myself to
enlist as a member in any of the
existing organizations or even lend a hand
in their struggle. Even at
that time all those organizations seemed to me to
be already jaded in
their energies and were therefore incapable of bringing
about a national
revival of the German people in a really profound way, not
merely
outwardly.
My inner aversion to the Habsburg State was
increasing daily.
The more I paid special attention to questions of
foreign policy, the
more the conviction grew upon me that this phantom State
would surely
bring misfortune on the Germans. I realized more and more that
the
destiny of the German nation could not be decisively influenced from
here but only in the German Empire itself. And this was true not only in
regard to general political questions but also--and in no less a
degree--in
regard to the whole sphere of cultural life.
Here, also, in all matters
affecting the national culture and art, the
Austrian State showed all the
signs of senile decrepitude, or at least
it was ceasing to be of any
consequence to the German nation, as far as
these matters were concerned.
This was especially true of its
architecture. Modern architecture could not
produce any great results in
Austria because, since the building of the Ring
Strasse--at least in
Vienna--architectural activities had become
insignificant when compared
with the progressive plans which were being
thought out in Germany.
And so I came more and more to lead what may be
called a twofold
existence. Reason and reality forced me to continue my harsh
apprenticeship in Austria, though I must now say that this
apprenticeship
turned out fortunate in the end. But my heart was
elsewhere.
A feeling
of discontent grew upon me and made me depressed the more I
came to realize
the inside hollowness of this State and the
impossibility of saving it from
collapse. At the same time I felt
perfectly certain that it would bring all
kinds of misfortune to the
German people.
I was convinced that the
Habsburg State would balk and hinder every
German who might show signs of
real greatness, while at the same time it
would aid and abet every non-German
activity.
This conglomerate spectacle of heterogeneous races which the
capital of
the Dual Monarchy presented, this motley of Czechs, Poles,
Hungarians,
Ruthenians, Serbs and Croats, etc., and always that bacillus
which is
the solvent of human society, the Jew, here and there and
everywhere--the whole spectacle was repugnant to me. The gigantic city
seemed
to be the incarnation of mongrel depravity.
The German language, which I
had spoken from the time of my boyhood, was
the vernacular idiom of Lower
Bavaria. I never forgot that particular
style of speech, and I could never
learn the Viennese dialect. The
longer I lived in that city the stronger
became my hatred for the
promiscuous swarm of foreign peoples which had begun
to batten on that
old nursery ground of German culture. The idea that this
State could
maintain its further existence for any considerable time was
quite
absurd.
Austria was then like a piece of ancient mosaic in which
the cohesive
cement had dried up and become old and friable. As long as such
a work
of art remains untouched it may hold together and continue to exist;
but
the moment some blow is struck on it then it breaks up into thousands of
fragments. Therefore it was now only a question of when the blow would
come.
Because my heart was always with the German Empire and not with the
Austrian Monarchy, the hour of Austria's dissolution as a State appeared
to
me only as the first step towards the emancipation of the German
nation.
All these considerations intensified my yearning to depart for that
country for which my heart had been secretly longing since the days of
my
youth.
I hoped that one day I might be able to make my mark as an
architect and
that I could devote my talents to the service of my country on
a large
or small scale, according to the will of Fate.
A final reason
was that I longed to be among those who lived and worked
in that land from
which the movement should be launched, the object of
which would be the
fulfilment of what my heart had always longed for,
namely, the union of the
country in which I was born with our common
fatherland, the German Empire.
There are many who may not understand how such a yearning can be so
strong; but I appeal especially to two groups of people. The first
includes
all those who are still denied the happiness I have spoken of,
and the second
embraces those who once enjoyed that happiness but had it
torn from them by a
harsh fate. I turn to all those who have been torn
from their motherland and
who have to struggle for the preservation of
their most sacred patrimony,
their native language, persecuted and
harried because of their loyalty and
love for the homeland, yearning
sadly for the hour when they will be allowed
to return to the bosom of
their father's household. To these I address my
words, and I know that
they will understand.
Only he who has
experienced in his own inner life what it means to be
German and yet to be
denied the right of belonging to his fatherland can
appreciate the profound
nostalgia which that enforced exile causes. It
is a perpetual heartache, and
there is no place for joy and contentment
until the doors of paternal home
are thrown open and all those through
whose veins kindred blood is flowing
will find peace and rest in their
common REICH.
Vienna was a hard
school for me; but it taught me the most profound
lessons of my life. I was
scarcely more than a boy when I came to live
there, and when I left it I had
grown to be a man of a grave and pensive
nature. In Vienna I acquired the
foundations of a WELTANSCHAUUNG in
general and developed a faculty for
analysing political questions in
particular. That WELTANSCHAUUNG and the
political ideas then formed
have never been abandoned, though they were
expanded later on in some
directions. It is only now that I can fully
appreciate how valuable
those years of apprenticeship were for me.
That is why I have given a detailed account of this period. There, in
Vienna,
stark reality taught me the truths that now form the fundamental
principles
of the Party which within the course of five years has grown
from modest
beginnings to a great mass movement. I do not know what my
attitude towards
Jewry, Social-Democracy, or rather Marxism in general,
to the social problem,
etc., would be to-day if I had not acquired a
stock of personal beliefs at
such an early age, by dint of hard study
and under the duress of Fate.
For, although the misfortunes of the Fatherland may have stimulated
thousands and thousands to ponder over the inner causes of the collapse,
that
could not lead to such a thorough knowledge and deep insight as a
man may
develop who has fought a hard struggle for many years so that he
might be
master of his own fate.
CHAPTER
MUNICH
At last I came to Munich, in the spring of 1912.
The city itself was as familiar to me as if I had lived for years within
its walls.
This was because my studies in architecture had been
constantly turning
my attention to the metropolis of German art. One must
know Munich if
one would know Germany, and it is impossible to acquire a
knowledge of
German art without seeing Munich.
All things considered,
this pre-war sojourn was by far the happiest and
most contented time of my
life. My earnings were very slender; but after
all I did not live for the
sake of painting. I painted in order to get
the bare necessities of existence
while I continued my studies. I was
firmly convinced that I should finally
succeed in reaching the goal I
had marked out for myself. And this conviction
alone was strong enough
to enable me to bear the petty hardships of everyday
life without
worrying very much about them.
Moreover, almost from the
very first moment of my sojourn there I came
to love that city more than any
other place known to me. A German city!
I said to myself. How different to
Vienna. It was with a feeling of
disgust that my imagination reverted to that
Babylon of races. Another
pleasant feature here was the way the people spoke
German, which was
much nearer my own way of speaking than the Viennese idiom.
The Munich
idiom recalled the days of my youth, especially when I spoke with
those
who had come to Munich from Lower Bavaria. There were a thousand or
more
things which I inwardly loved or which I came to love during the course
of my stay. But what attracted me most was the marvellous wedlock of
native
folk-energy with the fine artistic spirit of the city, that
unique harmony
from the Hofbräuhaus to the Odeon, from the October
Festival to the
PINAKOTHEK, etc. The reason why my heart's strings are
entwined around this
city as around no other spot in this world is
probably because Munich is and
will remain inseparably connected with
the development of my own career; and
the fact that from the beginning
of my visit I felt inwardly happy and
contented is to be attributed to
the charm of the marvellous Wittelsbach
Capital, which has attracted
probably everybody who is blessed with a feeling
for beauty instead of
commercial instincts.
Apart from my professional
work, I was most interested in the study of
current political events,
particularly those which were connected with
foreign relations. I approached
these by way of the German policy of
alliances which, ever since my Austrian
days, I had considered to be an
utterly mistaken one. But in Vienna I had not
yet seen quite clearly how
far the German Empire had gone in the process of'
self-delusion. In
Vienna I was inclined to assume, or probably I persuaded
myself to do so
in order to excuse the German mistake, that possibly the
authorities in
Berlin knew how weak and unreliable their ally would prove to
be when
brought face to face with realities, but that, for more or less
mysterious reasons, they refrained from allowing their opinions on this
point
to be known in public. Their idea was that they should support the
policy of
alliances which Bismarck had initiated and the sudden
discontinuance of which
might be undesirable, if for no other reason
than that it might arouse those
foreign countries which were lying in
wait for their chance or might alarm
the Philistines at home.
But my contact with the people soon taught me,
to my horror, that my
assumptions were wrong. I was amazed to find
everywhere, even in circles
otherwise well informed, that nobody had the
slightest intimation of the
real character of the Habsburg Monarchy. Among
the common people in
particular there was a prevalent illusion that the
Austrian ally was a
Power which would have to be seriously reckoned with and
would rally its
man-power in the hour of need. The mass of the people
continued to look
upon the Dual Monarchy as a 'German State' and believed
that it could be
relied upon. They assumed that its strength could be
measured by the
millions of its subjects, as was the case in Germany. First
of all, they
did not realize that Austria had ceased to be a German State
and,
secondly, that the conditions prevailing within the Austrian Empire were
steadily pushing it headlong to the brink of disaster.
At that time I
knew the condition of affairs in the Austrian State
better than the
professional diplomats. Blindfolded, as nearly always,
these diplomats
stumbled along on their way to disaster. The opinions
prevailing among the
bulk of the people reflected only what had been
drummed into them from
official quarters above. And these higher
authorities grovelled before the
'Ally', as the people of old bowed down
before the Golden Calf. They probably
thought that by being polite and
amiable they might balance the lack of
honesty on the other side. Thus
they took every declaration at its full face
value.
Even while in Vienna I used to be annoyed again and again by the
discrepancy between the speeches of the official statesmen and the
contents
of the Viennese Press. And yet Vienna was still a German city,
at least as
far as appearances went. But one encountered an utterly
different state of
things on leaving Vienna, or rather German-Austria,
and coming into the Slav
provinces. It needed only a glance at the
Prague newspapers in order to see
how the whole exalted hocus-pocus of
the Triple Alliance was judged from
there. In Prague there was nothing
but gibes and sneers for that masterpiece
of statesmanship. Even in the
piping times of peace, when the two emperors
kissed each other on the
brow in token of friendship, those papers did not
cloak their belief
that the alliance would be liquidated the moment a first
attempt was
made to bring it down from the shimmering glory of a Nibelungen
ideal to
the plane of practical affairs.
Great indignation was aroused
a few years later, when the alliances were
put to the first practical test.
Italy not only withdrew from the Triple
Alliance, leaving the other two
members to march by themselves. but she
even joined their enemies. That
anybody should believe even for a moment
in the possibility of such a miracle
as that of Italy fighting on the
same side as Austria would be simply
incredible to anyone who did not
suffer from the blindness of official
diplomacy. And that was just how
people felt in Austria also.
In
Austria only the Habsburgs and the German-Austrians supported the
alliance.
The Habsburgs did so from shrewd calculation of their own
interests and from
necessity. The Germans did it out of good faith and
political ignorance. They
acted in good faith inasmuch as they believed
that by establishing the Triple
Alliance they were doing a great service
to the German Empire and were thus
helping to strengthen it and
consolidate its defence. They showed their
political ignorance, however,
in holding such ideas, because, instead of
helping the German Empire
they really chained it to a moribund State which
might bring its
associate into the grave with itself; and, above all, by
championing
this alliance they fell more and more a prey to the Habsburg
policy of
de-Germanization. For the alliance gave the Habsburgs good grounds
for
believing that the German Empire would not interfere in their domestic
affairs and thus they were in a position to carry into effect, with more
ease
and less risk, their domestic policy of gradually eliminating the
German
element. Not only could the 'objectiveness' of the German
Government be
counted upon, and thus there need be no fear of protest
from that quarter,
but one could always remind the German-Austrians of
the alliance and thus
silence them in case they should ever object to
the reprehensible means that
were being employed to establish a Slav
hegemony in the Dual Monarchy.
What could the German-Austrians do, when the people of the German Empire
itself had openly proclaimed their trust and confidence in the Habsburg
régime?
Should they resist, and thus be branded openly before their
kinsfolk in
the REICH as traitors to their own national interests? They, who
for so
many decades had sacrificed so much for the sake of their German
tradition!
Once the influence of the Germans in Austria had been wiped
out, what
then would be the value of the alliance? If the Triple Alliance
were to
be advantageous to Germany, was it not a necessary condition that the
predominance of the German element in Austria should be maintained? Or
did
anyone really believe that Germany could continue to be the ally of
a
Habsburg Empire under the hegemony of the Slavs?
The official attitude of
German diplomacy, as well as that of the
general public towards internal
problems affecting the Austrian
nationalities was not merely stupid, it was
insane. On the alliance, as
on a solid foundation, they grounded the security
and future existence
of a nation of seventy millions, while at the same time
they allowed
their partner to continue his policy of undermining the sole
foundation
of that alliance methodically and resolutely, from year to year. A
day
must come when nothing but a formal contract with Viennese diplomats
would be left. The alliance itself, as an effective support, would be
lost to
Germany.
As far as concerned Italy, such had been the case from the
outset.
If people in Germany had studied history and the psychology of
nations a
little more carefully not one of them could have believed for a
single
hour that the Quirinal and the Viennese Hofburg could ever stand
shoulder to shoulder on a common battle front. Italy would have exploded
like
a volcano if any Italian government had dared to send a single
Italian
soldier to fight for the Habsburg State. So fanatically hated
was this State
that the Italians could stand in no other relation to it
on a battle front
except as enemies. More than once in Vienna I have
witnessed explosions of
the contempt and profound hatred which 'allied'
the Italian to the Austrian
State. The crimes which the House of
Habsburg committed against Italian
freedom and independence during
several centuries were too grave to be
forgiven, even with the best of
goodwill. But this goodwill did not exist,
either among the rank and
file of the population or in the government.
Therefore for Italy there
were only two ways of co-existing with
Austria--alliance or war. By
choosing the first it was possible to prepare
leisurely for the second.
Especially since relations between Russia and
Austria tended more and
more towards the arbitrament of war, the German
policy of alliances was
as senseless as it was dangerous. Here was a
classical instance which
demonstrated the lack of any broad or logical lines
of thought.
But what was the reason for forming the alliance at all? It
could not
have been other than the wish to secure the future of the REICH
better
than if it were to depend exclusively on its own resources. But the
future of the REICH could not have meant anything else than the problem
of
securing the means of existence for the German people.
The only questions
therefore were the following: What form shall the
life of the nation assume
in the near future--that is to say within such
a period as we can forecast?
And by what means can the necessary
foundation and security be guaranteed for
this development within the
framework of the general distribution of power
among the European
nations? A clear analysis of the principles on which the
foreign policy
of German statecraft were to be based should have led to the
following
conclusions:
The annual increase of population in Germany
amounts to almost 900,000
souls. The difficulties of providing for this army
of new citizens must
grow from year to year and must finally lead to a
catastrophe, unless
ways and means are found which will forestall the danger
of misery and
hunger. There were four ways of providing against this terrible
calamity:
(1) It was possible to adopt the French example and
artificially
restrict the number of births, thus avoiding an excess of
population.
Under certain circumstances, in periods of distress or under
bad
climatic condition, or if the soil yields too poor a return, Nature
herself tends to check the increase of population in some countries and
among
some races, but by a method which is quite as ruthless as it is
wise. It does
not impede the procreative faculty as such; but it does
impede the further
existence of the offspring by submitting it to such
tests and privations that
everything which is less strong or less
healthy is forced to retreat into the
bosom of tile unknown. Whatever
survives these hardships of existence has
been tested and tried a
thousandfold, hardened and renders fit to continue
the process of
procreation; so that the same thorough selection will begin
all over
again. By thus dealing brutally with the individual and recalling
him
the very moment he shows that he is not fitted for the trials of life,
Nature preserves the strength of the race and the species and raises it
to
the highest degree of efficiency.
The decrease in numbers therefore
implies an increase of strength, as
far as the individual is concerned, and
this finally means the
invigoration of the species.
But the case is
different when man himself starts the process of
numerical restriction. Man
is not carved from Nature's wood. He is made
of 'human' material. He knows
more than the ruthless Queen of Wisdom. He
does not impede the preservation
of the individual but prevents
procreation itself. To the individual, who
always sees only himself and
not the race, this line of action seems more
humane and just than the
opposite way. But, unfortunately, the consequences
are also the
opposite.
By leaving the process of procreation unchecked
and by submitting the
individual to the hardest preparatory tests in life,
Nature selects the
best from an abundance of single elements and stamps them
as fit to live
and carry on the conservation of the species. But man
restricts the
procreative faculty and strives obstinately to keep alive at
any cost
whatever has once been born. This correction of the Divine Will
seems to
him to be wise and humane, and he rejoices at having trumped
Nature's
card in one game at least and thus proved that she is not entirely
reliable. The dear little ape of an all-mighty father is delighted to
see and
hear that he has succeeded in effecting a numerical restriction;
but he would
be very displeased if told that this, his system, brings
about a degeneration
in personal quality.
For as soon as the procreative faculty is thwarted
and the number of
births diminished, the natural struggle for existence which
allows only
healthy and strong individuals to survive is replaced by a sheer
craze
to 'save' feeble and even diseased creatures at any cost. And thus the
seeds are sown for a human progeny which will become more and more
miserable
from one generation to another, as long as Nature's will is
scorned.
But if that policy be carried out the final results must be that such a
nation will eventually terminate its own existence on this earth; for
though
man may defy the eternal laws of procreation during a certain
period,
vengeance will follow sooner or later. A stronger race will oust
that which
has grown weak; for the vital urge, in its ultimate form,
will burst asunder
all the absurd chains of this so-called humane
consideration for the
individual and will replace it with the humanity
of Nature, which wipes out
what is weak in order to give place to the
strong.
Any policy which
aims at securing the existence of a nation by
restricting the birth-rate robs
that nation of its future.
(2) A second solution is that of internal
colonization. This is a
proposal which is frequently made in our own time and
one hears it
lauded a good deal. It is a suggestion that is well-meant but it
is
misunderstood by most people, so that it is the source of more mischief
than can be imagined.
It is certainly true that the productivity of the
soil can be increased
within certain limits; but only within defined limits
and not
indefinitely. By increasing the productive powers of the soil it will
be
possible to balance the effect of a surplus birth-rate in Germany for a
certain period of time, without running any danger of hunger. But we
have to
face the fact that the general standard of living is rising more
quickly than
even the birth rate. The requirements of food and clothing
are becoming
greater from year to year and are out of proportion to
those of our ancestors
of, let us say, a hundred years ago. It would,
therefore, be a mistaken view
that every increase in the productive
powers of the soil will supply the
requisite conditions for an increase
in the population. No. That is true up
to a certain point only, for at
least a portion of the increased produce of
the soil will be consumed by
the margin of increased demands caused by the
steady rise in the
standard of living. But even if these demands were to be
curtailed to
the narrowest limits possible and if at the same time we were to
use all
our available energies in the intenser cultivation, we should here
reach
a definite limit which is conditioned by the inherent nature of the
soil
itself. No matter how industriously we may labour we cannot increase
agricultural production beyond this limit. Therefore, though we may
postpone
the evil hour of distress for a certain time, it will arrive at
last. The
first phenomenon will be the recurrence of famine periods from
time to time,
after bad harvests, etc. The intervals between these
famines will become
shorter and shorter the more the population
increases; and, finally, the
famine times will disappear only in those
rare years of plenty when the
granaries are full. And a time will
ultimately come when even in those years
of plenty there will not be
enough to go round; so that hunger will dog the
footsteps of the nation.
Nature must now step in once more and select those
who are to survive,
or else man will help himself by artificially preventing
his own
increase, with all the fatal consequences for the race and the
species
which have been already mentioned.
It may be objected here
that, in one form or another, this future is in
store for all mankind and
that the individual nation or race cannot
escape the general fate.
At
first glance, that objection seems logical enough; but we have to
take the
following into account:
The day will certainly come when the whole of
mankind will be forced to
check the augmentation of the human species,
because there will be no
further possibility of adjusting the productivity of
the soil to the
perpetual increase in the population. Nature must then be
allowed to use
her own methods or man may possibly take the task of
regulation into his
own hands and establish the necessary equilibrium by the
application of
better means than we have at our disposal to-day. But then it
will be a
problem for mankind as a whole, whereas now only those races have
to
suffer from want which no longer have the strength and daring to acquire
sufficient soil to fulfil their needs. For, as things stand to-day, vast
spaces still lie uncultivated all over the surface of the globe. Those
spaces
are only waiting for the ploughshare. And it is quite certain
that Nature did
not set those territories apart as the exclusive
pastures of any one nation
or race to be held unutilized in reserve for
the future. Such land awaits the
people who have the strength to acquire
it and the diligence to cultivate it.
Nature knows no political frontiers. She begins by establishing life on
this globe and then watches the free play of forces. Those who show the
greatest courage and industry are the children nearest to her heart and
they
will be granted the sovereign right of existence.
If a nation confines
itself to 'internal colonization' while other races
are perpetually
increasing their territorial annexations all over the
globe, that nation will
be forced to restrict the numerical growth of
its population at a time when
the other nations are increasing theirs.
This situation must eventually
arrive. It will arrive soon if the
territory which the nation has at its
disposal be small. Now it is
unfortunately true that only too often the best
nations--or, to speak
more exactly, the only really cultured nations, who at
the same time are
the chief bearers of human progress--have decided, in their
blind
pacifism, to refrain from the acquisition of new territory and to be
content with 'internal colonization.' But at the same time nations of
inferior quality succeed in getting hold of large spaces for
colonization all
over the globe. The state of affairs which must result
from this contrast is
the following:
Races which are culturally superior but less ruthless
would be forced to
restrict their increase, because of insufficient territory
to support
the population, while less civilized races could increase
indefinitely,
owing to the vast territories at their disposal. In other
words: should
that state of affairs continue, then the world will one day be
possessed
by that portion of mankind which is culturally inferior but more
active
and energetic.
A time will come, even though in the distant
future, when there can be
only two alternatives: Either the world will be
ruled according to our
modern concept of democracy, and then every decision
will be in favour
of the numerically stronger races; or the world will be
governed by the
law of natural distribution of power, and then those nations
will be
victorious who are of more brutal will and are not the nations who
have
practised self-denial.
Nobody can doubt that this world will one
day be the scene of dreadful
struggles for existence on the part of mankind.
In the end the instinct
of self-preservation alone will triumph. Before its
consuming fire this
so-called humanitarianism, which connotes only a mixture
of fatuous
timidity and self-conceit, will melt away as under the March
sunshine.
Man has become great through perpetual struggle. In perpetual peace
his
greatness must decline.
For us Germans, the slogan of 'internal
colonization' is fatal, because
it encourages the belief that we have
discovered a means which is in
accordance with our innate pacifism and which
will enable us to work for
our livelihood in a half slumbering existence.
Such a teaching, once it
were taken seriously by our people, would mean the
end of all effort to
acquire for ourselves that place in the world which we
deserve. If. the
average German were once convinced that by this measure he
has the
chance of ensuring his livelihood and guaranteeing his future, any
attempt to take an active and profitable part in sustaining the vital
demands
of his country would be out of the question. Should the nation
agree to such
an attitude then any really useful foreign policy might be
looked upon as
dead and buried, together with all hope for the future of
the German people.
Once we know what the consequences of this 'internal colonization'
theory
would be we can no longer consider as a mere accident the fact
that among
those who inculcate this quite pernicious mentality among our
people the Jew
is always in the first line. He knows his softies only
too well not to know
that they are ready to be the grateful victims of
every swindle which
promises them a gold-block in the shape of a
discovery that will enable them
to outwit Nature and thus render
superfluous the hard and inexorable struggle
for existence; so that
finally they may become lords of the planet partly by
sheer DOLCE FAR
NIENTE and partly by working when a pleasing opportunity
arises.
It cannot be too strongly emphasised that any German 'internal
colonization' must first of all be considered as suited only for the
relief
of social grievances. To carry out a system of internal
colonization, the
most important preliminary measure would be to free
the soil from the grip of
the speculator and assure that freedom. But
such a system could never suffice
to assure the future of the nation
without the acquisition of new territory.
If we adopt a different plan we shall soon reach a point beyond which
the
resources of our soil can no longer be exploited, and at the same
time we
shall reach a point beyond which our man-power cannot develop.
In
conclusion, the following must be said:
The fact that only up to a
limited extent can internal colonization be
practised in a national territory
which is of definitely small area and
the restriction of the procreative
faculty which follows as a result of
such conditions--these two factors have
a very unfavourable effect on
the military and political standing of a
nation.
The extent of the national territory is a determining factor in
the
external security of the nation. The larger the territory which a people
has at its disposal the stronger are the national defences of that
people.
Military decisions are more quickly, more easily, more
completely and more
effectively gained against a people occupying a
national territory which is
restricted in area, than against States
which have extensive territories.
Moreover, the magnitude of a national
territory is in itself a certain
assurance that an outside Power will
not hastily risk the adventure of an
invasion; for in that case the
struggle would have to be long and exhausting
before victory could be
hoped for. The risk being so great. there would have
to be extraordinary
reasons for such an aggressive adventure. Hence it is
that the
territorial magnitude of a State furnishes a basis whereon national
liberty and independence can be maintained with relative ease; while, on
the
contrary, a State whose territory is small offers a natural
temptation to the
invader.
As a matter of fact, so-called national circles in the German
REICH
rejected those first two possibilities of establishing a balance
between
the constant numerical increase in the population and a national
territory which could not expand proportionately. But the reasons given
for
that rejection were different from those which I have just
expounded. It was
mainly on the basis of certain moral sentiments that
restriction of the
birth-rate was objected to. Proposals for internal
colonization were rejected
indignantly because it was suspected that
such a policy might mean an attack
on the big landowners, and that this
attack might be the forerunner of a
general assault against the
principle of private property as a whole. The
form in which the latter
solution--internal colonization--was recommended
justified the
misgivings of the big landowners.
But the form in which
the colonization proposal was rejected was not
very clever, as regards the
impression which such rejection might be
calculated to make on the mass of
the people, and anyhow it did not go
to the root of the problem at all.
Only two further ways were left open in which work and bread could be
secured for the increasing population.
(3) It was possible to think of
acquiring new territory on which a
certain portion of' the increasing
population could be settled each
year; or else
(4) Our industry and
commerce had to be organized in such a manner as to
secure an increase in the
exports and thus be able to support our people
by the increased purchasing
power accruing from the profits made on
foreign markets.
Therefore the
problem was: A policy of territorial expansion or a
colonial and commercial
policy. Both policies were taken into
consideration, examined, recommended
and rejected, from various
standpoints, with the result that the second
alternative was finally
adopted. The sounder alternative, however, was
undoubtedly the first.
The principle of acquiring new territory, on which
the surplus
population could be settled, has many advantages to recommend it,
especially if we take the future as well as the present into account.
In
the first place, too much importance cannot be placed on the
necessity for
adopting a policy which will make it possible to maintain
a healthy peasant
class as the basis of the national community. Many of
our present evils have
their origin exclusively in the disproportion
between the urban and rural
portions of the population. A solid stock of
small and medium farmers has at
all times been the best protection which
a nation could have against the
social diseases that are prevalent
to-day. Moreover, that is the only
solution which guarantees the daily
bread of a nation within the framework of
its domestic national economy.
With this condition once guaranteed, industry
and commerce would retire
from the unhealthy position of foremost importance
which they hold
to-day and would take their due place within the general
scheme of
national economy, adjusting the balance between demand and supply.
Thus
industry and commerce would no longer constitute the basis of the
national subsistence, but would be auxiliary institutions. By fulfilling
their proper function, which is to adjust the balance between national
production and national consumption, they render the national
subsistence
more or less independent of foreign countries and thus
assure the freedom and
independence of the nation, especially at
critical junctures in its history.
Such a territorial policy, however, cannot find its fulfilment in the
Cameroons but almost exclusively here in Europe. One must calmly and
squarely
face the truth that it certainly cannot be part of the
dispensation of Divine
Providence to give a fifty times larger share of
the soil of this world to
one nation than to another. In considering
this state of affairs to-day, one
must not allow existing political
frontiers to distract attention from what
ought to exist on principles
of strict justice. If this earth has sufficient
room for all, then we
ought to have that share of the soil which is
absolutely necessary for
our existence.
Of course people will not
voluntarily make that accommodation. At this
point the right of
self-preservation comes into effect. And when
attempts to settle the
difficulty in an amicable way are rejected the
clenched hand must take by
force that which was refused to the open hand
of friendship. If in the past
our ancestors had based their political
decisions on similar pacifist
nonsense as our present generation does,
we should not possess more than
one-third of the national territory that
we possess to-day and probably there
would be no German nation to worry
about its future in Europe. No. We owe the
two Eastern Marks (Note 8) of
the Empire to the natural determination of our
forefathers in their
struggle for existence, and thus it is to the same
determined policy that
we owe the inner strength which is based on the extent
of our political
and racial territories and which alone has made it possible
for us to
exist up to now.
[Note 8. German Austria was the East Mark
on the South and East Prussia
was the East Mark on the North.]
And
there is still another reason why that solution would have been the
correct
one:
Many contemporary European States are like pyramids standing on
their
apexes. The European territory which these States possess is
ridiculously small when compared with the enormous overhead weight of
their
colonies, foreign trade, etc. It may be said that they have the
apex in
Europe and the base of the pyramid all over the world; quite
different from
the United States of America, which has its base on the
American Continent
and is in contact with the rest of the world only
through its apex. Out of
that situation arises the incomparable inner
strength of the U.S.A. and the
contrary situation is responsible for the
weakness of most of the colonial
European Powers.
England cannot be suggested as an argument against this
assertion,
though in glancing casually over the map of the British Empire one
is
inclined easily to overlook the existence of a whole Anglo-Saxon world.
England's position cannot be compared with that of any other State in
Europe,
since it forms a vast community of language and culture together
with the
U.S.A.
Therefore the only possibility which Germany had of carrying a
sound
territorial policy into effect was that of acquiring new territory in
Europe itself. Colonies cannot serve this purpose as long as they are
not
suited for settlement by Europeans on a large scale. In the
nineteenth
century it was no longer possible to acquire such colonies by
peaceful means.
Therefore any attempt at such a colonial expansion would
have meant an
enormous military struggle. Consequently it would have
been more practical to
undertake that military struggle for new
territory in Europe rather than to
wage war for the acquisition of
possessions abroad.
Such a decision
naturally demanded that the nation's undivided energies
should be devoted to
it. A policy of that kind which requires for its
fulfilment every ounce of
available energy on the part of everybody
concerned, cannot be carried into
effect by half-measures or in a
hesitating manner. The political leadership
of the German Empire should
then have been directed exclusively to this goal.
No political step
should have been taken in response to other considerations
than this
task and the means of accomplishing it. Germany should have been
alive
to the fact that such a goal could have been reached only by war, and
the prospect of war should have been faced with calm and collected
determination.
The whole system of alliances should have been envisaged
and valued from
that standpoint. If new territory were to be acquired in
Europe it must
have been mainly at Russia's cost, and once again the new
German Empire
should have set out on its march along the same road as was
formerly
trodden by the Teutonic Knights, this time to acquire soil for the
German plough by means of the German sword and thus provide the nation
with
its daily bread.
For such a policy, however, there was only one possible
ally in Europe.
That was England.
Only by alliance with England was it
possible to safeguard the rear of
the new German crusade. The justification
for undertaking such an
expedition was stronger than the justification which
our forefathers had
for setting out on theirs. Not one of our pacifists
refuses to eat the
bread made from the grain grown in the East; and yet the
first plough
here was that called the 'Sword'.
No sacrifice should
have been considered too great if it was a necessary
means of gaining
England's friendship. Colonial and naval ambitions
should have been abandoned
and attempts should not have been made to
compete against British industries.
Only a clear and definite policy could lead to such an achievement. Such
a policy would have demanded a renunciation of the endeavour to conquer
the
world's markets, also a renunciation of colonial intentions and
naval power.
All the means of power at the disposal of the State should
have been
concentrated in the military forces on land. This policy would
have involved
a period of temporary self-denial, for the sake of a great
and powerful
future.
There was a time when England might have entered into
negotiations with
us, on the grounds of that proposal. For England would have
well
understood that the problems arising from the steady increase in
population were forcing Germany to look for a solution either in Europe
with
the help of England or, without England, in some other part of the
world.
This outlook was probably the chief reason why London tried to draw
nearer to Germany about the turn of the century. For the first time in
Germany an attitude was then manifested which afterwards displayed
itself in
a most tragic way. People then gave expression to an
unpleasant feeling that
we might thus find ourselves obliged to pull
England's chestnuts out of the
fire. As if an alliance could be based on
anything else than mutual
give-and-take! And England would have become a
party to such a mutual
bargain. British diplomats were still wise enough
to know that an equivalent
must be forthcoming as a consideration for
any services rendered.
Let
us suppose that in 1904 our German foreign policy was managed
astutely enough
to enable us to take the part which Japan played. It is
not easy to measure
the greatness of the results that might have accrued
to Germany from such a
policy.
There would have been no world war. The blood which would have
been shed
in 1904 would not have been a tenth of that shed from 1914 to 1918.
And
what a position Germany would hold in the world to-day?
In any
case the alliance with Austria was then an absurdity.
For this mummy of a
State did not attach itself to Germany for the
purpose of carrying through a
war, but rather to maintain a perpetual
state of peace which was meant to be
exploited for the purpose of slowly
but persistently exterminating the German
element in the Dual Monarchy.
Another reason for the impossible character
of this alliance was that
nobody could expect such a State to take an active
part in defending
German national interests, seeing that it did not have
sufficient
strength and determination to put an end to the policy of
de-Germanization within its own frontiers. If Germany herself was not
moved
by a sufficiently powerful national sentiment and was not
sufficiently
ruthless to take away from that absurd Habsburg State the
right to decide the
destinies of ten million inhabitants who were of the
same nationality as the
Germans themselves, surely it was out of the
question to expect the Habsburg
State to be a collaborating party in any
great and courageous German
undertaking. The attitude of the old REICH
towards the Austrian question
might have been taken as a test of its
stamina for the struggle where the
destinies of the whole nation were at
stake.
In any case, the policy
of oppression against the German population in
Austria should not have been
allowed to be carried on and to grow
stronger from year to year; for the
value of Austria as an ally could be
assured only by upholding the German
element there. But that course was
not followed.
Nothing was dreaded
so much as the possibility of an armed conflict; but
finally, and at a most
unfavourable moment, the conflict had to be faced
and accepted. They thought
to cut loose from the cords of destiny, but
destiny held them fast.
They dreamt of maintaining a world peace and woke up to find themselves
in a
world war.
And that dream of peace was a most significant reason why the
above-mentioned third alternative for the future development of Germany
was
not even taken into consideration. The fact was recognized that new
territory
could be gained only in the East; but this meant that there
would be fighting
ahead, whereas they wanted peace at any cost. The
slogan of German foreign
policy at one time used to be: The use of all
possible means for the
maintenance of the German nation. Now it was
changed to: Maintenance of world
peace by all possible means. We know
what the result was. I shall resume the
discussion of this point in
detail later on.
There remained still
another alternative, which we may call the fourth.
This was: Industry and
world trade, naval power and colonies.
Such a development might certainly
have been attained more easily and
more rapidly. To colonize a territory is a
slow process, often extending
over centuries. Yet this fact is the source of
its inner strength, for
it is not through a sudden burst of enthusiasm that
it can be put into
effect, but rather through a gradual and enduring process
of growth
quite different from industrial progress, which can be urged on by
advertisement within a few years. The result thus achieved, however, is
not
of lasting quality but something frail, like a soap-bubble. It is
much easier
to build quickly than to carry through the tough task of
settling a territory
with farmers and establishing farmsteads. But the
former is more quickly
destroyed than the latter.
In adopting such a course Germany must have
known that to follow it out
would necessarily mean war sooner or later. Only
children could believe
that sweet and unctuous expressions of goodness and
persistent avowals
of peaceful intentions could get them their bananas
through this
'friendly competition between the nations', with the prospect of
never
having to fight for them.
No. Once we had taken this road,
England was bound to be our enemy at
some time or other to come. Of course it
fitted in nicely with our
innocent assumptions, but still it was absurd to
grow indignant at the
fact that a day came when the English took the liberty
of opposing our
peaceful penetration with the brutality of violent egoists.
Naturally, we on our side would never have done such a thing.
If a
European territorial policy against Russia could have been put into
practice
only in case we had England as our ally, on the other hand a
colonial and
world-trade policy could have been carried into effect only
against English
interests and with the support of Russia. But then this
policy should have
been adopted in full consciousness of all the
consequences it involved and,
above all things, Austria should have been
discarded as quickly as possible.
At the turn of the century the alliance with Austria had become a
veritable absurdity from all points of view.
But nobody thought of
forming an alliance with Russia against England,
just as nobody thought of
making England an ally against Russia; for in
either case the final result
would inevitably have meant war. And to
avoid war was the very reason why a
commercial and industrial policy was
decided upon. It was believed that the
peaceful conquest of the world by
commercial means provided a method which
would permanently supplant the
policy of force. Occasionally, however, there
were doubts about the
efficiency of this principle, especially when some
quite
incomprehensible warnings came from England now and again. That was the
reason why the fleet was built. It was not for the purpose of attacking
or
annihilating England but merely to defend the concept of world-peace,
mentioned above, and also to protect the principle of conquering the
world by
'peaceful' means. Therefore this fleet was kept within modest
limits, not
only as regards the number and tonnage of the vessels but
also in regard to
their armament, the idea being to furnish new proofs
of peaceful intentions.
The chatter about the peaceful conquest of the world by commercial means
was probably the most completely nonsensical stuff ever raised to the
dignity
of a guiding principle in the policy of a State, This nonsense
became even
more foolish when England was pointed out as a typical
example to prove how
the thing could be put into practice. Our doctrinal
way of regarding history
and our professorial ideas in that domain have
done irreparable harm and
offer a striking 'proof' of how people 'learn'
history without understanding
anything of it. As a matter of fact,
England ought to have been looked upon
as a convincing argument against
the theory of the pacific conquest of the
world by commercial means. No
nation prepared the way for its commercial
conquests more brutally than
England did by means of the sword, and no other
nation has defended such
conquests more ruthlessly. Is it not a
characteristic quality of British
statecraft that it knows how to use
political power in order to gain
economic advantages and, inversely, to turn
economic conquests into
political power? What an astounding error it was to
believe that England
would not have the courage to give its own blood for the
purposes of its
own economic expansion! The fact that England did not possess
a national
army proved nothing; for it is not the actual military structure
of the
moment that matters but rather the will and determination to use
whatever military strength is available. England has always had the
armament
which she needed. She always fought with those weapons which
were necessary
for success. She sent mercenary troops, to fight as long
as mercenaries
sufficed; but she never hesitated to draw heavily and
deeply from the best
blood of the whole nation when victory could be
obtained only by such a
sacrifice. And in every case the fighting
spirit, dogged determination, and
use of brutal means in conducting
military operations have always remained
the same.
But in Germany, through the medium of the schools, the Press
and the
comic papers, an idea of the Englishman was gradually formed which
was
bound eventually to lead to the worst kind of self-deception. This
absurdity slowly but persistently spread into every quarter of German
life.
The result was an undervaluation for which we have had to pay a
heavy
penalty. The delusion was so profound that the Englishman was
looked upon as
a shrewd business man, but personally a coward even to an
incredible degree.
Unfortunately our lofty teachers of professorial
history did not bring home
to the minds of their pupils the truth that
it is not possible to build up
such a mighty organization as the British
Empire by mere swindle and fraud.
The few who called attention to that
truth were either ignored or silenced. I
can vividly recall to mind the
astonished looks of my comrades when they
found themselves personally
face to face for the first time with the Tommies
in Flanders. After a
few days of fighting the consciousness slowly dawned on
our soldiers
that those Scotsmen were not like the ones we had seen described
and
caricatured in the comic papers and mentioned in the communiqués.
It was then that I formed my first ideas of the efficiency of various
forms
of propaganda.
Such a falsification, however, served the purpose of those
who had
fabricated it. This caricature of the Englishman, though false, could
be
used to prove the possibility of conquering the world peacefully by
commercial means. Where the Englishman succeeded we should also succeed.
Our
far greater honesty and our freedom from that specifically English
'perfidy'
would be assets on our side. Thereby it was hoped that the
sympathy of the
smaller nations and the confidence of the greater
nations could be gained
more easily.
We did not realize that our honesty was an object of
profound aversion
for other people because we ourselves believed in it. The
rest of the
world looked on our behaviour as the manifestation of a shrewd
deceitfulness; but when the revolution came, then they were amazed at
the
deeper insight it gave them into our mentality, sincere even beyond
the
limits of stupidity.
Once we understand the part played by that absurd
notion of conquering
the world by peaceful commercial means we can clearly
understand how
that other absurdity, the Triple Alliance, came to exist. With
what
State then could an alliance have been made? In alliance with Austria we
could not acquire new territory by military means, even in Europe. And
this
very fact was the real reason for the inner weakness of the Triple
Alliance.
A Bismarck could permit himself such a makeshift for the
necessities of the
moment, but certainly not any of his bungling
successors, and least of all
when the foundations no longer existed on
which Bismarck had formed the
Triple Alliance. In Bismarck's time
Austria could still be looked upon as a
German State; but the gradual
introduction of universal suffrage turned the
country into a
parliamentary Babel, in which the German voice was scarcely
audible.
From the viewpoint of racial policy, this alliance with Austria
was
simply disastrous. A new Slavic Great Power was allowed to grow up close
to the frontiers of the German Empire. Later on this Power was bound to
adopt
towards Germany an attitude different from that of Russia, for
example. The
Alliance was thus bound to become more empty and more
feeble, because the
only supporters of it were losing their influence
and were being
systematically pushed out of the more important public
offices.
About
the year 1900 the Alliance with Austria had already entered the
same phase as
the Alliance between Austria and Italy.
Here also only one alternative
was possible: Either to take the side of
the Habsburg Monarchy or to raise a
protest against the oppression of
the German element in Austria. But,
generally speaking, when one takes
such a course it is bound eventually to
lead to open conflict.
From the psychological point of view also, the
Triple decreases
according as such an alliance limits its object to the
defence of the
STATUS QUO. But, on the other hand, an alliance will increase
its
cohesive strength the more the parties concerned in it may hope to use
it as a means of reaching some practical goal of expansion. Here, as
everywhere else, strength does not lie in defence but in attack.
This
truth was recognized in various quarters but, unfortunately, not by
the
so-called elected representatives of the people. As early as 1912
Ludendorff,
who was then Colonel and an Officer of the General Staff,
pointed out these
weak features of the Alliance in a memorandum which he
then drew up. But of
course the 'statesmen' did not attach any
importance or value to that
document. In general it would seem as if
reason were a faculty that is active
only in the case of ordinary
mortals but that it is entirely absent when we
come to deal with that
branch of the species known as 'diplomats'.
It
was lucky for Germany that the war of 1914 broke out with Austria as
its
direct cause, for thus the Habsburgs were compelled to participate.
Had the
origin of the War been otherwise, Germany would have been left
to her own
resources. The Habsburg State would never have been ready or
willing to take
part in a war for the origin of which Germany was
responsible. What was the
object of so much obloquy later in the case of
Italy's decision would have
taken place, only earlier, in the case of
Austria. In other words, if Germany
had been forced to go to war for
some reason of its own, Austria would have
remained 'neutral' in order
to safeguard the State against a revolution which
might begin
immediately after the war had started. The Slav element would
have
preferred to smash up the Dual Monarchy in 1914 rather than permit it to
come to the assistance of Germany. But at that time there were only a
few who
understood all the dangers and aggravations which resulted from
the alliance
with the Danubian Monarchy.
In the first place, Austria had too many
enemies who were eagerly
looking forward to obtain the heritage of that
decrepit State, so that
these people gradually developed a certain animosity
against Germany,
because Germany was an obstacle to their desires inasmuch as
it kept the
Dual Monarchy from falling to pieces, a consummation that was
hoped for
and yearned for on all sides. The conviction developed that Vienna
could
be reached only by passing through Berlin.
In the second place,
by adopting this policy Germany lost its best and
most promising chances of
other alliances. In place of these
possibilities one now observed a growing
tension in the relations with
Russia and even with Italy. And this in spite
of the fact that the
general attitude in Rome was just as favourable to
Germany as it was
hostile to Austria, a hostility which lay dormant in the
individual
Italian and broke out violently on occasion.
Since a
commercial and industrial policy had been adopted, no motive was
left for
waging war against Russia. Only the enemies of the two
countries, Germany and
Russia, could have an active interest in such a
war under these
circumstances. As a matter of fact, it was only the Jews
and the Marxists who
tried to stir up bad blood between the two States.
In the third place,
the Alliance constituted a permanent danger to
German security; for any great
Power that was hostile to Bismarck's
Empire could mobilize a whole lot of
other States in a war against
Germany by promising them tempting spoils at
the expense of the Austrian
ally.
It was possible to arouse the whole
of Eastern Europe against Austria,
especially Russia, and Italy also. The
world coalition which had
developed under the leadership of King Edward could
never have become a
reality if Germany's ally, Austria, had not offered such
an alluring
prospect of booty. It was this fact alone which made it possible
to
combine so many heterogeneous States with divergent interests into one
common phalanx of attack. Every member could hope to enrich himself at
the
expense of Austria if he joined in the general attack against
Germany. The
fact that Turkey was also a tacit party to the unfortunate
alliance with
Austria augmented Germany's peril to an extraordinary
degree.
Jewish
international finance needed this bait of the Austrian heritage
in order to
carry out its plans of ruining Germany; for Germany had not
yet surrendered
to the general control which the international captains
of finance and trade
exercised over the other States. Thus it was
possible to consolidate that
coalition and make it strong enough and
brave enough, through the sheer
weight of numbers, to join in bodily
conflict with the 'horned' Siegfried.
(Note 9)
[Note 9. Carlyle explains the epithet thus: "First then, let no
one from
the title GEHOERNTE (Horned, Behorned), fancy that our brave
Siegfried,
who was the loveliest as well as the bravest of men, was actually
cornuted, and had hornson his brow, though like Michael Angelo's Moses; or
even that his skin, to which the epithet BEHORNED refers, was hard like a
crocodile's, and not softer than the softest shamey, for the truth is,
his
Hornedness means only an Invulnerability, like that of Achilles..."]
The
alliance with the Habsburg Monarchy, which I loathed while still in
Austria,
was the subject of grave concern on my part and caused me to
meditate on it
so persistently that finally I came to the conclusions
which I have mentioned
above.
In the small circles which I frequented at that time I did not
conceal
my conviction that this sinister agreement with a State doomed to
collapse would also bring catastrophe to Germany if she did not free
herself
from it in time. I never for a moment wavered in that firm
conviction, even
when the tempest of the World War seemed to have made
shipwreck of the
reasoning faculty itself and had put blind enthusiasm
in its place, even
among those circles where the coolest and hardest
objective thinking ought to
have held sway. In the trenches I voiced and
upheld my own opinion whenever
these problems came under discussion. I
held that to abandon the Habsburg
Monarchy would involve no sacrifice if
Germany could thereby reduce the
number of her own enemies; for the
millions of Germans who had donned the
steel helmet had done so not to
fight for the maintenance of a corrupt
dynasty but rather for the
salvation of the German people.
Before the
War there were occasions on which it seemed that at least one
section of the
German public had some slight misgivings about the
political wisdom of the
alliance with Austria. From time to time German
conservative circles issued
warnings against being over-confident about
the worth of that alliance; but,
like every other reasonable suggestion
made at that time, it was thrown to
the winds. The general conviction
was that the right measures had been
adopted to 'conquer' the world,
that the success of these measures would be
enormous and the sacrifices
negligible.
Once again the 'uninitiated'
layman could do nothing but observe how the
'elect' were marching straight
ahead towards disaster and enticing their
beloved people to follow them, as
the rats followed the Pied Piper of
Hamelin.
If we would look for the
deeper grounds which made it possible to foist
on the people this absurd
notion of peacefully conquering the world
through commercial penetration, and
how it was possible to put forward
the maintenance of world-peace as a
national aim, we shall find that
these grounds lay in a general morbid
condition that had pervaded the
whole body of German political thought.
The triumphant progress of technical science in Germany and the
marvellous development of German industries and commerce led us to
forget
that a powerful State had been the necessary pre-requisite of
that success.
On the contrary, certain circles went even so far as to
give vent to the
theory that the State owed its very existence to these
phenomena; that it
was, above all, an economic institution and should be
constituted in
accordance with economic interests. Therefore, it was
held, the State was
dependent on the economic structure. This condition
of things was looked upon
and glorified as the soundest and most normal
arrangement.
Now, the
truth is that the State in itself has nothing whatsoever to do
with any
definite economic concept or a definite economic development.
It does not
arise from a compact made between contracting parties,
within a certain
delimited territory, for the purpose of serving
economic ends. The State is a
community of living beings who have
kindred physical and spiritual natures,
organized for the purpose of
assuring the conservation of their own kind and
to help towards
fulfilling those ends which Providence has assigned to that
particular
race or racial branch. Therein, and therein alone, lie the purpose
and
meaning of a State. Economic activity is one of the many auxiliary means
which are necessary for the attainment of those aims. But economic
activity
is never the origin or purpose of a State, except where a State
has been
originally founded on a false and unnatural basis. And this
alone explains
why a State as such does not necessarily need a certain
delimited territory
as a condition of its establishment. This condition
becomes a necessary
pre-requisite only among those people who would
provide and assure
subsistence for their kinsfolk through their own
industry, which means that
they are ready to carry on the struggle for
existence by means of their own
work. People who can sneak their way,
like parasites, into the human body
politic and make others work for
them under various pretences can form a
State without possessing any
definite delimited territory. This is chiefly
applicable to that
parasitic nation which, particularly at the present time
preys upon the
honest portion of mankind; I mean the Jews.
The Jewish
State has never been delimited in space. It has been spread
all over the
world, without any frontiers whatsoever, and has always
been constituted from
the membership of one race exclusively. That is
why the Jews have always
formed a State within the State. One of the
most ingenious tricks ever
devised has been that of sailing the Jewish
ship-of-state under the flag of
Religion and thus securing that
tolerance which Aryans are always ready to
grant to different religious
faiths. But the Mosaic Law is really nothing
else than the doctrine of
the preservation of the Jewish race. Therefore this
Law takes in all
spheres of sociological, political and economic science
which have a
bearing on the main end in view.
The instinct for the
preservation of one's own species is the primary
cause that leads to the
formation of human communities. Hence the State
is a racial organism, and not
an economic organization. The difference
between the two is so great as to be
incomprehensible to our
contemporary so-called 'statesmen'. That is why they
like to believe
that the State may be constituted as an economic structure,
whereas the
truth is that it has always resulted from the exercise of those
qualities which are part of the will to preserve the species and the
race.
But these qualities always exist and operate through the heroic
virtues and
have nothing to do with commercial egoism; for the
conservation of the
species always presupposes that the individual is
ready to sacrifice himself.
Such is the meaning of the poet's lines:
UND SETZET IHR NICHT DAS LEBEN
EIN,
NIE WIRD EUCH DAS LEBEN GEWONNEN SEIN.
(AND IF YOU DO NOT STAKE
YOUR LIFE,
YOU WILL NEVER WIN LIFE FOR YOURSELF.)
[Note 10. Lines
quoted from the Song of the Curassiers in Schiller's
WALLENSTEIN.]
The
sacrifice of the individual existence is necessary in order to
assure the
conservation of the race. Hence it is that the most essential
condition for
the establishment and maintenance of a State is a certain
feeling of
solidarity, wounded in an identity of character and race and
in a resolute
readiness to defend these at all costs. With people who
live on their own
territory this will result in a development of the
heroic virtues; with a
parasitic people it will develop the arts of
subterfuge and gross perfidy
unless we admit that these characteristics
are innate and that the varying
political forms through which the
parasitic race expresses itself are only
the outward manifestations of
innate characteristics. At least in the
beginning, the formation of a
State can result only from a manifestation of
the heroic qualities I
have spoken of. And the people who fail in the
struggle for existence,
that is to say those, who become vassals and are
thereby condemned to
disappear entirely sooner or later, are those who do not
display the
heroic virtues in the struggle, or those who fall victims to the
perfidy
of the parasites. And even in this latter case the failure is not so
much due to lack of intellectual powers, but rather to a lack of courage
and
determination. An attempt is made to conceal the real nature of this
failing
by saying that it is the humane feeling.
The qualities which are employed
for the foundation and preservation of
a State have accordingly little or
nothing to do with the economic
situation. And this is conspicuously
demonstrated by the fact that the
inner strength of a State only very rarely
coincides with what is called
its economic expansion. On the contrary, there
are numerous examples to
show that a period of economic prosperity indicates
the approaching
decline of a State. If it were correct to attribute the
foundation of
human communities to economic forces, then the power of the
State as
such would be at its highest pitch during periods of economic
prosperity, and not vice versa.
It is specially difficult to understand
how the belief that the State is
brought into being and preserved by economic
forces could gain currency
in a country which has given proof of the opposite
in every phase of its
history. The history of Prussia shows in a manner
particularly clear and
distinct, that it is out of the moral virtues of the
people and not from
their economic circumstances that a State is formed. It
is only under
the protection of those virtues that economic activities can be
developed and the latter will continue to flourish until a time comes
when
the creative political capacity declines. Therewith the economic
structure
will also break down, a phenomenon which is now happening in
an alarming
manner before our eyes. The material interest of mankind can
prosper only in
the shade of the heroic virtues. The moment they become
the primary
considerations of life they wreck the basis of their own
existence.
Whenever the political power of Germany was specially strong the
economic
situation also improved. But whenever economic interests alone
occupied the
foremost place in the life of the people, and thrust
transcendent ideals into
the back.-ground, the State collapsed and
economic ruin followed readily.
If we consider the question of what those forces actually are which are
necessary to the creation and preservation of a State, we shall find
that
they are: The capacity and readiness to sacrifice the individual to
the
common welfare. That these qualities have nothing at all to do with
economics
can be proved by referring to the simple fact that man does
not sacrifice
himself for material interests. In other words, he will
die for an ideal but
not for a business. The marvellous gift for public
psychology which the
English have was never shown better than the way in
which they presented
their case in the World War. We were fighting for
our bread; but the English
declared that they were fighting for
'freedom', and not at all for their own
freedom. Oh, no, but for the
freedom of the small nations. German people
laughed at that effrontery
and were angered by it; but in doing so they
showed how political
thought had declined among our so-called diplomats in
Germany even
before the War. These diplomatists did not have the slightest
notion of
what that force was which brought men to face death of their own
free
will and determination.
As long as the German people, in the War
of 1914, continued to believe
that they were fighting for ideals they stood
firm. As soon as they were
told that they were fighting only for their daily
bread they began to
give up the struggle.
Our clever 'statesmen' were
greatly amazed at this change of feeling.
They never understood that as soon
as man is called upon to struggle for
purely material causes he will avoid
death as best he can; for death and
the enjoyment of the material fruits of a
victory are quite incompatible
concepts. The frailest woman will become a
heroine when the life of her
own child is at stake. And only the will to save
the race and native
land or the State, which offers protection to the race,
has in all ages
been the urge which has forced men to face the weapons of
their enemies.
The following may be proclaimed as a truth that always
holds good:
A State has never arisen from commercial causes for the
purpose of
peacefully serving commercial ends; but States have always arisen
from
the instinct to maintain the racial group, whether this instinct
manifest itself in the heroic sphere or in the sphere of cunning and
chicanery. In the first case we have the Aryan States, based on the
principles of work and cultural development. In the second case we have
the
Jewish parasitic colonies. But as soon as economic interests begin
to
predominate over the racial and cultural instincts in a people or a
State,
these economic interests unloose the causes that lead to
subjugation and
oppression.
The belief, which prevailed in Germany before the War, that
the world
could be opened up and even conquered for Germany through a system
of
peaceful commercial penetration and a colonial policy was a typical
symptom which indicated the decline of those real qualities whereby
States
are created and preserved, and indicated also the decline of that
insight,
will-power and practical determination which belong to those
qualities. The
World War with its consequences, was the natural
liquidation of that decline.
To anyone who had not thought over the matter deeply, this attitude of
the German people--which was quite general--must have seemed an
insoluble
enigma. After all, Germany herself was a magnificent example
of an empire
that had been built up purely by a policy of power.
Prussia, which was the
generative cell of the German Empire, had been
created by brilliant heroic
deeds and not by a financial or commercial
compact. And the Empire itself was
but the magnificent recompense for a
leadership that had been conducted on a
policy of power and military
valour.
How then did it happen that the
political instincts of this very same
German people became so degenerate? For
it was not merely one isolated
phenomenon which pointed to this decadence,
but morbid symptoms which
appeared in alarming numbers, now all over the body
politic, or eating
into the body of the nation like a gangrenous ulcer. It
seemed as if
some all-pervading poisonous fluid had been injected by some
mysterious
hand into the bloodstream of this once heroic body, bringing about
a
creeping paralysis that affected the reason and the elementary instinct
of self-preservation.
During the years 1912-1914 I used to ponder
perpetually on those
problems which related to the policy of the Triple
Alliance and the
economic policy then being pursued by the German Empire.
Once again I
came to the conclusion that the only explanation of this enigma
lay in
the operation of that force which I had already become acquainted with
in Vienna, though from a different angle of vision. The force to which I
refer was the Marxist teaching and WELTANSCHAUUNG and its organized
action
throughout the nation.
For the second time in my life I plunged deep into
the study of that
destructive teaching. This time, however, I was not urged
by the study
of the question by the impressions and influences of my daily
environment, but directed rather by the observation of general phenomena
in
the political life of Germany. In delving again into the theoretical
literature of this new world and endeavouring to get a clear view of the
possible consequences of its teaching, I compared the theoretical
principles
of Marxism with the phenomena and happenings brought about by
its activities
in the political, cultural, and economic spheres.
For the first time in
my life I now turned my attention to the efforts
that were being made to
subdue this universal pest.
I studied Bismarck's exceptional legislation
in its original concept,
its operation and its results. Gradually I formed a
basis for my own
opinions, which has proved as solid as a rock, so that never
since have
I had to change my attitude towards the general problem. I also
made a
further and more thorough analysis of the relations between Marxism
and
Jewry.
During my sojourn in Vienna I used to look upon Germany as
an
imperturbable colossus; but even then serious doubts and misgivings
would often disturb me. In my own mind and in my conversation with my
small
circle of acquaintances I used to criticize Germany's foreign
policy and the
incredibly superficial way, according to my thinking, in
which Marxism was
dealt with, though it was then the most important
problem in Germany. I could
not understand how they could stumble
blindfolded into the midst of this
peril, the effects of which would be
momentous if the openly declared aims of
Marxism could be put into
practice. Even as early as that time I warned
people around me, just as
I am warning a wider audience now, against that
soothing slogan of all
indolent and feckless nature: NOTHING CAN HAPPEN TO
US. A similar mental
contagion had already destroyed a mighty empire. Can
Germany escape the
operation of those laws to which all other human
communities are
subject?
In the years 1913 and 1914 I expressed my
opinion for the first time in
various circles, some of which are now members
of the National Socialist
Movement, that the problem of how the future of the
German nation can be
secured is the problem of how Marxism can be
exterminated.
I considered the disastrous policy of the Triple Alliance
as one of the
consequences resulting from the disintegrating effects of the
Marxist
teaching; for the alarming feature was that this teaching was
invisibly
corrupting the foundations of a healthy political and economic
outlook.
Those who had been themselves contaminated frequently did not
realise
that their aims and actions sprang from this WELTANSCHAUUNG, which
they
otherwise openly repudiated.
Long before then the spiritual and
moral decline of the German people
had set in, though those who were affected
by the morbid decadence were
frequently unaware--as often happens--of the
forces which were breaking
up their very existence. Sometimes they tried to
cure the disease by
doctoring the symptoms, which were taken as the cause.
But since nobody
recognized, or wanted to recognize, the real cause of the
disease this
way of combating Marxism was no more effective than the
application of
some quack's ointment.
CHAPTER V
THE WORLD WAR
During the boisterous years of my youth nothing
used to damp my wild
spirits so much as to think that I was born at a time
when the world had
manifestly decided not to erect any more temples of fame
except in
honour of business people and State officials. The tempest of
historical
achievements seemed to have permanently subsided, so much so that
the
future appeared to be irrevocably delivered over to what was called
peaceful competition between the nations. This simply meant a system of
mutual exploitation by fraudulent means, the principle of resorting to
the
use of force in self-defence being formally excluded. Individual
countries
increasingly assumed the appearance of commercial
undertakings, grabbing
territory and clients and concessions from each
other under any and every
kind of pretext. And it was all staged to an
accompaniment of loud but
innocuous shouting. This trend of affairs
seemed destined to develop steadily
and permanently. Having the support
of public approbation, it seemed bound
eventually to transform the world
into a mammoth department store. In the
vestibule of this emporium there
would be rows of monumental busts which
would confer immortality on
those profiteers who had proved themselves the
shrewdest at their trade
and those administrative officials who had shown
themselves the most
innocuous. The salesmen could be represented by the
English and the
administrative functionaries by the Germans; whereas the Jews
would be
sacrificed to the unprofitable calling of proprietorship, for they
are
constantly avowing that they make no profits and are always being called
upon to 'pay out'. Moreover they have the advantage of being versed in
the
foreign languages.
Why could I not have been born a hundred years ago? I
used to ask
myself. Somewhere about the time of the Wars of Liberation, when
a man
was still of some value even though he had no 'business'.
Thus I
used to think it an ill-deserved stroke of bad luck that I had
arrived too
late on this terrestrial globe, and I felt chagrined at the
idea that my life
would have to run its course along peaceful and
orderly lines. As a boy I was
anything but a pacifist and all attempts
to make me so turned out futile.
Then the Boer War came, like a glow of lightning on the far horizon. Day
after day I used to gaze intently at the newspapers and I almost
'devoured'
the telegrams and COMMUNIQUES, overjoyed to think that I
could witness that
heroic struggle, even though from so great a
distance.
When the
Russo-Japanese War came I was older and better able to judge
for myself. For
national reasons I then took the side of the Japanese in
our discussions. I
looked upon the defeat of the Russians as a blow to
Austrian Slavism.
Many years had passed between that time and my arrival in Munich. I now
realized that what I formerly believed to be a morbid decadence was only
the
lull before the storm. During my Vienna days the Balkans were
already in the
grip of that sultry pause which presages the violent
storm. Here and there a
flash of lightning could be occasionally seen;
but it rapidly disappeared in
sinister gloom. Then the Balkan War broke
out; and therewith the first gusts
of the forthcoming tornado swept
across a highly-strung Europe. In the
supervening calm men felt the
atmosphere oppressive and foreboding, so much
so that the sense of an
impending catastrophe became transformed into a
feeling of impatient
expectance. They wished that Heaven would give free rein
to the fate
which could now no longer be curbed. Then the first great bolt of
lightning struck the earth. The storm broke and the thunder of the
heavens
intermingled with the roar of the cannons in the World War.
When the news
came to Munich that the Archduke Franz Ferdinand had been
murdered, I had
been at home all day and did not get the particulars of
how it happened. At
first I feared that the shots may have been fired by
some German-Austrian
students who had been aroused to a state of furious
indignation by the
persistent pro-Slav activities of the Heir to the
Habsburg Throne and
therefore wished to liberate the German population
from this internal enemy.
It was quite easy to imagine what the result
of such a mistake would have
been. It would have brought on a new wave
of persecution, the motives of
which would have been 'justified' before
the whole world. But soon afterwards
I heard the names of the presumed
assassins and also that they were known to
be Serbs. I felt somewhat
dumbfounded in face of the inexorable vengeance
which Destiny had
wrought. The greatest friend of the Slavs had fallen a
victim to the
bullets of Slav patriots.
It is unjust to the Vienna
government of that time to blame it now for
the form and tenor of the
ultimatum which was then presented. In a
similar position and under similar
circumstances, no other Power in the
world would have acted otherwise. On her
southern frontiers Austria had
a relentless mortal foe who indulged in acts
of provocation against the
Dual Monarchy at intervals which were becoming
more and more frequent.
This persistent line of conduct would not have been
relaxed until the
arrival of the opportune moment for the destruction of the
Empire. In
Austria there was good reason to fear that, at the latest, this
moment
would come with the death of the old Emperor. Once that had taken
place,
it was quite possible that the Monarchy would not be able to offer any
serious resistance. For some years past the State had been so completely
identified with the personality of Francis Joseph that, in the eyes of
the
great mass of the people, the death of this venerable
personification of the
Empire would be tantamount to the death of the
Empire itself. Indeed it was
one of the clever artifices of Slav policy
to foster the impression that the
Austrian State owed its very existence
exclusively to the prodigies and rare
talents of that monarch. This kind
of flattery was particularly welcomed at
the Hofburg, all the more
because it had no relation whatsoever to the
services actually rendered
by the Emperor. No effort whatsoever was made to
locate the carefully
prepared sting which lay hidden in this glorifying
praise. One fact
which was entirely overlooked, perhaps intentionally, was
that the more
the Empire remained dependent on the so-called administrative
talents of
'the wisest Monarch of all times', the more catastrophic would be
the
situation when Fate came to knock at the door and demand its tribute.
Was it possible even to imagine the Austrian Empire without its
venerable
ruler? Would not the tragedy which befell Maria Theresa be
repeated at once?
It is really unjust to the Vienna governmental circles to reproach them
with having instigated a war which might have been prevented. The war
was
bound to come. Perhaps it might have been postponed for a year or
two at the
most. But it had always been the misfortune of German, as
well as Austrian,
diplomats that they endeavoured to put off the
inevitable day of reckoning,
with the result that they were finally
compelled to deliver their blow at a
most inopportune moment.
No. Those who did not wish this war ought to
have had the courage to
take the consequences of the refusal upon themselves.
Those consequences
must necessarily have meant the sacrifice of Austria. And
even then war
would have come, not as a war in which all the nations would
have been
banded against us but in the form of a dismemberment of the
Habsburg
Monarchy. In that case we should have had to decide whether we
should
come to the assistance of the Habsburg or stand aside as spectators,
with our arms folded, and thus allow Fate to run its course.
Just those
who are loudest in their imprecations to-day and make a great
parade of
wisdom in judging the causes of the war are the very same
people whose
collaboration was the most fatal factor in steering towards
the war.
For several decades previously the German Social-Democrats had been
agitating
in an underhand and knavish way for war against Russia;
whereas the German
Centre Party, with religious ends in view, had worked
to make the Austrian
State the chief centre and turning-point of German
policy. The consequences
of this folly had now to be borne. What came
was bound to come and under no
circumstances could it have been avoided.
The fault of the German Government
lay in the fact that, merely for the
sake of preserving peace at all costs,
it continued to miss the
occasions that were favourable for action, got
entangled in an alliance
for the purpose of preserving the peace of the
world, and thus finally
became the victim of a world coalition which opposed
the German effort
for the maintenance of peace and was determined to bring
about the world
war.
Had the Vienna Government of that time formulated
its ultimatum in less
drastic terms, that would not have altered the
situation at all: but
such a course might have aroused public indignation.
For, in the eyes of
the great masses, the ultimatum was too moderate and
certainly not
excessive or brutal. Those who would deny this to-day are
either
simpletons with feeble memories or else deliberate falsehood-mongers.
The War of 1914 was certainly not forced on the masses; it was even
desired by the whole people.
There was a desire to bring the general
feeling of uncertainty to an end
once and for all. And it is only in the
light of this fact that we can
understand how more than two million German
men and youths voluntarily
joined the colours, ready to shed the last drop of
their blood for the
cause.
For me these hours came as a deliverance
from the distress that had
weighed upon me during the days of my youth. I am
not ashamed to
acknowledge to-day that I was carried away by the enthusiasm
of the
moment and that I sank down upon my knees and thanked Heaven out of
the
fullness of my heart for the favour of having been permitted to live in
such a time.
The fight for freedom had broken out on an unparalleled
scale in the
history of the world. From the moment that Fate took the helm in
hand
the conviction grew among the mass of the people that now it was not a
question of deciding the destinies of Austria or Serbia but that the
very
existence of the German nation itself was at stake.
At last, after many
years of blindness, the people saw clearly into the
future. Therefore, almost
immediately after the gigantic struggle had
begun, an excessive enthusiasm
was replaced by a more earnest and more
fitting undertone, because the
exaltation of the popular spirit was not
a mere passing frenzy. It was only
too necessary that the gravity of the
situation should be recognized. At that
time there was, generally
speaking, not the slightest presentiment or
conception of how long the
war might last. People dreamed of the soldiers
being home by Christmas
and that then they would resume their daily work in
peace.
Whatever mankind desires, that it will hope for and believe in.
The
overwhelming majority of the people had long since grown weary of the
perpetual insecurity in the general condition of public affairs. Hence
it was
only natural that no one believed that the Austro-Serbian
conflict could be
shelved. Therefore they looked forward to a radical
settlement of accounts. I
also belonged to the millions that desired
this.
The moment the news
of the Sarajevo outrage reached Munich two ideas
came into my mind: First,
that war was absolutely inevitable and,
second, that the Habsburg State would
now be forced to honour its
signature to the alliance. For what I had feared
most was that one day
Germany herself, perhaps as a result of the Alliance,
would become
involved in a conflict the first direct cause of which did not
affect
Austria. In such a contingency, I feared that the Austrian State, for
domestic political reasons, would find itself unable to decide in favour
of
its ally. But now this danger was removed. The old State was
compelled to
fight, whether it wished to do so or not.
My own attitude towards the
conflict was equally simple and clear. I
believed that it was not a case of
Austria fighting to get satisfaction
from Serbia but rather a case of Germany
fighting for her own
existence--the German nation for its own
to-be-or-not-to-be, for its
freedom and for its future. The work of Bismarck
must now be carried on.
Young Germany must show itself worthy of the blood
shed by our fathers
on so many heroic fields of battle, from Weissenburg to
Sedan and Paris.
And if this struggle should bring us victory our people will
again rank
foremost among the great nations. Only then could the German
Empire
assert itself as the mighty champion of peace, without the necessity
of
restricting the daily bread of its children for the sake of maintaining
the peace.
As a boy and as a young man, I often longed for the occasion
to prove
that my national enthusiasm was not mere vapouring. Hurrahing
sometimes
seemed to me to be a kind of sinful indulgence, though I could not
give
any justification for that feeling; for, after all, who has the right to
shout that triumphant word if he has not won the right to it there where
there is no play-acting and where the hand of the Goddess of Destiny
puts the
truth and sincerity of nations and men through her inexorable
test? Just as
millions of others, I felt a proud joy in being permitted
to go through this
test. I had so often sung DEUTSCHLAND ÜBER ALLES and
so often roared 'HEIL'
that I now thought it was as a kind of
retro-active grace that I was granted
the right of appearing before the
Court of Eternal Justice to testify to the
truth of those sentiments.
One thing was clear to me from the very
beginning, namely, that in the
event of war, which now seemed inevitable, my
books would have to be
thrown aside forthwith. I also realized that my place
would have to be
there where the inner voice of conscience called me.
I had left Austria principally for political reasons. What therefore
could be
more rational than that I should put into practice the logical
consequences
of my political opinions, now that the war had begun. I had
no desire to
fight for the Habsburg cause, but I was prepared to die at
any time for my
own kinsfolk and the Empire to which they really
belonged.
On August
3rd, 1914, I presented an urgent petition to His Majesty, King
Ludwig III,
requesting to be allowed to serve in a Bavarian regiment. In
those days the
Chancellery had its hands quite full and therefore I was
all the more pleased
when I received the answer a day later, that my
request had been granted. I
opened the document with trembling hands;
and no words of mine could now
describe the satisfaction I felt on
reading that I was instructed to report
to a Bavarian regiment. Within a
few days I was wearing that uniform which I
was not to put oft again for
nearly six years.
For me, as for every
German, the most memorable period of my life now
began. Face to face with
that mighty struggle, all the past fell away
into oblivion. With a wistful
pride I look back on those days,
especially because we are now approaching
the tenth anniversary of that
memorable happening. I recall those early weeks
of war when kind fortune
permitted me to take my place in that heroic
struggle among the nations.
As the scene unfolds itself before my mind,
it seems only like
yesterday. I see myself among my young comrades on our
first parade
drill, and so on until at last the day came on which we were to
leave
for the front.
In common with the others, I had one worry during
those days. This was a
fear that we might arrive too late for the fighting at
the front. Time
and again that thought disturbed me and every announcement of
a
victorious engagement left a bitter taste, which increased as the news
of further victories arrived.
At long last the day came when we left
Munich on war service. For the
first time in my life I saw the Rhine, as we
journeyed westwards to
stand guard before that historic German river against
its traditional
and grasping enemy. As the first soft rays of the morning sun
broke
through the light mist and disclosed to us the Niederwald Statue, with
one accord the whole troop train broke into the strains of DIE WACHT AM
RHEIN. I then felt as if my heart could not contain its spirit.
And then
followed a damp, cold night in Flanders. We marched in silence
throughout the
night and as the morning sun came through the mist an
iron greeting suddenly
burst above our heads. Shrapnel exploded in our
midst and spluttered in the
damp ground. But before the smoke of the
explosion disappeared a wild
'Hurrah' was shouted from two hundred
throats, in response to this first
greeting of Death. Then began the
whistling of bullets and the booming of
cannons, the shouting and
singing of the combatants. With eyes straining
feverishly, we pressed
forward, quicker and quicker, until we finally came to
close-quarter
fighting, there beyond the beet-fields and the meadows. Soon
the strains
of a song reached us from afar. Nearer and nearer, from company
to
company, it came. And while Death began to make havoc in our ranks we
passed the song on to those beside us: DEUTSCHLAND, DEUTSCHLAND ÜBER
ALLES,
ÜBER ALLES IN DER WELT.
After four days in the trenches we came back.
Even our step was no
longer what it had been. Boys of seventeen looked now
like grown men.
The rank and file of the List Regiment (Note 11) had not been
properly
trained in the art of warfare, but they knew how to die like old
soldiers.
[Note 11. The Second Infantry Bavarian Regiment, in which
Hitler served
as a volunteer.]
That was the beginning. And thus we
carried on from year to year. A
feeling of horror replaced the romantic
fighting spirit. Enthusiasm
cooled down gradually and exuberant spirits were
quelled by the fear of
the ever-present Death. A time came when there arose
within each one of
us a conflict between the urge to self-preservation and
the call of
duty. And I had to go through that conflict too. As Death sought
its
prey everywhere and unrelentingly a nameless Something rebelled within
the weak body and tried to introduce itself under the name of Common
Sense;
but in reality it was Fear, which had taken on this cloak in
order to impose
itself on the individual. But the more the voice which
advised prudence
increased its efforts and the more clear and persuasive
became its appeal,
resistance became all the stronger; until finally the
internal strife was
over and the call of duty was triumphant. Already in
the winter of 1915-16 I
had come through that inner struggle. The will
had asserted its incontestable
mastery. Whereas in the early days I went
into the fight with a cheer and a
laugh, I was now habitually calm and
resolute. And that frame of mind
endured. Fate might now put me through
the final test without my nerves or
reason giving way. The young
volunteer had become an old soldier.
This
same transformation took place throughout the whole army. Constant
fighting
had aged and toughened it and hardened it, so that it stood
firm and
dauntless against every assault.
Only now was it possible to judge that
army. After two and three years
of continuous fighting, having been thrown
into one battle after
another, standing up stoutly against superior numbers
and superior
armament, suffering hunger and privation, the time had come when
one
could assess the value of that singular fighting force.
For a
thousand years to come nobody will dare to speak of heroism
without recalling
the German Army of the World War. And then from the
dim past will emerge the
immortal vision of those solid ranks of steel
helmets that never flinched and
never faltered. And as long as Germans
live they will be proud to remember
that these men were the sons of
their forefathers.
I was then a
soldier and did not wish to meddle in politics, all the
more so because the
time was inopportune. I still believe that the most
modest stable-boy of
those days served his country better than the best
of, let us say, the
'parliamentary deputies'. My hatred for those
footlers was never greater than
in those days when all decent men who
had anything to say said it point-blank
in the enemy's face; or, failing
this, kept their mouths shut and did their
duty elsewhere. I despised
those political fellows and if I had had my way I
would have formed them
into a Labour Battalion and given them the opportunity
of babbling
amongst themselves to their hearts' content, without offence or
harm to
decent people.
In those days I cared nothing for politics; but
I could not help forming
an opinion on certain manifestations which affected
not only the whole
nation but also us soldiers in particular. There were two
things which
caused me the greatest anxiety at that time and which I had come
to
regard as detrimental to our interests.
Shortly after our first
series of victories a certain section of the
Press already began to throw
cold water, drip by drip, on the enthusiasm
of the public. At first this was
not obvious to many people. It was done
under the mask of good intentions and
a spirit of anxious care. The
public was told that big celebrations of
victories were somewhat out of
place and were not worthy expressions of the
spirit of a great nation.
The fortitude and valour of German soldiers were
accepted facts which
did not necessarily call for outbursts of celebration.
Furthermore, it
was asked, what would foreign opinion have to say about these
manifestations? Would not foreign opinion react more favourably to a
quiet
and sober form of celebration rather than to all this wild
jubilation? Surely
the time had come--so the Press declared--for us
Germans to remember that
this war was not our work and that hence there
need be no feeling of shame in
declaring our willingness to do our share
towards effecting an understanding
among the nations. For this reason it
would not be wise to sully the radiant
deeds of our army with unbecoming
jubilation; for the rest of the world would
never understand this.
Furthermore, nothing is more appreciated than the
modesty with which a
true hero quietly and unassumingly carries on and
forgets. Such was the
gist of their warning.
Instead of catching these
fellows by their long ears and dragging them
to some ditch and looping a cord
around their necks, so that the
victorious enthusiasm of the nation should no
longer offend the
aesthetic sensibilities of these knights of the pen, a
general Press
campaign was now allowed to go on against what was called
'unbecoming'
and 'undignified' forms of victorious celebration.
No one
seemed to have the faintest idea that when public enthusiasm is
once damped,
nothing can enkindle it again, when the necessity arises.
This enthusiasm is
an intoxication and must be kept up in that form.
Without the support of this
enthusiastic spirit how would it be possible
to endure in a struggle which,
according to human standards, made such
immense demands on the spiritual
stamina of the nation?
I was only too well acquainted with the psychology
of the broad masses
not to know that in such cases a magnaminous
'aestheticism' cannot fan
the fire which is needed to keep the iron hot. In
my eyes it was even a
mistake not to have tried to raise the pitch of public
enthusiasm still
higher. Therefore I could not at all understand why the
contrary policy
was adopted, that is to say, the policy of damping the public
spirit.
Another thing which irritated me was the manner in which Marxism
was
regarded and accepted. I thought that all this proved how little they
knew about the Marxist plague. It was believed in all seriousness that
the
abolition of party distinctions during the War had made Marxism a
mild and
moderate thing.
But here there was no question of party. There was
question of a
doctrine which was being expounded for the express purpose of
leading
humanity to its destruction. The purport of this doctrine was not
understood because nothing was said about that side of the question in
our
Jew-ridden universities and because our supercilious bureaucratic
officials
did not think it worth while to read up a subject which had
not been
prescribed in their university course. This mighty
revolutionary trend was
going on beside them; but those 'intellectuals'
would not deign to give it
their attention. That is why State enterprise
nearly always lags behind
private enterprise. Of these gentry once can
truly say that their maxim is:
What we don't know won't bother us. In
the August of 1914 the German worker
was looked upon as an adherent of
Marxist socialism. That was a gross error.
When those fateful hours
dawned the German worker shook off the poisonous
clutches of that
plague; otherwise he would not have been so willing and
ready to fight.
And people were stupid enough to imagine that Marxism had now
become
'national', another apt illustration of the fact that those in
authority
had never taken the trouble to study the real tenor of the Marxist
teaching. If they had done so, such foolish errors would not have been
committed.
Marxism, whose final objective was and is and will continue to
be the
destruction of all non-Jewish national States, had to witness in those
days of July 1914 how the German working classes, which it had been
inveigling, were aroused by the national spirit and rapidly ranged
themselves
on the side of the Fatherland. Within a few days the
deceptive smoke-screen
of that infamous national betrayal had vanished
into thin air and the Jewish
bosses suddenly found themselves alone and
deserted. It was as if not a
vestige had been left of that folly and
madness with which the masses of the
German people had been inoculated
for sixty years. That was indeed an evil
day for the betrayers of German
Labour. The moment, however, that the leaders
realized the danger which
threatened them they pulled the magic cap of deceit
over their ears and,
without being identified, played the part of mimes in
the national
reawakening.
The time seemed to have arrived for
proceeding against the whole Jewish
gang of public pests. Then it was that
action should have been taken
regardless of any consequent whining or
protestation. At one stroke, in
the August of 1914, all the empty nonsense
about international
solidarity was knocked out of the heads of the German
working classes. A
few weeks later, instead of this stupid talk sounding in
their ears,
they heard the noise of American-manufactured shrapnel bursting
above
the heads of the marching columns, as a symbol of international
comradeship. Now that the German worker had rediscovered the road to
nationhood, it ought to have been the duty of any Government which had
the
care of the people in its keeping, to take this opportunity of
mercilessly
rooting out everything that was opposed to the national
spirit.
While
the flower of the nation's manhood was dying at the front, there
was time
enough at home at least to exterminate this vermin. But,
instead of doing so,
His Majesty the Kaiser held out his hand to these
hoary criminals, thus
assuring them his protection and allowing them to
regain their mental
composure.
And so the viper could begin his work again. This time,
however, more
carefully than before, but still more destructively. While
honest people
dreamt of reconciliation these perjured criminals were making
preparations for a revolution.
Naturally I was distressed at the
half-measures which were adopted at
that time; but I never thought it
possible that the final consequences
could have been so disastrous?
But what should have been done then? Throw the ringleaders into gaol,
prosecute them and rid the nation of them? Uncompromising military
measures
should have been adopted to root out the evil. Parties should
have been
abolished and the Reichstag brought to its senses at the point
of the
bayonet, if necessary. It would have been still better if the
Reichstag had
been dissolved immediately. Just as the Republic to-day
dissolves the parties
when it wants to, so in those days there was even
more justification for
applying that measure, seeing that the very
existence of the nation was at
stake. Of course this suggestion would
give rise to the question: Is it
possible to eradicate ideas by force of
arms? Could a WELTANSCHAUUNG be
attacked by means of physical force?
At that time I turned these
questions over and over again in my mind. By
studying analogous cases,
exemplified in history, particularly those
which had arisen from religious
circumstances, I came to the following
fundamental conclusion:
Ideas
and philosophical systems as well as movements grounded on a
definite
spiritual foundation, whether true or not, can never be broken
by the use of
force after a certain stage, except on one condition:
namely, that this use
of force is in the service of a new idea or
WELTANSCHAUUNG which burns with a
new flame.
The application of force alone, without moral support based on
a
spiritual concept, can never bring about the destruction of an idea or
arrest the propagation of it, unless one is ready and able ruthlessly to
exterminate the last upholders of that idea even to a man, and also wipe
out
any tradition which it may tend to leave behind. Now in the majority
of cases
the result of such a course has been to exclude such a State,
either
temporarily or for ever, from the comity of States that are of
political
significance; but experience has also shown that such a
sanguinary method of
extirpation arouses the better section of the
population under the
persecuting power. As a matter of fact, every
persecution which has no
spiritual motives to support it is morally
unjust and raises opposition among
the best elements of the population;
so much so that these are driven more
and more to champion the ideas
that are unjustly persecuted. With many
individuals this arises from the
sheer spirit of opposition to every attempt
at suppressing spiritual
things by brute force.
In this way the number
of convinced adherents of the persecuted doctrine
increases as the
persecution progresses. Hence the total destruction of
a new doctrine can be
accomplished only by a vast plan of extermination;
but this, in the final
analysis, means the loss of some of the best
blood in a nation or State. And
that blood is then avenged, because such
an internal and total clean-up
brings about the collapse of the nation's
strength. And such a procedure is
always condemned to futility from the
very start if the attacked doctrine
should happen to have spread beyond
a small circle.
That is why in
this case, as with all other growths, the doctrine can be
exterminated in its
earliest stages. As time goes on its powers of
resistance increase, until at
the approach of age it gives way to
younger elements, but under another form
and from other motives.
The fact remains that nearly all attempts to
exterminate a doctrine,
without having some spiritual basis of attack against
it, and also to
wipe out all the organizations it has created, have led in
many cases to
the very opposite being achieved; and that for the following
reasons:
When sheer force is used to combat the spread of a doctrine,
then that
force must be employed systematically and persistently. This means
that
the chances of success in the suppression of a doctrine lie only in the
persistent and uniform application of the methods chosen. The moment
hesitation is shown, and periods of tolerance alternate with the
application
of force, the doctrine against which these measures are
directed will not
only recover strength but every successive persecution
will bring to its
support new adherents who have been shocked by the
oppressive methods
employed. The old adherents will become more
embittered and their allegiance
will thereby be strengthened. Therefore
when force is employed success is
dependent on the consistent manner in
which it is used. This persistence,
however, is nothing less than the
product of definite spiritual convictions.
Every form of force that is
not supported by a spiritual backing will be
always indecisive and
uncertain. Such a force lacks the stability that can be
found only in a
WELTANSCHAUUNG which has devoted champions. Such a force is
the
expression of the individual energies; therefore it is from time to time
dependent on the change of persons in whose hands it is employed and
also on
their characters and capacities.
But there is something else to be said:
Every WELTANSCHAUUNG, whether
religious or political--and it is sometimes
difficult to say where the
one ends and the other begins--fights not so much
for the negative
destruction of the opposing world of ideas as for the
positive
realization of its own ideas. Thus its struggle lies in attack
rather
than in defence. It has the advantage of knowing where its objective
lies, as this objective represents the realization of its own ideas.
Inversely, it is difficult to say when the negative aim for the
destruction
of a hostile doctrine is reached and secured. For this
reason alone a
WELTANSCHAUUNG which is of an aggressive character is
more definite in plan
and more powerful and decisive in action than a
WELTANSCHAUUNG which takes up
a merely defensive attitude. If force be
used to combat a spiritual power,
that force remains a defensive measure
only so long as the wielders of it are
not the standard-bearers and
apostles of a new spiritual doctrine.
To
sum up, the following must be borne in mind: That every attempt to
combat a
WELTANSCHAUUNG by means of force will turn out futile in the
end if the
struggle fails to take the form of an offensive for the
establishment of an
entirely new spiritual order of' things. It is only
in the struggle between
two Weltan-schauungen that physical force,
consistently and ruthlessly
applied, will eventually turn the scales in
its own favour. It was here that
the fight against Marxism had hitherto
failed.
This was also the
reason why Bismarck's anti-socialist legislation
failed and was bound to fail
in the long run, despite everything. It
lacked the basis of a new
WELTANSCHAUUNG for whose development and
extension the struggle might have
been taken up. To say that the serving
up of drivel about a so-called
'State-Authority' or 'Law-and-Order' was
an adequate foundation for the
spiritual driving force in a
life-or-death struggle is only what one would
expect to hear from the
wiseacres in high official positions.
It was
because there were no adequate spiritual motives back of this
offensive that
Bismarck was compelled to hand over the administration of
his socialist
legislative measures to the judgment and approval of those
circles which were
themselves the product of the Marxist teaching. Thus
a very ludicrous state
of affairs prevailed when the Iron Chancellor
surrendered the fate of his
struggle against Marxism to the goodwill of
the bourgeois democracy. He left
the goat to take care of the garden.
But this was only the necessary result
of the failure to find a
fundamentally new WELTANSCHAUUNG which would attract
devoted champions
to its cause and could be established on the ground from
which Marxism
had been driven out. And thus the result of the Bismarckian
campaign was
deplorable.
During the World War, or at the beginning of
it, were the conditions any
different? Unfortunately, they were not.
The more I then pondered over the necessity for a change in the attitude
of
the executive government towards Social-Democracy, as the
incorporation of
contemporary Marxism, the more I realized the want of a
practical substitute
for this doctrine. Supposing Social-Democracy were
overthrown, what had one
to offer the masses in its stead? Not a single
movement existed which
promised any success in attracting vast numbers
of workers who would be now
more or less without leaders, and holding
these workers in its train. It is
nonsensical to imagine that the
international fanatic who has just severed
his connection with a class
party would forthwith join a bourgeois party, or,
in other words,
another class organization. For however unsatisfactory these
various
organizations may appear to be, it cannot be denied that bourgeois
politicians look on the distinction between classes as a very important
factor in social life, provided it does not turn out politically
disadvantageous to them. If they deny this fact they show themselves not
only
impudent but also mendacious.
Generally speaking, one should guard
against considering the broad
masses more stupid than they really are. In
political matters it
frequently happens that feeling judges more correctly
than intellect.
But the opinion that this feeling on the part of the masses
is
sufficient proof of their stupid international attitude can be
immediately and definitely refuted by the simple fact that pacifist
democracy
is no less fatuous, though it draws its supporters almost
exclusively from
bourgeois circles. As long as millions of citizens
daily gulp down what the
social-democratic Press tells them, it ill
becomes the 'Masters' to joke at
the expense of the 'Comrades'; for in
the long run they all swallow the same
hash, even though it be dished up
with different spices. In both cases the
cook is one and the same--the
Jew.
One should be careful about
contradicting established facts. It is an
undeniable fact that the class
question has nothing to do with questions
concerning ideals, though that dope
is administered at election time.
Class arrogance among a large section of
our people, as well as a
prevailing tendency to look down on the manual
labourer, are obvious
facts and not the fancies of some day-dreamer.
Nevertheless it only
illustrates the mentality of our so-called intellectual
circles, that
they have not yet grasped the fact that circumstances which are
incapable of preventing the growth of such a plague as Marxism are
certainly
not capable of restoring what has been lost.
The bourgeois' parties--a
name coined by themselves--will never again be
able to win over and hold the
proletarian masses in their train. That is
because two worlds stand opposed
to one another here, in part naturally
and in part artificially divided.
These two camps have one leading
thought, and that is that they must fight
one another. But in such a
fight the younger will come off victorious; and
that is Marxism.
In 1914 a fight against Social-Democracy was indeed
quite conceivable.
But the lack of any practical substitute made it doubtful
how long the
fight could be kept up. In this respect there was a gaping void.
Long before the War I was of the same opinion and that was the reason
why
I could not decide to join any of the parties then existing. During
the
course of the World War my conviction was still further confirmed by
the
manifest impossibility of fighting Social-Democracy in anything like
a
thorough way: because for that purpose there should have been a
movement that
was something more than a mere 'parliamentary' party, and
there was none
such.
I frequently discussed that want with my intimate comrades. And it
was
then that I first conceived the idea of taking up political work later
on. As I have often assured my friends, it was just this that induced me
to
become active on the public hustings after the War, in addition to my
professional work. And I am sure that this decision was arrived at after
much
earnest thought.
CHAPTER VI
WAR PROPAGANDA
In watching the course of political events I was always struck by the
active part which propaganda played in them. I saw that it was an
instrument,
which the Marxist Socialists knew how to handle in a
masterly way and how to
put it to practical uses. Thus I soon came to
realize that the right use of
propaganda was an art in itself and that
this art was practically unknown to
our bourgeois parties. The
Christian-Socialist Party alone, especially in
Lueger's time, showed a
certain efficiency in the employment of this
instrument and owed much of
their success to it.
It was during the
War, however, that we had the best chance of
estimating the tremendous
results which could be obtained by a
propagandist system properly carried
out. Here again, unfortunately,
everything was left to the other side, the
work done on our side being
worse than insignificant. It was the total
failure of the whole German
system of information--a failure which was
perfectly obvious to every
soldier--that urged me to consider the problem of
propaganda in a
comprehensive way. I had ample opportunity to learn a
practical lesson
in this matter; for unfortunately it was only too well
taught us by the
enemy. The lack on our side was exploited by the enemy in
such an
efficient manner that one could say it showed itself as a real work
of
genius. In that propaganda carried on by the enemy I found admirable
sources of instruction. The lesson to be learned from this had
unfortunately
no attraction for the geniuses on our own side. They were
simply above all
such things, too clever to accept any teaching. Anyhow
they did not honestly
wish to learn anything.
Had we any propaganda at all? Alas, I can reply
only in the negative.
All that was undertaken in this direction was so
utterly inadequate and
misconceived from the very beginning that not only did
it prove useless
but at times harmful. In substance it was insufficient.
Psychologically
it was all wrong. Anybody who had carefully investigated the
German
propaganda must have formed that judgment of it. Our people did not
seem
to be clear even about the primary question itself: Whether propaganda
is a means or an end?
Propaganda is a means and must, therefore, be
judged in relation to the
end it is intended to serve. It must be organized
in such a way as to be
capable of attaining its objective. And, as it is
quite clear that the
importance of the objective may vary from the standpoint
of general
necessity, the essential internal character of the propaganda must
vary
accordingly. The cause for which we fought during the War was the
noblest and highest that man could strive for. We were fighting for the
freedom and independence of our country, for the security of our future
welfare and the honour of the nation. Despite all views to the contrary,
this
honour does actually exist, or rather it will have to exist; for a
nation
without honour will sooner or later lose its freedom and
independence. This
is in accordance with the ruling of a higher justice,
for a generation of
poltroons is not entitled to freedom. He who would
be a slave cannot have
honour; for such honour would soon become an
object of general scorn.
Germany was waging war for its very existence. The purpose of its war
propaganda should have been to strengthen the fighting spirit in that
struggle and help it to victory.
But when nations are fighting for their
existence on this earth, when
the question of 'to be or not to be' has to be
answered, then all humane
and aesthetic considerations must be set aside; for
these ideals do not
exist of themselves somewhere in the air but are the
product of man's
creative imagination and disappear when he disappears.
Nature knows
nothing of them. Moreover, they are characteristic of only a
small
number of nations, or rather of races, and their value depends on the
measure in which they spring from the racial feeling of the latter.
Humane
and aesthetic ideals will disappear from the inhabited earth when
those races
disappear which are the creators and standard-bearers of
them.
All
such ideals are only of secondary importance when a nation is
struggling for
its existence. They must be prevented from entering into
the struggle the
moment they threaten to weaken the stamina of the
nation that is waging war.
That is always the only visible effect
whereby their place in the struggle is
to be judged.
In regard to the part played by humane feeling, Moltke
stated that in
time of war the essential thing is to get a decision as
quickly as
possible and that the most ruthless methods of fighting are at the
same
time the most humane. When people attempt to answer this reasoning by
highfalutin talk about aesthetics, etc., only one answer can be given. It
is
that the vital questions involved in the struggle of a nation for its
existence must not be subordinated to any aesthetic considerations. The
yoke
of slavery is and always will remain the most unpleasant experience
that
mankind can endure. Do the Schwabing (Note 12) decadents look upon
Germany's
lot to-day as 'aesthetic'? Of course, one doesn't discuss such
a question
with the Jews, because they are the modern inventors of this
cultural
perfume. Their very existence is an incarnate denial of the
beauty of God's
image in His creation.
[Note 12. Schwabing is the artistic quarter in
Munich where artists have
their studios and litterateurs, especially of the
Bohemian class,
foregather.]
Since these ideas of what is beautiful
and humane have no place in
warfare, they are not to be used as standards of
war propaganda.
During the War, propaganda was a means to an end. And
this end was the
struggle for existence of the German nation. Propaganda,
therefore,
should have been regarded from the standpoint of its utility for
that
purpose. The most cruel weapons were then the most humane, provided they
helped towards a speedier decision; and only those methods were good and
beautiful which helped towards securing the dignity and freedom of the
nation. Such was the only possible attitude to adopt towards war
propaganda
in the life-or-death struggle.
If those in what are called positions of
authority had realized this
there would have been no uncertainty about the
form and employment of
war propaganda as a weapon; for it is nothing but a
weapon, and indeed a
most terrifying weapon in the hands of those who know
how to use it.
The second question of decisive importance is this: To
whom should
propaganda be made to appeal? To the educated intellectual
classes? Or
to the less intellectual?
Propaganda must always address
itself to the broad masses of the people.
For the intellectual classes, or
what are called the intellectual
classes to-day, propaganda is not suited,
but only scientific
exposition. Propaganda has as little to do with science
as an
advertisement poster has to do with art, as far as concerns the form in
which it presents its message. The art of the advertisement poster
consists
in the ability of the designer to attract the attention of the
crowd through
the form and colours he chooses. The advertisement poster
announcing an
exhibition of art has no other aim than to convince the
public of the
importance of the exhibition. The better it does that, the
better is the art
of the poster as such. Being meant accordingly to
impress upon the public the
meaning of the exposition, the poster can
never take the place of the
artistic objects displayed in the exposition
hall. They are something
entirely different. Therefore. those who wish
to study the artistic display
must study something that is quite
different from the poster; indeed for that
purpose a mere wandering
through the exhibition galleries is of no use. The
student of art must
carefully and thoroughly study each exhibit in order
slowly to form a
judicious opinion about it.
The situation is the same
in regard to what we understand by the word,
propaganda. The purpose of
propaganda is not the personal instruction of
the individual, but rather to
attract public attention to certain
things, the importance of which can be
brought home to the masses only
by this means.
Here the art of
propaganda consists in putting a matter so clearly and
forcibly before the
minds of the people as to create a general
conviction regarding the reality
of a certain fact, the necessity of
certain things and the just character of
something that is essential.
But as this art is not an end in itself and
because its purpose must be
exactly that of the advertisement poster, to
attract the attention of
the masses and not by any means to dispense
individual instructions to
those who already have an educated opinion on
things or who wish to form
such an opinion on grounds of objective
study--because that is not the
purpose of propaganda, it must appeal to the
feelings of the public
rather than to their reasoning powers.
All
propaganda must be presented in a popular form and must fix its
intellectual
level so as not to be above the heads of the least
intellectual of those to
whom it is directed. Thus its purely
intellectual level will have to be that
of the lowest mental common
denominator among the public it is desired to
reach. When there is
question of bringing a whole nation within the circle of
its influence,
as happens in the case of war propaganda, then too much
attention cannot
be paid to the necessity of avoiding a high level, which
presupposes a
relatively high degree of intelligence among the public.
The more modest the scientific tenor of this propaganda and the more it
is addressed exclusively to public sentiment, the more decisive will be
its
success. This is the best test of the value of a propaganda, and not
the
approbation of a small group of intellectuals or artistic people.
The art
of propaganda consists precisely in being able to awaken the
imagination of
the public through an appeal to their feelings, in
finding the appropriate
psychological form that will arrest the
attention and appeal to the hearts of
the national masses. That this is
not understood by those among us whose wits
are supposed to have been
sharpened to the highest pitch is only another
proof of their vanity or
mental inertia.
Once we have understood how
necessary it is to concentrate the
persuasive forces of propaganda on the
broad masses of the people, the
following lessons result therefrom:
That it is a mistake to organize the direct propaganda as if it were a
manifold system of scientific instruction.
The receptive powers of the
masses are very restricted, and their
understanding is feeble. On the other
hand, they quickly forget. Such
being the case, all effective propaganda must
be confined to a few bare
essentials and those must be expressed as far as
possible in stereotyped
formulas. These slogans should be persistently
repeated until the very
last individual has come to grasp the idea that has
been put forward. If
this principle be forgotten and if an attempt be made to
be abstract and
general, the propaganda will turn out ineffective; for the
public will
not be able to digest or retain what is offered to them in this
way.
Therefore, the greater the scope of the message that has to be
presented, the more necessary it is for the propaganda to discover that
plan
of action which is psychologically the most efficient.
It was, for
example, a fundamental mistake to ridicule the worth of the
enemy as the
Austrian and German comic papers made a chief point of
doing in their
propaganda. The very principle here is a mistaken one;
for, when they came
face to face with the enemy, our soldiers had quite
a different impression.
Therefore, the mistake had disastrous results.
Once the German soldier
realised what a tough enemy he had to fight he
felt that he had been deceived
by the manufacturers of the information
which had been given him. Therefore,
instead of strengthening and
stimulating his fighting spirit, this
information had quite the contrary
effect. Finally he lost heart.
On
the other hand, British and American war propaganda was
psychologically
efficient. By picturing the Germans to their own people
as Barbarians and
Huns, they were preparing their soldiers for the
horrors of war and
safeguarding them against illusions. The most
terrific weapons which those
soldiers encountered in the field merely
confirmed the information that they
had already received and their
belief in the truth of the assertions made by
their respective
governments was accordingly reinforced. Thus their rage and
hatred
against the infamous foe was increased. The terrible havoc caused by
the
German weapons of war was only another illustration of the Hunnish
brutality of those barbarians; whereas on the side of the Entente no
time was
left the soldiers to meditate on the similar havoc which their
own weapons
were capable of. Thus the British soldier was never allowed
to feel that the
information which he received at home was untrue.
Unfortunately the opposite
was the case with the Germans, who finally
wound up by rejecting everything
from home as pure swindle and humbug.
This result was made possible because
at home they thought that the work
of propaganda could be entrusted to the
first ass that came along,
braying of his own special talents, and they had
no conception of the
fact that propaganda demands the most skilled brains
that can be found.
Thus the German war propaganda afforded us an
incomparable example of
how the work of 'enlightenment' should not be done
and how such an
example was the result of an entire failure to take any
psychological
considerations whatsoever into account.
From the enemy,
however, a fund of valuable knowledge could be gained by
those who kept their
eyes open, whose powers of perception had not yet
become sclerotic, and who
during four-and-a-half years had to experience
the perpetual flood of enemy
propaganda.
The worst of all was that our people did not understand the
very first
condition which has to be fulfilled in every kind of propaganda;
namely,
a systematically one-sided attitude towards every problem that has to
be
dealt with. In this regard so many errors were committed, even from the
very beginning of the war, that it was justifiable to doubt whether so
much
folly could be attributed solely to the stupidity of people in
higher
quarters.
What, for example, should we say of a poster which purported to
advertise some new brand of soap by insisting on the excellent qualities
of
the competitive brands? We should naturally shake our heads. And it
ought to
be just the same in a similar kind of political advertisement.
The aim of
propaganda is not to try to pass judgment on conflicting
rights, giving each
its due, but exclusively to emphasize the right
which we are asserting.
Propaganda must not investigate the truth
objectively and, in so far as it is
favourable to the other side,
present it according to the theoretical rules
of justice; yet it must
present only that aspect of the truth which is
favourable to its own
side.
It was a fundamental mistake to discuss
the question of who was
responsible for the outbreak of the war and declare
that the sole
responsibility could not be attributed to Germany. The sole
responsibility should have been laid on the shoulders of the enemy,
without
any discussion whatsoever.
And what was the consequence of these
half-measures? The broad masses of
the people are not made up of diplomats or
professors of public
jurisprudence nor simply of persons who are able to form
reasoned
judgment in given cases, but a vacillating crowd of human children
who
are constantly wavering between one idea and another. As soon as our own
propaganda made the slightest suggestion that the enemy had a certain
amount
of justice on his side, then we laid down the basis on which the
justice of
our own cause could be questioned. The masses are not in a
position to
discern where the enemy's fault ends and where our own
begins. In such a case
they become hesitant and distrustful, especially
when the enemy does not make
the same mistake but heaps all the blame on
his adversary. Could there be any
clearer proof of this than the fact
that finally our own people believed what
was said by the enemy's
propaganda, which was uniform and consistent in its
assertions, rather
than what our own propaganda said? And that, of course,
was increased by
the mania for objectivity which addicts our people.
Everybody began to
be careful about doing an injustice to the enemy, even at
the cost of
seriously injuring, and even ruining his own people and State.
Naturally the masses were not conscious of the fact that those in
authority had failed to study the subject from this angle.
The great
majority of a nation is so feminine in its character and
outlook that its
thought and conduct are ruled by sentiment rather than
by sober reasoning.
This sentiment, however, is not complex, but simple
and consistent. It is not
highly differentiated, but has only the
negative and positive notions of love
and hatred, right and wrong, truth
and falsehood. Its notions are never
partly this and partly that.
English propaganda especially understood this in
a marvellous way and
put what they understood into practice. They allowed no
half-measures
which might have given rise to some doubt.
Proof of how
brilliantly they understood that the feeling of the masses
is something
primitive was shown in their policy of publishing tales of
horror and
outrages which fitted in with the real horrors of the time,
thereby cleverly
and ruthlessly preparing the ground for moral
solidarity at the front, even
in times of great defeats. Further, the
way in which they pilloried the
German enemy as solely responsible for
the war--which was a brutal and
absolute falsehood--and the way in which
they proclaimed his guilt was
excellently calculated to reach the
masses, realizing that these are always
extremist in their feelings. And
thus it was that this atrocious lie was
positively believed.
The effectiveness of this kind of propaganda is well
illustrated by the
fact that after four-and-a-half years, not only was the
enemy still
carrying on his propagandist work, but it was already undermining
the
stamina of our people at home.
That our propaganda did not achieve
similar results is not to be
wondered at, because it had the germs of
inefficiency lodged in its very
being by reason of its ambiguity. And because
of the very nature of its
content one could not expect it to make the
necessary impression on the
masses. Only our feckless 'statesmen' could have
imagined that on
pacifists slops of such a kind the enthusiasm could be
nourished which
is necessary to enkindle that spirit which leads men to die
for their
country.
And so this product of ours was not only worthless
but detrimental.
No matter what an amount of talent employed in the
organization of
propaganda, it will have no result if due account is not
taken of these
fundamental principles. Propaganda must be limited to a few
simple
themes and these must be represented again and again. Here, as in
innumerable other cases, perseverance is the first and most important
condition of success.
Particularly in the field of propaganda, placid
aesthetes and blase
intellectuals should never be allowed to take the lead.
The former would
readily transform the impressive character of real
propaganda into
something suitable only for literary tea parties. As to the
second class
of people, one must always beware of this pest; for, in
consequence of
their insensibility to normal impressions, they are constantly
seeking
new excitements.
Such people grow sick and tired of
everything. They always long for
change and will always be incapable of
putting themselves in the
position of picturing the wants of their less
callous fellow-creatures
in their immediate neighbourhood, let alone trying
to understand them.
The blase intellectuals are always the first to criticize
propaganda, or
rather its message, because this appears to them to be
outmoded and
trivial. They are always looking for something new, always
yearning for
change; and thus they become the mortal enemies of every effort
that may
be made to influence the masses in an effective way. The moment the
organization and message of a propagandist movement begins to be
orientated
according to their tastes it becomes incoherent and
scattered.
It is
not the purpose of propaganda to create a series of alterations in
sentiment
with a view to pleasing these blase gentry. Its chief function
is to convince
the masses, whose slowness of understanding needs to be
given time in order
that they may absorb information; and only constant
repetition will finally
succeed in imprinting an idea on the memory of
the crowd.
Every change
that is made in the subject of a propagandist message must
always emphasize
the same conclusion. The leading slogan must of course
be illustrated in many
ways and from several angles, but in the end one
must always return to the
assertion of the same formula. In this way
alone can propaganda be consistent
and dynamic in its effects.
Only by following these general lines and
sticking to them steadfastly,
with uniform and concise emphasis, can final
success be reached. Then
one will be rewarded by the surprising and almost
incredible results
that such a persistent policy secures.
The success
of any advertisement, whether of a business or political
nature, depends on
the consistency and perseverance with which it is
employed.
In this
respect also the propaganda organized by our enemies set us an
excellent
example. It confined itself to a few themes, which were meant
exclusively for
mass consumption, and it repeated these themes with
untiring perseverance.
Once these fundamental themes and the manner of
placing them before the world
were recognized as effective, they adhered
to them without the slightest
alteration for the whole duration of the
War. At first all of it appeared to
be idiotic in its impudent
assertiveness. Later on it was looked upon as
disturbing, but finally it
was believed.
But in England they came to
understand something further: namely, that
the possibility of success in the
use of this spiritual weapon consists
in the mass employment of it, and that
when employed in this way it
brings full returns for the large expenses
incurred.
In England propaganda was regarded as a weapon of the first
order,
whereas with us it represented the last hope of a livelihood for our
unemployed politicians and a snug job for shirkers of the modest hero
type.
Taken all in all, its results were negative.
CHAPTER VII
THE REVOLUTION
In 1915 the enemy started his propaganda among
our soldiers. From 1916
onwards it steadily became more intensive, and at the
beginning of 1918
it had swollen into a storm flood. One could now judge the
effects of
this proselytizing movement step by step. Gradually our soldiers
began
to think just in the way the enemy wished them to think. On the German
side there was no counter-propaganda.
At that time the army authorities,
under our able and resolute
Commander, were willing and ready to take up the
fight in the propaganda
domain also, but unfortunately they did not have the
necessary means to
carry that intention into effect. Moreover, the army
authorities would
have made a psychological mistake had they undertaken this
task of
mental training. To be efficacious it had come from the home front.
For
only thus could it be successful among men who for nearly four years now
had been performing immortal deeds of heroism and undergoing all sorts
of
privations for the sake of that home. But what were the people at
home doing?
Was their failure to act merely due to unintelligence or bad
faith?
In
the midsummer of 1918, after the evacuation of the southern bank of
the
hearne, the German Press adopted a policy which was so woefully
inopportune,
and even criminally stupid, that I used to ask myself a
question which made
me more and more furious day after day: Is it really
true that we have nobody
who will dare to put an end to this process of
spiritual sabotage which is
being carried on among our heroic troops?
What happened in France during
those days of 1914, when our armies
invaded that country and were marching in
triumph from one victory to
another? What happened in Italy when their armies
collapsed on the
Isonzo front? What happened in France again during the
spring of 1918,
when German divisions took the main French positions by storm
and heavy
long-distance artillery bombarded Paris?
How they whipped up
the flagging courage of those troops who were
retreating and fanned the fires
of national enthusiasm among them! How
their propaganda and their marvellous
aptitude in the exercise of
mass-influence reawakened the fighting spirit in
that broken front and
hammered into the heads of the soldiers a, firm belief
in final victory!
Meanwhile, what were our people doing in this sphere?
Nothing, or even
worse than nothing. Again and again I used to become enraged
and
indignant as I read the latest papers and realized the nature of the
mass-murder they were committing: through their influence on the minds
of the
people and the soldiers. More than once I was tormented by the
thought that
if Providence had put the conduct of German propaganda into
my hands, instead
of into the hands of those incompetent and even
criminal ignoramuses and
weaklings, the outcome of the struggle might
have been different.
During those months I felt for the first time that Fate was dealing
adversely
with me in keeping me on the fighting front and in a position
where any
chance bullet from some nigger or other might finish me,
whereas I could have
done the Fatherland a real service in another
sphere. For I was then
presumptuous enough to believe that I would have
been successful in managing
the propaganda business.
But I was a being without a name, one among
eight millions. Hence it was
better for me to keep my mouth shut and do my
duty as well as I could in
the position to which I had been assigned.
In the summer of 1915 the first enemy leaflets were dropped on our
trenches.
They all told more or less the same story, with some
variations in the form
of it. The story was that distress was steadily
on the increase in Germany;
that the War would last indefinitely; that
the prospect of victory for us was
becoming fainter day after day; that
the people at home were yearning for
peace, but that 'Militarism' and
the 'Kaiser' would not permit it; that the
world--which knew this very
well--was not waging war against the German
people but only against the
man who was exclusively responsible, the Kaiser;
that until this enemy
of world-peace was removed there could be no end to the
conflict; but
that when the War was over the liberal and democratic nations
would
receive the Germans as colleagues in the League for World Peace. This
would be done the moment 'Prussian Militarism' had been finally
destroyed.
To illustrate and substantiate all these statements, the leaflets very
often contained 'Letters from Home', the contents of which appeared to
confirm the enemy's propagandist message.
Generally speaking, we only
laughed at all these efforts. The leaflets
were read, sent to base
headquarters, then forgotten until a favourable
wind once again blew a fresh
contingent into the trenches. These were
mostly dropped from aeroplanes which
were used specially for that
purpose.
One feature of this propaganda
was very striking. It was that in
sections where Bavarian troops were
stationed every effort was made by
the enemy propagandists to stir up feeling
against the Prussians,
assuring the soldiers that Prussia and Prussia alone
was the guilty
party who was responsible for bringing on and continuing the
War, and
that there was no hostility whatsoever towards the Bavarians; but
that
there could be no possibility of coming to their assistance so long as
they continued to serve Prussian interests and helped to pull the
Prussian
chestnuts out of the fire.
This persistent propaganda began to have a
real influence on our
soldiers in 1915. The feeling against Prussia grew
quite noticeable
among the Bavarian troops, but those in authority did
nothing to
counteract it. This was something more than a mere crime of
omission;
for sooner or later not only the Prussians were bound to have to
atone
severely for it but the whole German nation and consequently the
Bavarians themselves also.
In this direction the enemy propaganda began
to achieve undoubted
success from 1916 onwards.
In a similar way
letters coming directly from home had long since been
exercising their
effect. There was now no further necessity for the
enemy to broadcast such
letters in leaflet form. And also against this
influence from home nothing
was done except a few supremely stupid
'warnings' uttered by the executive
government. The whole front was
drenched in this poison which thoughtless
women at home sent out,
without suspecting for a moment that the enemy's
chances of final
victory were thus strengthened or that the sufferings of
their own men
at the front were thus being prolonged and rendered more
severe. These
stupid letters written by German women eventually cost the
lives of
hundreds of thousands of our men.
Thus in 1916 several
distressing phenomena were already manifest. The
whole front was complaining
and grousing, discontented over many things
and often justifiably so. While
they were hungry and yet patient, and
their relatives at home were in
distress, in other quarters there was
feasting and revelry. Yes; even on the
front itself everything was not
as it ought to have been in this regard.
Even in the early stages of the war the soldiers were sometimes prone to
complain; but such criticism was confined to 'internal affairs'. The man
who
at one moment groused and grumbled ceased his murmur after a few
moments and
went about his duty silently, as if everything were in
order. The company
which had given signs of discontent a moment earlier
hung on now to its bit
of trench, defending it tooth and nail, as if
Germany's fate depended on
these few hundred yards of mud and
shell-holes. The glorious old army was
still at its post. A sudden
change in my own fortunes soon placed me in a
position where I had
first-hand experience of the contrast between this old
army and the home
front. At the end of September 1916 my division was sent
into the Battle
of the Somme. For us this was the first of a series of heavy
engagements, and the impression created was that of a veritable inferno,
rather than war. Through weeks of incessant artillery bombardment we
stood
firm, at times ceding a little ground but then taking it back
again, and
never giving way. On October 7th, 1916, I was wounded but had
the luck of
being able to get back to our lines and was then ordered to
be sent by
ambulance train to Germany.
Two years had passed since I had left home,
an almost endless period in
such circumstances. I could hardly imagine what
Germans looked like
without uniforms. In the clearing hospital at Hermies I
was startled
when I suddenly heard the voice of a German woman who was acting
as
nursing sister and talking with one of the wounded men lying near me.
Two years! And then this voice for the first time!
The nearer our
ambulance train approached the German frontier the more
restless each one of
us became. En route we recognised all these places
through which we passed
two years before as young volunteers--Brussels,
Louvain, Liège--and finally
we thought we recognized the first German
homestead, with its familiar high
gables and picturesque
window-shutters. Home!
What a change! From the
mud of the Somme battlefields to the spotless
white beds in this wonderful
building. One hesitated at first before
entering them. It was only by slow
stages that one could grow accustomed
to this new world again. But
unfortunately there were certain other
aspects also in which this new world
was different.
The spirit of the army at the front appeared to be out of
place here.
For the first time I encountered something which up to then was
unknown
at the front: namely, boasting of one's own cowardice. For, though we
certainly heard complaining and grousing at the front, this was never in
the
spirit of any agitation to insubordination and certainly not an
attempt to
glorify one's fear. No; there at the front a coward was a
coward and nothing
else, And the contempt which his weakness aroused in
the others was quite
general, just as the real hero was admired all
round. But here in hospital
the spirit was quite different in some
respects. Loudmouthed agitators were
busy here in heaping ridicule on
the good soldier and painting the weak-kneed
poltroon in glorious
colours. A couple of miserable human specimens were the
ringleaders in
this process of defamation. One of them boasted of having
intentionally
injured his hand in barbed-wire entanglements in order to get
sent to
hospital. Although his wound was only a slight one, it appeared that
he
had been here for a very long time and would be here interminably. Some
arrangement for him seemed to be worked by some sort of swindle, just as
he
got sent here in the ambulance train through a swindle. This
pestilential
specimen actually had the audacity to parade his knavery as
the manifestation
of a courage which was superior to that of the brave
soldier who dies a
hero's death. There were many who heard this talk in
silence; but there were
others who expressed their assent to what the
fellow said.
Personally
I was disgusted at the thought that a seditious agitator of
this kind should
be allowed to remain in such an institution. What could
be done? The hospital
authorities here must have known who and what he
was; and actually they did
know. But still they did nothing about it.
As soon as I was able to walk
once again I obtained leave to visit
Berlin.
Bitter want was in
evidence everywhere. The metropolis, with its teeming
millions, was suffering
from hunger. The talk that was current in the
various places of refreshment
and hospices visited by the soldiers was
much the same as that in our
hospital. The impression given was that
these agitators purposely singled out
such places in order to spread
their views.
But in Munich conditions
were far worse. After my discharge from
hospital, I was sent to a reserve
battalion there. I felt as in some
strange town. Anger, discontent,
complaints met one's ears wherever one
went. To a certain extent this was due
to the infinitely maladroit
manner in which the soldiers who had returned
from the front were
treated by the non-commissioned officers who had never
seen a day's
active service and who on that account were partly incapable of
adopting
the proper attitude towards the old soldiers. Naturally those old
soldiers displayed certain characteristics which had been developed from
the
experiences in the trenches. The officers of the reserve units could
not
understand these peculiarities, whereas the officer home from active
service
was at least in a position to understand them for himself. As a
result he
received more respect from the men than officers at the home
headquarters.
But, apart from all this, the general spirit was
deplorable. The art of
shirking was looked upon as almost a proof of
higher intelligence, and
devotion to duty was considered a sign of
weakness or bigotry. Government
offices were staffed by Jews. Almost
every clerk was a Jew and every Jew was
a clerk. I was amazed at this
multitude of combatants who belonged to the
chosen people and could not
help comparing it with their slender numbers in
the fighting lines.
In the business world the situation was even worse.
Here the Jews had
actually become 'indispensable'. Like leeches, they were
slowly sucking
the blood from the pores of the national body. By means of
newly floated
War Companies an instrument had been discovered whereby all
national
trade was throttled so that no business could be carried on freely
Special emphasis was laid on the necessity for unhampered
centralization.
Hence as early as 1916-17 practically all production was
under the control of
Jewish finance.
But against whom was the anger of the people directed? It
was then that
I already saw the fateful day approaching which must finally
bring the
DEBACLE, unless timely preventive measures were taken.
While
Jewry was busy despoiling the nation and tightening the screws of
its
despotism, the work of inciting the people against the Prussians
increased.
And just as nothing was done at the front to put a stop to
the venomous
propaganda, so here at home no official steps were taken
against it. Nobody
seemed capable of understanding that the collapse of
Prussia could never
bring about the rise of Bavaria. On the contrary,
the collapse of the one
must necessarily drag the other down with it.
This kind of behaviour
affected me very deeply. In it I could see only a
clever Jewish trick for
diverting public attention from themselves to
others. While Prussians and
Bavarians were squabbling, the Jews were
taking away the sustenance of both
from under their very noses. While
Prussians were being abused in Bavaria the
Jews organized the revolution
and with one stroke smashed both Prussia and
Bavaria.
I could not tolerate this execrable squabbling among people of
the same
German stock and preferred to be at the front once again. Therefore,
just after my arrival in Munich I reported myself for service again. At
the
beginning of March 1917 I rejoined my old regiment at the front.
Towards
the end of 1917 it seemed as if we had got over the worst phases
of moral
depression at the front. After the Russian collapse the whole
army recovered
its courage and hope, and all were gradually becoming
more and more convinced
that the struggle would end in our favour. We
could sing once again. The
ravens were ceasing to croak. Faith in the
future of the Fatherland was once
more in the ascendant.
The Italian collapse in the autumn of 1917 had a
wonderful effect; for
this victory proved that it was possible to break
through another front
besides the Russian. This inspiring thought now became
dominant in the
minds of millions at the front and encouraged them to look
forward with
confidence to the spring of 1918. It was quite obvious that the
enemy
was in a state of depression. During this winter the front was somewhat
quieter than usual. But that was the calm before the storm.
Just when
preparations were being made to launch a final offensive which
would bring
this seemingly eternal struggle to an end, while endless
columns of
transports were bringing men and munitions to the front, and
while the men
were being trained for that final onslaught, then it was
that the greatest
act of treachery during the whole War was accomplished
in Germany.
Germany must not win the War. At that moment when victory seemed ready
to
alight on the German standards, a conspiracy was arranged for the
purpose of
striking at the heart of the German spring offensive with one
blow from the
rear and thus making victory impossible. A general strike
in the munition
factories was organized.
If this conspiracy could achieve its purpose the
German front would have
collapsed and the wishes of the VORWÄRTS (the organ
of the
Social-Democratic Party) that this time victory should not take the
side
of the German banners, would have been fulfilled. For want of munitions
the front would be broken through within a few weeks, the offensive
would be
effectively stopped and the Entente saved. Then International
Finance would
assume control over Germany and the internal objective of
the Marxist
national betrayal would be achieved. That objective was the
destruction of
the national economic system and the establishment of
international
capitalistic domination in its stead. And this goal has
really been reached,
thanks to the stupid credulity of the one side and
the unspeakable treachery
of the other.
The munition strike, however, did not bring the final
success that had
been hoped for: namely, to starve the front of ammunition.
It lasted too
short a time for the lack of ammunitions as such to bring
disaster to
the army, as was originally planned. But the moral damage was
much more
terrible.
In the first place. what was the army fighting for
if the people at home
did not wish it to be victorious? For whom then were
these enormous
sacrifices and privations being made and endured? Must the
soldiers
fight for victory while the home front goes on strike against it?
In the second place, what effect did this move have on the enemy?
In
the winter of 1917-18 dark clouds hovered in the firmament of the
Entente.
For nearly four years onslaught after onslaught has been made
against the
German giant, but they failed to bring him to the ground. He
had to keep them
at bay with one arm that held the defensive shield
because his other arm had
to be free to wield the sword against his
enemies, now in the East and now in
the South. But at last these enemies
were overcome and his rear was now free
for the conflict in the West.
Rivers of blood had been shed for the
accomplishment of that task; but
now the sword was free to combine in battle
with the shield on the
Western Front. And since the enemy had hitherto failed
to break the
German defence here, the Germans themselves had now to launch
the
attack. The enemy feared and trembled before the prospect of this German
victory.
At Paris and London conferences followed one another in unending
series.
Even the enemy propaganda encountered difficulties. It was no longer
so
easy to demonstrate that the prospect of a German victory was hopeless.
A prudent silence reigned at the front, even among the troops of the
Entente.
The insolence of their masters had suddenly subsided. A
disturbing truth
began to dawn on them. Their opinion of the German
soldier had changed.
Hitherto they were able to picture him as a kind of
fool whose end would be
destruction; but now they found themselves face
to face with the soldier who
had overcome their Russian ally. The policy
of restricting the offensive to
the East, which had been imposed on the
German military authorities by the
necessities of the situation, now
seemed to the Entente as a tactical stroke
of genius. For three years
these Germans had been battering away at the
Russian front without any
apparent success at first. Those fruitless efforts
were almost sneered
at; for it was thought that in the long run the Russian
giant would
triumph through sheer force of numbers. Germany would be worn out
through shedding so much blood. And facts appeared to confirm this hope.
Since the September days of 1914, when for the first time interminable
columns of Russian war prisoners poured into Germany after the Battle of
Tannenberg, it seemed as if the stream would never end but that as soon
as
one army was defeated and routed another would take its place. The
supply of
soldiers which the gigantic Empire placed at the disposal of
the Czar seemed
inexhaustible; new victims were always at hand for the
holocaust of war. How
long could Germany hold out in this competition?
Would not the day finally
have to come when, after the last victory
which the Germans would achieve,
there would still remain reserve armies
in Russia to be mustered for the
final battle? And what then? According
to human standards a Russian victory
over Germany might be delayed but
it would have to come in the long run.
All the hopes that had been based on Russia were now lost. The Ally who
had sacrificed the most blood on the altar of their mutual interests had
come
to the end of his resources and lay prostrate before his
unrelenting foe. A
feeling of terror and dismay came over the Entente
soldiers who had hitherto
been buoyed up by blind faith. They feared the
coming spring. For, seeing
that hitherto they had failed to break the
Germans when the latter could
concentrate only part of the fighting
strength on the Western Front, how
could they count on victory now that
the undivided forces of that amazing
land of heroes appeared to be
gathered for a massed attack in the West?
The shadow of the events which had taken place in South Tyrol, the
spectre of General Cadorna's defeated armies, were reflected in the
gloomy
faces of the Entente troops in Flanders. Faith in victory gave
way to fear of
defeat to come.
Then, on those cold nights, when one almost heard the
tread of the
German armies advancing to the great assault, and the decision
was being
awaited in fear and trembling, suddenly a lurid light was set aglow
in
Germany and sent its rays into the last shell-hole on the enemy's front.
At the very moment when the German divisions were receiving their final
orders for the great offensive a general strike broke out in Germany.
At
first the world was dumbfounded. Then the enemy propaganda began
activities
once again and pounced on this theme at the eleventh hour.
All of a sudden a
means had come which could be utilized to revive the
sinking confidence of
the Entente soldiers. The probabilities of victory
could now be presented as
certain, and the anxious foreboding in regard
to coming events could now be
transformed into a feeling of resolute
assurance. The regiments that had to
bear the brunt of the Greatest
German onslaught in history could now be
inspired with the conviction
that the final decision in this war would not be
won by the audacity of
the German assault but rather by the powers of
endurance on the side of
the defence. Let the Germans now have whatever
victories they liked, the
revolution and not the victorious army was welcomed
in the Fatherland.
British, French and American newspapers began to
spread this belief
among their readers while a very ably managed propaganda
encouraged the
morale of their troops at the front.
'Germany Facing
Revolution! An Allied Victory Inevitable!' That was the
best medicine to set
the staggering Poilu and Tommy on their feet once
again. Our rifles and
machine-guns could now open fire once again; but
instead of effecting a
panic-stricken retreat they were now met with a
determined resistance that
was full of confidence.
That was the result of the strike in the
munitions factories. Throughout
the enemy countries faith in victory was thus
revived and strengthened,
and that paralysing feeling of despair which had
hitherto made itself
felt on the Entente front was banished. Consequently the
strike cost the
lives of thousands of German soldiers. But the despicable
instigators of
that dastardly strike were candidates for the highest public
positions
in the Germany of the Revolution.
At first it was apparently
possible to overcome the repercussion of
these events on the German soldiers,
but on the enemy's side they had a
lasting effect. Here the resistance had
lost all the character of an
army fighting for a lost cause. In its place
there was now a grim
determination to struggle through to victory. For,
according to all
human rules of judgment, victory would now be assured if the
Western
front could hold out against the German offensive even for only a few
months. The Allied parliaments recognized the possibilities of a better
future and voted huge sums of money for the continuation of the
propaganda
which was employed for the purpose of breaking up the
internal cohesion of
Germany.
It was my luck that I was able to take part in the first two
offensives
and in the final offensive. These have left on me the most
stupendous
impressions of my life--stupendous, because now for the last time
the
struggle lost its defensive character and assumed the character of an
offensive, just as it was in 1914. A sigh of relief went up from the
German
trenches and dug-outs when finally, after three years of
endurance in that
inferno, the day for the settling of accounts had
come. Once again the lusty
cheering of victorious battalions was heard,
as they hung the last crowns of
the immortal laurel on the standards
which they consecrated to Victory. Once
again the strains of patriotic
songs soared upwards to the heavens above the
endless columns of
marching troops, and for the last time the Lord smiled on
his ungrateful
children.
In the midsummer of 1918 a feeling of sultry
oppression hung over the
front. At home they were quarrelling. About what? We
heard a great deal
among various units at the front. The War was now a
hopeless affair, and
only the foolhardy could think of victory. It was not
the people but the
capitalists and the Monarchy who were interested in
carrying on. Such
were the ideas that came from home and were discussed at
the front.
At first this gave rise to only very slight reaction. What did
universal
suffrage matter to us? Is this what we had been fighting for during
four
years? It was a dastardly piece of robbery thus to filch from the graves
of our heroes the ideals for which they had fallen. It was not to the
slogan,
'Long Live Universal Suffrage,' that our troops in Flanders once
faced
certain death but with the cry, 'DEUTSCHLAND ÜBER ALLES IN DER
WELT'. A small
but by no means an unimportant difference. And the
majority of those who were
shouting for this suffrage were absent when
it came to fighting for it. All
this political rabble were strangers to
us at the front. During those days
only a fraction of these
parliamentarian gentry were to be seen where honest
Germans
foregathered.
The old soldiers who had fought at the front had
little liking for those
new war aims of Messrs. Ebert, Scheidemann, Barth,
Liebknecht and
others. We could not understand why, all of a sudden, the
shirkers
should abrogate all executive powers to themselves, without having
any
regard to the army.
From the very beginning I had my own definite
personal views. I
intensely loathed the whole gang of miserable party
politicians who had
betrayed the people. I had long ago realized that the
interests of the
nation played only a very small part with this disreputable
crew and
that what counted with them was the possibility of filling their own
empty pockets. My opinion was that those people thoroughly deserved to
be
hanged, because they were ready to sacrifice the peace and if
necessary allow
Germany to be defeated just to serve their own ends. To
consider their wishes
would mean to sacrifice the interests of the
working classes for the benefit
of a gang of thieves. To meet their
wishes meant that one should agree to
sacrifice Germany.
Such, too, was the opinion still held by the majority
of the army. But
the reinforcements which came from home were fast becoming
worse and
worse; so much so that their arrival was a source of weakness
rather
than of strength to our fighting forces. The young recruits in
particular were for the most part useless. Sometimes it was hard to
believe
that they were sons of the same nation that sent its youth into
the battles
that were fought round Ypres.
In August and September the symptoms of
moral disintegration increased
more and more rapidly, although the enemy's
offensive was not at all
comparable to the frightfulness of our own former
defensive battles. In
comparison with this offensive the battles fought on
the Somme and in
Flanders remained in our memories as the most terrible of
all horrors.
At the end of September my division occupied, for the third
time, those
positions which we had once taken by storm as young volunteers.
What a
memory!
Here we had received our baptism of fire, in October
and November 1914.
With a burning love of the homeland in their hearts and a
song on their
lips, our young regiment went into action as if going to a
dance. The
dearest blood was given freely here in the belief that it was shed
to
protect the freedom and independence of the Fatherland.
In July
1917 we set foot for the second time on what we regarded as
sacred soil. Were
not our best comrades at rest here, some of them
little more than boys--the
soldiers who had rushed into death for their
country's sake, their eyes
glowing with enthusiastic love.
The older ones among us, who had been
with the regiment from the
beginning, were deeply moved as we stood on this
sacred spot where we
had sworn 'Loyalty and Duty unto Death'. Three years ago
the regiment
had taken this position by storm; now it was called upon to
defend it in
a gruelling struggle.
With an artillery bombardment that
lasted three weeks the English
prepared for their great offensive in
Flanders. There the spirits of the
dead seemed to live again. The regiment
dug itself into the mud, clung
to its shell-holes and craters, neither
flinching nor wavering, but
growing smaller in numbers day after day. Finally
the British launched
their attack on July 31st, 1917.
We were relieved
in the beginning of August. The regiment had dwindled
down to a few
companies, who staggered back, mud-crusted, more like
phantoms than human
beings. Besides a few hundred yards of shell-holes,
death was the only reward
which the English gained.
Now in the autumn of 1918 we stood for the
third time on the ground we
had stormed in 1914. The village of Comines,
which formerly had served
us as a base, was now within the fighting zone.
Although little had
changed in the surrounding district itself, yet the men
had become
different, somehow or other. They now talked politics. Like
everywhere
else, the poison from home was having its effect here also. The
young
drafts succumbed to it completely. They had come directly from home.
During the night of October 13th-14th, the British opened an attack with
gas on the front south of Ypres. They used the yellow gas whose effect
was
unknown to us, at least from personal experience. I was destined to
experience it that very night. On a hill south of Werwick, in the
evening of
October 13th, we were subjected for several hours to a heavy
bombardment with
gas bombs, which continued throughout the night with
more or less intensity.
About midnight a number of us were put out of
action, some for ever. Towards
morning I also began to feel pain. It
increased with every quarter of an
hour; and about seven o'clock my eyes
were scorching as I staggered back and
delivered the last dispatch I was
destined to carry in this war. A few hours
later my eyes were like
glowing coals and all was darkness around me.
I was sent into hospital at Pasewalk in Pomerania, and there it was that
I
had to hear of the Revolution.
For a long time there had been something
in the air which was
indefinable and repulsive. People were saying that
something was bound
to happen within the next few weeks, although I could not
imagine what
this meant. In the first instance I thought of a strike similar
to the
one which had taken place in spring. Unfavourable rumours were
constantly coming from the Navy, which was said to be in a state of
ferment.
But this seemed to be a fanciful creation of a few isolated
young people. It
is true that at the hospital they were all talking abut
the end of the war
and hoping that this was not far off, but nobody
thought that the decision
would come immediately. I was not able to read
the newspapers.
In
November the general tension increased. Then one day disaster broke
in upon
us suddenly and without warning. Sailors came in motor-lorries
and called on
us to rise in revolt. A few Jew-boys were the leaders in
that combat for the
'Liberty, Beauty, and Dignity' of our National
Being. Not one of them had
seen active service at the front. Through the
medium of a hospital for
venereal diseases these three Orientals had
been sent back home. Now their
red rags were being hoisted here.
During the last few days I had begun to
feel somewhat better. The
burning pain in the eye-sockets had become less
severe. Gradually I was
able to distinguish the general outlines of my
immediate surroundings.
And it was permissible to hope that at least I would
recover my sight
sufficiently to be able to take up some profession later on.
That I
would ever be able to draw or design once again was naturally out of
the
question. Thus I was on the way to recovery when the frightful hour
came.
My first thought was that this outbreak of high treason was only a
local
affair. I tried to enforce this belief among my comrades. My Bavarian
hospital mates, in particular, were readily responsive. Their
inclinations
were anything but revolutionary. I could not imagine this
madness breaking
out in Munich; for it seemed to me that loyalty to the
House of Wittelsbach
was, after all, stronger than the will of a few
Jews. And so I could not help
believing that this was merely a revolt in
the Navy and that it would be
suppressed within the next few days.
With the next few days came the most
astounding information of my life.
The rumours grew more and more persistent.
I was told that what I had
considered to be a local affair was in reality a
general revolution. In
addition to this, from the front came the shameful
news that they wished
to capitulate! What! Was such a thing possible?
On November 10th the local pastor visited the hospital for the purpose
of
delivering a short address. And that was how we came to know the
whole story.
I was in a fever of excitement as I listened to the address. The
reverend
old gentleman seemed to be trembling when he informed us that
the House of
Hohen-zollern should no longer wear the Imperial Crown,
that the Fatherland
had become a 'Republic', that we should pray to the
Almighty not to withhold
His blessing from the new order of things and
not to abandon our people in
the days to come. In delivering this
message he could not do more than
briefly express appreciation of the
Royal House, its services to Pomerania,
to Prussia, indeed, to the whole
of the German Fatherland, and--here he began
to weep. A feeling of
profound dismay fell on the people in that assembly,
and I do not think
there was a single eye that withheld its tears. As for
myself, I broke
down completely when the old gentleman tried to resume his
story by
informing us that we must now end this long war, because the war was
lost, he said, and we were at the mercy of the victor. The Fatherland
would
have to bear heavy burdens in the future. We were to accept the
terms of the
Armistice and trust to the magnanimity of our former
enemies. It was
impossible for me to stay and listen any longer.
Darkness surrounded me as I
staggered and stumbled back to my ward and
buried my aching head between the
blankets and pillow.
I had not cried since the day that I stood beside my
mother's grave.
Whenever Fate dealt cruelly with me in my young days the
spirit of
determination within me grew stronger and stronger. During all
those
long years of war, when Death claimed many a true friend and comrade
from our ranks, to me it would have appeared sinful to have uttered a
word of
complaint. Did they not die for Germany? And, finally, almost in
the last few
days of that titanic struggle, when the waves of poison gas
enveloped me and
began to penetrate my eyes, the thought of becoming
permanently blind
unnerved me; but the voice of conscience cried out
immediately: Poor
miserable fellow, will you start howling when there
are thousands of others
whose lot is a hundred times worse than yours?
And so I accepted my
misfortune in silence, realizing that this was the
only thing to be done and
that personal suffering was nothing when
compared with the misfortune of
one's country.
So all had been in vain. In vain all the sacrifices and
privations, in
vain the hunger and thirst for endless months, in vain those
hours that
we stuck to our posts though the fear of death gripped our souls,
and in
vain the deaths of two millions who fell in discharging this duty.
Think
of those hundreds of thousands who set out with hearts full of faith in
their fatherland, and never returned; ought not their graves to open, so
that
the spirits of those heroes bespattered with mud and blood should
come home
and take vengeance on those who had so despicably betrayed the
greatest
sacrifice which a human being can make for his country? Was it
for this that
the soldiers died in August and September 1914, for this
that the volunteer
regiments followed the old comrades in the autumn of
the same year? Was it
for this that those boys of seventeen years of age
were mingled with the
earth of Flanders? Was this meant to be the fruits
of the sacrifice which
German mothers made for their Fatherland when,
with heavy hearts, they said
good-bye to their sons who never returned?
Has all this been done in order to
enable a gang of despicable criminals
to lay hands on the Fatherland?
Was this then what the German soldier struggled for through sweltering
heat
and blinding snowstorm, enduring hunger and thirst and cold,
fatigued from
sleepless nights and endless marches? Was it for this that
he lived through
an inferno of artillery bombardments, lay gasping and
choking during gas
attacks, neither flinching nor faltering, but
remaining staunch to the
thought of defending the Fatherland against the
enemy? Certainly these heroes
also deserved the epitaph:
Traveller, when you come to Germany, tell the
Homeland that we lie
here, true to the Fatherland and faithful to our duty.
(Note 13)
[Note 13. Here again we have the defenders of Thermopylae
recalled as the
prototype of German valour in the Great War. Hitler's
quotation is a
German variant of the couplet inscribed on the monument
erected at
Thermopylae to the memory of Leonidas and his Spartan soldiers who
fell
defending the Pass. As given by Herodotus, who claims that he saw the
inscription himself, the original text may be literally translated thus:
Go, tell the Spartans, thou who passeth by,
That here, obedient to their
laws, we lie.]
And at Home? But--was this the only sacrifice that we had
to consider?
Was the Germany of the past a country of little worth? Did she
not owe a
certain duty to her own history? Were we still worthy to partake in
the
glory of the past? How could we justify this act to future generations?
What a gang of despicable and depraved criminals!
The more I tried
then to glean some definite information of the terrible
events that had
happened the more my head became afire with rage and
shame. What was all the
pain I suffered in my eyes compared with this
tragedy?
The following
days were terrible to bear, and the nights still worse. To
depend on the
mercy of the enemy was a precept which only fools or
criminal liars could
recommend. During those nights my hatred
increased--hatred for the orignators
of this dastardly crime.
During the following days my own fate became
clear to me. I was forced
now to scoff at the thought of my personal future,
which hitherto had
been the cause of so much worry to me. Was it not
ludicrous to think of
building up anything on such a foundation? Finally, it
also became clear
to me that it was the inevitable that had happened,
something which I
had feared for a long time, though I really did not have
the heart to
believe it.
Emperor William II was the first German
Emperor to offer the hand of
friendship to the Marxist leaders, not
suspecting that they were
scoundrels without any sense of honour. While they
held the imperial
hand in theirs, the other hand was already feeling for the
dagger.
There is no such thing as coming to an understanding with the
Jews. It
must be the hard-and-fast 'Either-Or.'
For my part I then
decided that I would take up political work.
CHAPTER VIII
THE BEGINNING OF MY POLITICAL ACTIVITIES
Towards the end
of November I returned to Munich. I went to the depot of
my regiment, which
was now in the hands of the 'Soldiers' Councils'. As
the whole administration
was quite repulsive to me, I decided to leave
it as soon as I possibly could.
With my faithful war-comrade,
Ernst-Schmidt, I came to Traunstein and
remained there until the camp
was broken up. In March 1919 we were back again
in Munich.
The situation there could not last as it was. It tended
irresistibly to
a further extension of the Revolution. Eisner's death served
only to
hasten this development and finally led to the dictatorship of the
Councils--or, to put it more correctly, to a Jewish hegemony, which
turned
out to be transitory but which was the original aim of those who
had
contrived the Revolution.
At that juncture innumerable plans took shape
in my mind. I spent whole
days pondering on the problem of what could be
done, but unfortunately
every project had to give way before the hard fact
that I was quite
unknown and therefore did not have even the first
pre-requisite
necessary for effective action. Later on I shall explain the
reasons why
I could not decide to join any of the parties then in existence.
As the new Soviet Revolution began to run its course in Munich my first
activities drew upon me the ill-will of the Central Council. In the
early
morning of April 27th, 1919, I was to have been arrested; but the
three
fellows who came to arrest me did not have the courage to face my
rifle and
withdrew just as they had arrived.
A few days after the liberation of
Munich I was ordered to appear before
the Inquiry Commission which had been
set up in the 2nd Infantry
Regiment for the purpose of watching revolutionary
activities. That was
my first incursion into the more or less political
field.
After another few weeks I received orders to attend a course of
lectures
which were being given to members of the army. This course was meant
to
inculcate certain fundamental principles on which the soldier could base
his political ideas. For me the advantage of this organization was that
it
gave me a chance of meeting fellow soldiers who were of the same way
of
thinking and with whom I could discuss the actual situation. We were
all more
or less firmly convinced that Germany could not be saved from
imminent
disaster by those who had participated in the November
treachery--that is to
say, the Centre and the Social-Democrats; and also
that the so-called
Bourgeois-National group could not make good the
damage that had been done,
even if they had the best intentions. They
lacked a number of requisites
without which such a task could never be
successfully undertaken. The years
that followed have justified the
opinions which we held at that time.
In our small circle we discussed the project of forming a new party. The
leading ideas which we then proposed were the same as those which were
carried into effect afterwards, when the German Labour Party was
founded. The
name of the new movement which was to be founded should be
such that of
itself, it would appeal to the mass of the people; for all
our efforts would
turn out vain and useless if this condition were
lacking. And that was the
reason why we chose the name
'Social-Revolutionary Party', particularly
because the social principles
of our new organization were indeed
revolutionary.
But there was also a more fundamental reason. The
attention which I had
given to economic problems during my earlier years was
more or less
confined to considerations arising directly out of the social
problem.
Subsequently this outlook broadened as I came to study the German
policy
of the Triple Alliance. This policy was very largely the result of an
erroneous valuation of the economic situation, together with a confused
notion as to the basis on which the future subsistence of the German
people
could be guaranteed. All these ideas were based on the principle
that capital
is exclusively the product of labour and that, just like
labour, it was
subject to all the factors which can hinder or promote
human activity. Hence,
from the national standpoint, the significance of
capital depended on the
greatness and freedom and power of the State,
that is to say, of the nation,
and that it is this dependence alone
which leads capital to promote the
interests of the State and the
nation, from the instinct of self-preservation
and for the sake of its
own development.
On such principles the
attitude of the State towards capital would be
comparatively simple and
clear. Its only object would be to make sure
that capital remained
subservient to the State and did not allocate to
itself the right to dominate
national interests. Thus it could confine
its activities within the two
following limits: on the one side, to
assure a vital and independent system
of national economy and, on the
other, to safeguard the social rights of the
workers.
Previously I did not recognize with adequate clearness the
difference
between capital which is purely the product of creative labour and
the
existence and nature of capital which is exclusively the result of
financial speculation. Here I needed an impulse to set my mind thinking
in
this direction; but that impulse had hitherto been lacking.
The requisite
impulse now came from one of the men who delivered
lectures in the course I
have already mentioned. This was Gottfried
Feder.
For the first time
in my life I heard a discussion which dealt with the
principles of
stock-exchange capital and capital which was used for loan
activities. After
hearing the first lecture delivered by Feder, the idea
immediately came into
my head that I had now found a way to one of the
most essential
pre-requisites for the founding of a new party.
To my mind, Feder's merit
consisted in the ruthless and trenchant way in
which he described the double
character of the capital engaged in
stock-exchange and loan transaction,
laying bare the fact that this
capital is ever and always dependent on the
payment of interest. In
fundamental questions his statements were so full of
common sense that
those who criticized him did not deny that AU FOND his
ideas were sound
but they doubted whether it be possible to put these ideas
into
practice. To me this seemed the strongest point in Feder's teaching,
though others considered it a weak point.
It is not the business of him
who lays down a theoretical programme to
explain the various ways in which
something can be put into practice.
His task is to deal with the problem as
such; and, therefore, he has to
look to the end rather than the means. The
important question is whether
an idea is fundamentally right or not. The
question of whether or not it
may be difficult to carry it out in practice is
quite another matter.
When a man whose task it is to lay down the principles
of a programme or
policy begins to busy himself with the question as to
whether it is
expedient and practical, instead of confining himself to the
statement
of the absolute truth, his work will cease to be a guiding star to
those
who are looking about for light and leading and will become merely a
recipe for every-day iife. The man who lays down the programme of a
movement
must consider only the goal. It is for the political leader to
point out the
way in which that goal may be reached. The thought of the
former will,
therefore, be determined by those truths that are
everlasting, whereas the
activity of the latter must always be guided by
taking practical account of
the circumstances under which those truths
have to be carried into effect.
The greatness of the one will depend on the absolute truth of his idea,
considered in the abstract; whereas that of the other will depend on
whether
or not he correctly judges the given realities and how they may
be utilized
under the guidance of the truths established by the former.
The test of
greatness as applied to a political leader is the success of
his plans and
his enterprises, which means his ability to reach the goal
for which he sets
out; whereas the final goal set up by the political
philosopher can never be
reached; for human thought may grasp truths and
picture ends which it sees
like clear crystal, though such ends can
never be completely fulfilled
because human nature is weak and
imperfect. The more an idea is correct in
the abstract, and, therefore,
all the more powerful, the smaller is the
possibility of putting it into
practice, at least as far as this latter
depends on human beings. The
significance of a political philosopher does not
depend on the practical
success of the plans he lays down but rather on their
absolute truth and
the influence they exert on the progress of mankind. If it
were
otherwise, the founders of religions could not be considered as the
greatest men who have ever lived, because their moral aims will never be
completely or even approximately carried out in practice. Even that
religion
which is called the Religion of Love is really no more than a
faint reflex of
the will of its sublime Founder. But its significance
lies in the orientation
which it endeavoured to give to human
civilization, and human virtue and
morals.
This very wide difference between the functions of a political
philosopher and a practical political leader is the reason why the
qualifications necessary for both functions are scarcely ever found
associated in the same person. This applies especially to the so-called
successful politician of the smaller kind, whose activity is indeed
hardly
more than practising the art of doing the possible, as Bismarck
modestly
defined the art of politics in general. If such a politician
resolutely
avoids great ideas his success will be all the easier to
attain; it will be
attained more expeditely and frequently will be more
tangible. By reason of
this very fact, however, such success is doomed
to futility and sometimes
does not even survive the death of its author.
Generally speaking, the work
of politicians is without significance for
the following generation, because
their temporary success was based on
the expediency of avoiding all really
great decisive problems and ideas
which would be valid also for future
generations.
To pursue ideals which will still be of value and
significance for the
future is generally not a very profitable undertaking
and he who follows
such a course is only very rarely understood by the mass
of the people,
who find beer and milk a more persuasive index of political
values than
far-sighted plans for the future, the realization of which can
only take
place later on and the advantages of which can be reaped only by
posterity.
Because of a certain vanity, which is always one of the
blood-relations
of unintelligence, the general run of politicians will always
eschew
those schemes for the future which are really difficult to put into
practice; and they will practise this avoidance so that they may not
lose the
immediate favour of the mob. The importance and the success of
such
politicians belong exclusively to the present and will be of no
consequence
for the future. But that does not worry small-minded people;
they are quite
content with momentary results.
The position of the constructive
political philosopher is quite
different. The importance of his work must
always be judged from the
standpoint of the future; and he is frequently
described by the word
WELTFREMD, or dreamer. While the ability of the
politician consists in
mastering the art of the possible, the founder of a
political system
belongs to those who are said to please the gods only
because they wish
for and demand the impossible. They will always have to
renounce
contemporary fame; but if their ideas be immortal, posterity will
grant
them its acknowledgment.
Within long spans of human progress it
may occasionally happen that the
practical politician and political
philosopher are one. The more
intimate this union is, the greater will be the
obstacles which the
activity of the politician will have to encounter. Such a
man does not
labour for the purpose of satisfying demands that are obvious to
every
philistine, but he reaches out towards ends which can be understood
only
by the few. His life is torn asunder by hatred and love. The protest of
his contemporaries, who do not understand the man, is in conflict with
the
recognition of posterity, for whom he also works.
For the greater the
work which a man does for the future, the less will
he be appreciated by his
contemporaries. His struggle will accordingly
be all the more severe, and his
success all the rarer. When, in the
course of centuries, such a man appears
who is blessed with success
then, towards the end of his days, he may have a
faint prevision of his
future fame. But such great men are only the Marathon
runners of
history. The laurels of contemporary fame are only for the brow of
the
dying hero.
The great protagonists are those who fight for their
ideas and ideals
despite the fact that they receive no recognition at the
hands of their
contemporaries. They are the men whose memories will be
enshrined in the
hearts of the future generations. It seems then as if each
individual
felt it his duty to make retroactive atonement for the wrong which
great
men have suffered at the hands of their contemporaries. Their lives and
their work are then studied with touching and grateful admiration.
Especially
in dark days of distress, such men have the power of healing
broken hearts
and elevating the despairing spirit of a people.
To this group belong not
only the genuinely great statesmen but all the
great reformers as well.
Beside Frederick the Great we have such men as
Martin Luther and Richard
Wagner.
When I heard Gottfried Feder's first lecture on 'The Abolition of
the
Interest-Servitude', I understood immediately that here was a truth of
transcendental importance for the future of the German people. The
absolute
separation of stock-exchange capital from the economic life of
the nation
would make it possible to oppose the process of
internationalization in
German business without at the same time
attacking capital as such, for to do
this would jeopardize the
foundations of our national independence. I clearly
saw what was
developing in Germany and I realized then that the stiffest
fight we
would have to wage would not be against the enemy nations but
against
international capital. In Feder's speech I found an effective
rallying-cry for our coming struggle.
Here, again, later events proved
how correct was the impression we then
had. The fools among our bourgeois
politicians do not mock at us on this
point any more; for even those
politicians now see--if they would speak
the truth--that international
stock-exchange capital was not only the
chief instigating factor in bringing
on the War but that now when the
War is over it turns the peace into a hell.
The struggle against international finance capital and loan-capital has
become one of the most important points in the programme on which the
German
nation has based its fight for economic freedom and independence.
Regarding the objections raised by so-called practical people, the
following
answer must suffice: All apprehensions concerning the fearful
economic
consequences that would follow the abolition of the servitude
that results
from interest-capital are ill-timed; for, in the first
place, the economic
principles hitherto followed have proved quite fatal
to the interests of the
German people. The attitude adopted when the
question of maintaining our
national existence arose vividly recalls
similar advice once given by
experts--the Bavarian Medical College, for
example--on the question of
introducing railroads. The fears expressed
by that august body of experts
were not realized. Those who travelled in
the coaches of the new
'Steam-horse' did not suffer from vertigo. Those
who looked on did not become
ill and the hoardings which had been
erected to conceal the new invention
were eventually taken down. Only
those blinds which obscure the vision of the
would-be 'experts', have
remained. And that will be always so.
In the
second place, the following must be borne in mind: Any idea may
be a source
of danger if it be looked upon as an end in itself, when
really it is only
the means to an end. For me and for all genuine
National-Socialists there is
only one doctrine. PEOPLE AND FATHERLAND.
What we have to fight for is
the necessary security for the existence
and increase of our race and people,
the subsistence of its children and
the maintenance of our racial stock
unmixed, the freedom and
independence of the Fatherland; so that our people
may be enabled to
fulfil the mission assigned to it by the Creator.
All ideas and ideals, all teaching and all knowledge, must serve these
ends.
It is from this standpoint that everything must be examined and
turned to
practical uses or else discarded. Thus a theory can never
become a mere dead
dogma since everything will have to serve the
practical ends of everyday
life.
Thus the judgment arrived at by Gottfried Feder determined me to
make a
fundamental study of a question with which I had hitherto not been
very
familiar.
I began to study again and thus it was that I first
came to understand
perfectly what was the substance and purpose of the
life-work of the
Jew, Karl Marx. His CAPITAL became intelligible to me now
for the first
time. And in the light of it I now exactly understood the fight
of the
Social-Democrats against national economics, a fight which was to
prepare the ground for the hegemony of a real international and
stock-exchange capital.
In another direction also this course of lectures
had important
consequences for me.
One day I put my name down as
wishing to take part in the discussion.
Another of the participants thought
that he would break a lance for the
Jews and entered into a lengthy defence
of them. This aroused my
opposition. An overwhelming number of those who
attended the lecture
course supported my views. The consequence of it all was
that, a few
days later, I was assigned to a regiment then stationed at Munich
and
given a position there as 'instruction officer'.
At that time the
spirit of discipline was rather weak among those
troops. It was still
suffering from the after-effects of the period when
the Soldiers' Councils
were in control. Only gradually and carefully
could a new spirit of military
discipline and obedience be introduced in
place of 'voluntary obedience', a
term which had been used to express
the ideal of military discipline under
Kurt Eisner's higgledy-piggledy
regime. The soldiers had to be taught to
think and feel in a national
and patriotic way. In these two directions lay
my future line of action.
I took up my work with the greatest delight and
devotion. Here I was
presented with an opportunity of speaking before quite a
large audience.
I was now able to confirm what I had hitherto merely felt,
namely, that
I had a talent for public speaking. My voice had become so much
better
that I could be well understood, at least in all parts of the small
hall
where the soldiers assembled.
No task could have been more
pleasing to me than this one; for now,
before being demobilized, I was in a
position to render useful service
to an institution which had been infinitely
dear to my heart: namely,
the army.
I am able to state that my talks
were successful. During the course of
my lectures I have led back hundreds
and even thousands of my fellow
countrymen to their people and their
fatherland. I 'nationalized' these
troops and by so doing I helped to restore
general discipline.
Here again I made the acquaintance of several
comrades whose thought ran
along the same lines as my own and who later
became members of the first
group out of which the new movement developed.
CHAPTER IX
THE GERMAN LABOUR PARTY
One
day I received an order from my superiors to investigate the nature
of an
association which was apparently political. It called itself 'The
German
Labour Party' and was soon to hold a meeting at which Gottfried
Feder would
speak. I was ordered to attend this meeting and report on
the situation.
The spirit of curiosity in which the army authorities then regarded
political parties can be very well understood. The Revolution had
granted the
soldiers the right to take an active part in politics and it
was particularly
those with the smallest experience who had availed
themselves of this right.
But not until the Centre and the
Social-Democratic parties were reluctantly
forced to recognize that the
sympathies of the soldiers had turned away from
the revolutionary
parties towards the national movement and the national
reawakening, did
they feel obliged to withdraw from the army the right to
vote and to
forbid it all political activity.
The fact that the Centre
and Marxism had adopted this policy was
instructive, because if they had not
thus curtailed the 'rights of the
citizen'--as they described the political
rights of the soldiers after
the Revolution--the government which had been
established in November
1918 would have been overthrown within a few years
and the dishonour and
disgrace of the nation would not have been further
prolonged. At that
time the soldiers were on the point of taking the best way
to rid the
nation of the vampires and valets who served the cause of the
Entente in
the interior of the country. But the fact that the so-called
'national'
parties voted enthusiastically for the doctrinaire policy of the
criminals who organized the Revolution in November (1918) helped also to
render the army ineffective as an instrument of national restoration and
thus
showed once again where men might be led by the purely abstract
notions
accepted by these most gullible people.
The minds of the bourgeois middle
classes had become so fossilized that
they sincerely believed the army could
once again become what it had
previously been, namely, a rampart of German
valour; while the Centre
Party and the Marxists intended only to extract the
poisonous tooth of
nationalism, without which an army must always remain just
a police
force but can never be in the position of a military organization
capable of fighting against the outside enemy. This truth was
sufficiently
proved by subsequent events.
Or did our 'national' politicians believe,
after all, that the
development of our army could be other than national?
This belief might
be possible and could be explained by the fact that during
the War they
were not soldiers but merely talkers. In other words, they were
parliamentarians, and, as such, they did not have the slightest idea of
what
was passing in the hearts of those men who remembered the greatness
of their
own past and also remembered that they had once been the first
soldiers in
the world.
I decided to attend the meeting of this Party, which had
hitherto been
entirely unknown to me. When I arrived that evening in the
guest room of
the former Sternecker Brewery--which has now become a place of
historical significance for us--I found approximately 20-25 persons
present,
most of them belonging to the lower classes.
The theme of Feder's lecture
was already familiar to me; for I had heard
it in the lecture course I have
spoken of. Therefore, I could
concentrate my attention on studying the
society itself.
The impression it made upon me was neither good nor bad.
I felt that
here was just another one of these many new societies which were
being
formed at that time. In those days everybody felt called upon to found
a
new Party whenever he felt displeased with the course of events and had
lost confidence in all the parties already existing. Thus it was that
new
associations sprouted up all round, to disappear just as quickly,
without
exercising any effect or making any noise whatsoever. Generally
speaking, the
founders of such associations did not have the slightest
idea of what it
means to bring together a number of people for the
foundations of a party or
a movement. Therefore these associations
disappeared because of their woeful
lack of anything like an adequate
grasp of the necessities of the situation.
My opinion of the 'German Labour Party' was not very different after I
had listened to their proceedings for about two hours. I was glad when
Feder
finally came to a close. I had observed enough and was just about
to leave
when it was announced that anybody who wished was free to open
a discussion.
Thereupon, I decided to remain. But the discussion seemed
to proceed without
anything of vital importance being mentioned, when
suddenly a 'professor'
commenced to speak. He opened by throwing doubt
on the accuracy of what Feder
had said, and then. after Feder had
replied very effectively, the professor
suddenly took up his position on
what he called 'the basis of facts,' but
before this he recommended the
young party most urgently to introduce the
secession of Bavaria from
Prussia as one of the leading proposals in its
programme. In the most
self-assured way, this man kept on insisting that
German-Austria would
join Bavaria and that the peace would then function much
better. He made
other similarly extravagant statements. At this juncture I
felt bound to
ask for permission to speak and to tell the learned gentleman
what I
thought. The result was that the honourable gentleman who had last
spoken slipped out of his place, like a whipped cur, without uttering a
sound. While I was speaking the audience listened with an expression of
surprise on their faces. When I was just about to say good-night to the
assembly and to leave, a man came after me quickly and introduced
himself. I
did not grasp the name correctly; but he placed a little book
in my hand,
which was obviously a political pamphlet, and asked me very
earnestly to read
it.
I was quite pleased; because in this way, I could come to know about
this association without having to attend its tiresome meetings.
Moreover,
this man, who had the appearance of a workman, made a good
impression on me.
Thereupon, I left the hall.
At that time I was living in one of the
barracks of the 2nd Infantry
Regiment. I had a little room which still bore
the unmistakable traces
of the Revolution. During the day I was mostly out,
at the quarters of
Light Infantry No. 41 or else attending meetings or
lectures, held at
some other branch of the army. I spent only the night at
the quarters
where I lodged. Since I usually woke up about five o'clock every
morning
I got into the habit of amusing myself with watching little mice
which
played around in my small room. I used to place a few pieces of hard
bread or crust on the floor and watch the funny little beasts playing
around
and enjoying themselves with these delicacies. I had suffered so
many
privations in my own life that I well knew what hunger was and
could only too
well picture to myself the pleasure these little
creatures were experiencing.
So on the morning after the meeting I have mentioned, it happened that
about five o'clock I lay fully awake in bed, watching the mice playing
and
vying with each other. As I was not able to go to sleep again, I
suddenly
remembered the pamphlet that one of the workers had given me at
the meeting.
It was a small pamphlet of which this worker was the
author. In his little
book he described how his mind had thrown off the
shackles of the Marxist and
trades-union phraseology, and that he had
come back to the nationalist
ideals. That was the reason why he had
entitled his little book: "My
Political Awakening". The pamphlet secured
my attention the moment I began to
read, and I read it with interest to
the end. The process here described was
similar to that which I had
experienced in my own case ten years previously.
Unconsciously my own
experiences began to stir again in my mind. During that
day my thoughts
returned several times to what I had read; but I finally
decided to give
the matter no further attention. A week or so later, however,
I received
a postcard which informed me, to my astonishment, that I had been
admitted into the German Labour Party. I was asked to answer this
communication and to attend a meeting of the Party Committee on
Wednesday
next.
This manner of getting members rather amazed me, and I did not know
whether to be angry or laugh at it. Hitherto I had not any idea of
entering a
party already in existence but wanted to found one of my own.
Such an
invitation as I now had received I looked upon as entirely out
of the
question for me.
I was about to send a written reply when my curiosity
got the better of
me, and I decided to attend the gathering at the date
assigned, so that
I might expound my principles to these gentlemen in person.
Wednesday came. The tavern in which the meeting was to take place was
the
'Alte Rosenbad' in the Herrnstrasse, into which apparently only an
occasional
guest wandered. This was not very surprising in the year
1919, when the bills
of fare even at the larger restaurants were only
very modest and scanty in
their pretensions and thus not very attractive
to clients. But I had never
before heard of this restaurant.
I went through the badly-lighted
guest-room, where not a single guest
was to be seen, and searched for the
door which led to the side room;
and there I was face-to-face with the
'Congress'. Under the dim light
shed by a grimy gas-lamp I could see four
young people sitting around a
table, one of them the author of the pamphlet.
He greeted me cordially
and welcomed me as a new member of the German Labour
Party.
I was taken somewhat aback on being informed that actually the
National
President of the Party had not yet come; so I decided that I would
keep
back my own exposition for the time being. Finally the President
appeared. He was the man who had been chairman of the meeting held in
the
Sternecker Brewery, when Feder spoke.
My curiosity was stimulated anew
and I sat waiting for what was going to
happen. Now I got at least as far as
learning the names of the gentlemen
who had been parties to the whole affair.
The REICH National President
of the Association was a certain Herr Harrer and
the President for the
Munich district was Anton Drexler.
The minutes
of the previous meeting were read out and a vote of
confidence in the
secretary was passed. Then came the treasurer's
report. The Society possessed
a total fund of seven marks and fifty
pfennigs (a sum corresponding to 7s.
6d. in English money at par),
whereupon the treasurer was assured that he had
the confidence of the
members. This was now inserted in the minutes. Then
letters of reply
which had been written by the Chairman were read; first, to
a letter
received from Kiel, then to one from Düsseldorf and finally to one
from
Berlin. All three replies received the approval of all present. Then the
incoming letters were read--one from Berlin, one from Düsseldorf and one
from
Kiel. The reception of these letters seemed to cause great
satisfaction. This
increasing bulk of correspondence was taken as the
best and most obvious sign
of the growing importance of the German
Labour Party. And then? Well, there
followed a long discussion of the
replies which would be given to these
newly-received letters.
It was all very awful. This was the worst kind of
parish-pump clubbism.
And was I supposed to become a member of such a club?
The question of new members was next discussed--that is to say, the
question of catching myself in the trap.
I now began to ask questions.
But I found that, apart from a few general
principles, there was nothing--no
programme, no pamphlet, nothing at all
in print, no card of membership, not
even a party stamp, nothing but
obvious good faith and good intentions.
I no longer felt inclined to laugh; for what else was all this but a
typical sign of the most complete perplexity and deepest despair in
regard to
all political parties, their programmes and views and
activities? The feeling
which had induced those few young people to join
in what seemed such a
ridiculous enterprise was nothing but the call of
the inner voice which told
them--though more intuitively than
consciously--that the whole party system
as it had hitherto existed was
not the kind of force that could restore the
German nation or repair the
damages that had been done to the German people
by those who hitherto
controlled the internal affairs of the nation. I
quickly read through
the list of principles that formed the platform of the
party. These
principles were stated on typewritten sheets. Here again I found
evidence of the spirit of longing and searching, but no sign whatever of
a
knowledge of the conflict that had to be fought. I myself had
experienced the
feelings which inspired those people. It was the longing
for a movement which
should be more than a party, in the hitherto
accepted meaning of that word.
When I returned to my room in the barracks that evening I had formed a
definite opinion on this association and I was facing the most difficult
problem of my life. Should I join this party or refuse?
From the side of
the intellect alone, every consideration urged me to
refuse; but my feelings
troubled me. The more I tried to prove to myself
how senseless this club was,
on the whole, the more did my feelings
incline me to favour it. During the
following days I was restless.
I began to consider all the pros and cons.
I had long ago decided to
take an active part in politics. The fact that I
could do so only
through a new movement was quite clear to me; but I had
hitherto lacked
the impulse to take concrete action. I am not one of those
people who
will begin something to-day and just give it up the next day for
the
sake of something new. That was the main reason which made it so
difficult for me to decide in joining something newly founded; for this
must
become the real fulfilment of everything I dreamt, or else it had
better not
be started at all. I knew that such a decision should bind me
for ever and
that there could be no turning back. For me there could be
no idle dallying
but only a cause to be championed ardently. I had
already an instinctive
feeling against people who took up everything,
but never carried anything
through to the end. I loathed these
Jacks-of-all-Trades, and considered the
activities of such people to be
worse than if they were to remain entirely
quiescent.
Fate herself now seemed to supply the finger-post that pointed
out the
way. I should never have entered one of the big parties already in
existence and shall explain my reasons for this later on. This ludicrous
little formation, with its handful of members, seemed to have the unique
advantage of not yet being fossilized into an 'organization' and still
offered a chance for real personal activity on the part of the
individual.
Here it might still be possible to do some effective work;
and, as the
movement was still small, one could all the easier give it
the required
shape. Here it was still possible to determine the
character of the movement,
the aims to be achieved and the road to be
taken, which would have been
impossible in the case of the big parties
already existing.
The longer
I reflected on the problem, the more my opinion developed
that just such a
small movement would best serve as an instrument to
prepare the way for the
national resurgence, but that this could never
be done by the political
parliamentary parties which were too firmly
attached to obsolete ideas or had
an interest in supporting the new
regime. What had to be proclaimed here was
a new WELTANSCHAUUNG and not
a new election cry.
It was, however,
infinitely difficult to decide on putting the intention
into practice. What
were the qualifications which I could bring to the
accomplishment of such a
task?
The fact that I was poor and without resources could, in my
opinion, be
the easiest to bear. But the fact that I was utterly unknown
raised a
more difficult problem. I was only one of the millions which Chance
allows to exist or cease to exist, whom even their next-door neighbours
will
not consent to know. Another difficulty arose from the fact that I
had not
gone through the regular school curriculum.
The so-called 'intellectuals'
still look down with infinite
superciliousness on anyone who has not been
through the prescribed
schools and allowed them to pump the necessary
knowledge into him. The
question of what a man can do is never asked but
rather, what has he
learned? 'Educated' people look upon any imbecile who is
plastered with
a number of academic certificates as superior to the ablest
young fellow
who lacks these precious documents. I could therefore easily
imagine how
this 'educated' world would receive me and I was wrong only in so
far as
I then believed men to be for the most part better than they proved to
be in the cold light of reality. Because of their being as they are, the
few
exceptions stand out all the more conspicuously. I learned more and
more to
distinguish between those who will always be at school and those
who will one
day come to know something in reality.
After two days of careful brooding
and reflection I became convinced
that I must take the contemplated step.
It was the most fateful decision of my life. No retreat was possible.
Thus I declared myself ready to accept the membership tendered me by the
German Labour Party and received a provisional certificate of
membership. I
was numbered SEVEN.
CHAPTER X
WHY THE SECOND
REICH COLLAPSED
The depth of a fall is always measured by the
difference between the
level of the original position from which a body has
fallen and that in
which it is now found. The same holds good for Nations and
States. The
matter of greatest importance here is the height of the original
level,
or rather the greatest height that had been attained before the
descent
began.
For only the profound decline or collapse of that which
was capable of
reaching extraordinary heights can make a striking impression
on the eye
of the beholder. The collapse of the Second REICH was all the more
bewildering for those who could ponder over it and feel the effect of it
in
their hearts, because the REICH had fallen from a height which can
hardly be
imagined in these days of misery and humiliation.
The Second REICH was
founded in circumstances of such dazzling splendour
that the whole nation had
become entranced and exalted by it. Following
an unparalleled series of
victories, that Empire was handed over as the
guerdon of immortal heroism to
the children and grandchildren of the
heroes. Whether they were fully
conscious of it or not does not matter;
anyhow, the Germans felt that this
Empire had not been brought into
existence by a series of able political
negotiations through
parliamentary channels, but that it was different from
political
institutions founded elsewhere by reason of the nobler
circumstances
that had accompanied its establishment. When its foundations
were laid
the accompanying music was not the chatter of parliamentary debates
but
the thunder and boom of war along the battle front that encircled Paris.
It was thus that an act of statesmanship was accomplished whereby the
Germans, princes as well as people, established the future REICH and
restored
the symbol of the Imperial Crown. Bismarck's State was not
founded on treason
and assassination by deserters and shirkers but by
the regiments that had
fought at the front. This unique birth and
baptism of fire sufficed of
themselves to surround the Second Empire
with an aureole of historical
splendour such as few of the older States
could lay claim to.
And what
an ascension then began! A position of independence in regard
to the outside
world guaranteed the means of livelihood at home. The
nation increased in
numbers and in worldly wealth. The honour of the
State and therewith the
honour of the people as a whole were secured and
protected by an army which
was the most striking witness of the
difference between this new REICH and
the old German Confederation.
But the downfall of the Second Empire and
the German people has been so
profound that they all seem to have been struck
dumbfounded and rendered
incapable of feeling the significance of this
downfall or reflecting on
it. It seems as if people were utterly unable to
picture in their minds
the heights to which the Empire formerly attained, so
visionary and
unreal appears the greatness and splendour of those days in
contrast to
the misery of the present. Bearing this in mind we can understand
why
and how people become so dazed when they try to look back to the sublime
past that they forget to look for the symptoms of the great collapse
which
must certainly have been present in some form or other. Naturally
this
applies only to those for whom Germany was more than merely a place
of abode
and a source of livelihood. These are the only people who have
been able to
feel the present conditions as really catastrophic, whereas
others have
considered these conditions as the fulfilment of what they
had looked forward
to and hitherto silently wished.
The symptoms of future collapse were
definitely to be perceived in those
earlier days, although very few made any
attempt to draw a practical
lesson from their significance. But this is now a
greater necessity than
it ever was before. For just as bodily ailments can be
cured only when
their origin has been diagnosed, so also political disease
can be
treated only when it has been diagnosed. It is obvious of course that
the external symptoms of any disease can be more readily detected than
its
internal causes, for these symptoms strike the eye more easily. This
is also
the reason why so many people recognize only external effects
and mistake
them for causes. Indeed they will sometimes try to deny the
existence of such
causes. And that is why the majority of people among
us recognize the German
collapse only in the prevailing economic
distress and the results that have
followed therefrom. Almost everyone
has to carry his share of this burden,
and that is why each one looks on
the economic catastrophe as the cause of
the present deplorable state of
affairs. The broad masses of the people see
little of the cultural,
political, and moral background of this collapse.
Many of them
completely lack both the necessary feeling and powers of
understanding
for it.
That the masses of the people should thus
estimate the causes of
Germany's downfall is quite understandable. But the
fact that
intelligent sections of the community regard the German collapse
primarily as an economic catastrophe, and consequently think that a cure
for
it may be found in an economic solution, seems to me to be the
reason why
hitherto no improvement has been brought about. No
improvement can be brought
about until it be understood that economics
play only a second or third role,
while the main part is played by
political, moral and racial factors. Only
when this is understood will
it be possible to understand the causes of the
present evil and
consequently to find the ways and means of remedying them.
Therefore the question of why Germany really collapsed is one of the
most
urgent significance, especially for a political movement which aims
at
overcoming this disaster.
In scrutinizing the past with a view to
discovering the causes of the
German break-up, it is necessary to be careful
lest we may be unduly
impressed by external results that readily strike the
eye and thus
ignore the less manifest causes of these results.
The
most facile, and therefore the most generally accepted, way of
accounting for
the present misfortune is to say that it is the result of
a lost war, and
that this is the real cause of the present misfortune.
Probably there are
many who honestly believe in this absurd explanation
but there are many more
in whose mouths it is a deliberate and conscious
falsehood. This applies to
all those who are now feeding at the
Government troughs. For the prophets of
the Revolution again and again
declared to the people that it would be
immaterial to the great masses
what the result of the War might be. On the
contrary, they solemnly
assured the public that it was High Finance which was
principally
interested in a victorious outcome of this gigantic struggle
among the
nations but that the German people and the German workers had no
interest whatsoever in such an outcome. Indeed the apostles of world
conciliation habitually asserted that, far from any German downfall, the
opposite was bound to take place--namely, the resurgence of the German
people--once 'militarism' had been crushed. Did not these self-same
circles
sing the praises of the Entente and did they not also lay the
whole blame for
the sanguinary struggle on the shoulders of Germany?
Without this
explanation, would they have been able to put forward the
theory that a
military defeat would have no political consequences for
the German people?
Was not the whole Revolution dressed up in gala
colours as blocking the
victorious advance of the German banners and
that thus the German people
would be assured its liberty both at home
and abroad?
Is not that so,
you miserable, lying rascals?
That kind of impudence which is typical of
the Jews was necessary in
order to proclaim the defeat of the army as the
cause of the German
collapse. Indeed the Berlin VORWÄRTS, that organ and
mouthpiece of
sedition then wrote on this occasion that the German nation
should not
be permitted to bring home its banners triumphantly.
And
yet they attribute our collapse to the military defeat.
Of course it
would be out of the question to enter into an argument with
these liars who
deny at one moment what they said the moment before. I
should waste no
further words on them were it not for the fact that
there are many
thoughtless people who repeat all this in parrot fashion,
without being
necessarily inspired by any evil motives. But the
observations I am making
here are also meant for our fighting followers,
seeing that nowadays one's
spoken words are often forgotten and twisted
in their meaning.
The
assertion that the loss of the War was the cause of the German
collapse can
best be answered as follows:
It is admittedly a fact that the loss of the
War was of tragic
importance for the future of our country. But that loss was
not in
itself a cause. It was rather the consequence of other causes. That a
disastrous ending to this life-or-death conflict must have involved
catastrophes in its train was clearly seen by everyone of insight who
could
think in a straightforward manner. But unfortunately there were
also people
whose powers of understanding seemed to fail them at that
critical moment.
And there were other people who had first questioned
that truth and then
altogether denied it. And there were people who,
after their secret desire
had been fulfilled, were suddenly faced with
the subsequent facts that
resulted from their own collaboration. Such
people are responsible for the
collapse, and not the lost war, though
they now want to attribute everything
to this. As a matter of fact the
loss of the War was a result of their
activities and not the result of
bad leadership as they now would like to
maintain. Our enemies were not
cowards. They also know how to die. From the
very first day of the War
they outnumbered the German Army, and the arsenals
and armament
factories of the whole world were at their disposal for the
replenishment of military equipment. Indeed it is universally admitted
that
the German victories, which had been steadily won during four years
of
warfare against the whole world, were due to superior leadership,
apart of
course from the heroism of the troops. And the organization was
solely due to
the German military leadership. That organization and
leadership of the
German Army was the most mighty thing that the world
has ever seen. Any
shortcomings which became evident were humanly
unavoidable. The collapse of
that army was not the cause of our present
distress. It was itself the
consequence of other faults. But this
consequence in its turn ushered in a
further collapse, which was more
visible. That such was actually the case can
be shown as follows:
Must a military defeat necessarily lead to such a
complete overthrow of
the State and Nation? Whenever has this been the result
of an unlucky
war? As a matter of fact, are nations ever ruined by a lost war
and by
that alone? The answer to this question can be briefly stated by
referring to the fact that military defeats are the result of internal
decay,
cowardice, want of character, and are a retribution for such
things. If such
were not the causes then a military defeat would lead to
a national
resurgence and bring the nation to a higher pitch of effort.
A military
defeat is not the tombstone of national life. History affords
innumerable
examples to confirm the truth of that statement.
Unfortunately Germany's
military overthrow was not an undeserved
catastrophe, but a well-merited
punishment which was in the nature of an
eternal retribution. This defeat was
more than deserved by us; for it
represented the greatest external phenomenon
of decomposition among a
series of internal phenomena, which, although they
were visible, were
not recognized by the majority of the people, who follow
the tactics of
the ostrich and see only what they want to see.
Let us
examine the symptoms that were evident in Germany at the time
that the German
people accepted this defeat. Is it not true that in
several circles the
misfortunes of the Fatherland were even joyfully
welcomed in the most
shameful manner? Who could act in such a way
without thereby meriting
vengeance for his attitude? Were there not
people who even went further and
boasted that they had gone to the
extent of weakening the front and causing a
collapse? Therefore it was
not the enemy who brought this disgrace upon our
shoulders but rather
our own countrymen. If they suffered misfortune for it
afterwards, was
that misfortune undeserved? Was there ever a case in history
where a
people declared itself guilty of a war, and that even against its
better
conscience and its better knowledge?
No, and again no. In the
manner in which the German nation reacted to
its defeat we can see that the
real cause of our collapse must be looked
for elsewhere and not in the purely
military loss of a few positions or
the failure of an offensive. For if the
front as such had given way and
thus brought about a national disaster, then
the German nation would
have accepted the defeat in quite another spirit.
They would have borne
the subsequent misfortune with clenched teeth, or they
would have been
overwhelmed by sorrow. Regret and fury would have filled
their hearts
against an enemy into whose hands victory had been given by a
chance
event or the decree of Fate; and in that case the nation, following
the
example of the Roman Senate (Note 14), would have faced the defeated
legions on their return and expressed their thanks for the sacrifices that
had been made and would have requested them not to lose faith in the
Empire.
Even the capitulation would have been signed under the sway of
calm reason,
while the heart would have beaten in the hope of the coming
REVANCHE.
[Note 14. Probably the author has two separate incidents in mind. The
first
happened in 390 B.C., when, as the victorious Gauls descended on
Rome, the
Senators ordered their ivory chairs to be placed in the Forum
before the
Temples ofthe Gods. There, clad in their robes of state, they
awaited the
invader, hoping to save the city by sacrificing themselves.
This noble
gesture failed for the time being; but it had an inspiring
influence on
subsequent generations. The second incident, which has more
historical
authenticity, occurred after the Roman defeat at Cannae in 216
B.C. On that
occasion Varro, the Roman commander, who, though in great
part responsible
for the disaster, made an effort to carry on the
struggle, was, on his return
to Rome, met by the citizens of all ranks
and publicly thanked because he had
not despaired of the Republic. The
consequence was that the Republic refused
to make peace with the
victorious Carthagenians.]
That is the
reception that would have been given to a military defeat
which had to be
attributed only to the adverse decree of Fortune. There
would have been
neither joy-making nor dancing. Cowardice would not have
been boasted of, and
the defeat would not have been honoured. On
returning from the Front, the
troops would not have been mocked at, and
the colours would not have been
dragged in the dust. But above all, that
disgraceful state of affairs could
never have arisen which induced a
British officer, Colonel Repington, to
declare with scorn: Every third
German is a traitor! No, in such a case this
plague would never have
assumed the proportions of a veritable flood which,
for the past five
years, has smothered every vestige of respect for the
German nation in
the outside world.
This shows only too clearly how
false it is to say that the loss of the
War was the cause of the German
break-up. No. The military defeat was
itself but the consequence of a whole
series of morbid symptoms and
their causes which had become active in the
German nation before the War
broke out. The War was the first catastrophal
consequence, visible to
all, of how traditions and national morale had been
poisoned and how the
instinct of self-preservation had degenerated. These
were the
preliminary causes which for many years had been undermining the
foundations of the nation and the Empire.
But it remained for the Jews,
with their unqualified capacity for
falsehood, and their fighting comrades,
the Marxists, to impute
responsibility for the downfall precisely to the man
who alone had shown
a superhuman will and energy in his effort to prevent the
catastrophe
which he had foreseen and to save the nation from that hour of
complete
overthrow and shame. By placing responsibility for the loss of the
world
war on the shoulders of Ludendorff they took away the weapon of moral
right from the only adversary dangerous enough to be likely to succeed
in
bringing the betrayers of the Fatherland to Justice. All this was
inspired by
the principle--which is quite true in itself--that in the
big lie there is
always a certain force of credibility; because the
broad masses of a nation
are always more easily corrupted in the deeper
strata of their emotional
nature than consciously or voluntarily; and
thus in the primitive simplicity
of their minds they more readily fall
victims to the big lie than the small
lie, since they themselves often
tell small lies in little matters but would
be ashamed to resort to
large-scale falsehoods. It would never come into
their heads to
fabricate colossal untruths, and they would not believe that
others
could have the impudence to distort the truth so infamously. Even
though
the facts which prove this to be so may be brought clearly to their
minds, they will still doubt and waver and will continue to think that
there
may be some other explanation. For the grossly impudent lie always
leaves
traces behind it, even after it has been nailed down, a fact
which is known
to all expert liars in this world and to all who conspire
together in the art
of lying. These people know only too well how to use
falsehood for the basest
purposes.
From time immemorial. however, the Jews have known better than
any
others how falsehood and calumny can be exploited. Is not their very
existence founded on one great lie, namely, that they are a religious
community, whereas in reality they are a race? And what a race! One of
the
greatest thinkers that mankind has produced has branded the Jews for
all time
with a statement which is profoundly and exactly true. He
(Schopenhauer)
called the Jew "The Great Master of Lies". Those who do
not realize the truth
of that statement, or do not wish to believe it,
will never be able to lend a
hand in helping Truth to prevail.
We may regard it as a great stroke of
fortune for the German nation that
its period of lingering suffering was so
suddenly curtailed and
transformed into such a terrible catastrophe. For if
things had gone on
as they were the nation would have more slowly, but more
surely, gone to
ruin. The disease would have become chronic; whereas, in the
acute form
of the disaster, it at least showed itself clearly to the eyes of
a
considerable number of observers. It was not by accident that man
conquered the black plague more easily than he conquered tuberculosis.
The
first appeared in terrifying waves of death that shook the whole of
mankind,
the other advances insidiously; the first induces terror, the
other gradual
indifference. The result is, however, that men opposed the
first with all the
energy they were capable of, whilst they try to
arrest tuberculosis by feeble
means. Thus man has mastered the black
plague, while tuberculosis still gets
the better of him.
The same applies to diseases in nations. So long as
these diseases are
not of a catastrophic character, the population will
slowly accustom
itself to them and later succumb. It is then a stroke of
luck--although
a bitter one--when Fate decides to interfere in this slow
process of
decay and suddenly brings the victim face to face with the final
stage
of the disease. More often than not the result of a catastrophe is that
a cure is at once undertaken and carried through with rigid
determination.
But even in such a case the essential preliminary condition is always
the
recognition of the internal causes which have given rise to the
disease in
question.
The important question here is the differentiation of the root
causes
from the circumstances developing out of them. This becomes all the
more
difficult the longer the germs of disease remain in the national body
and the longer they are allowed to become an integral part of that body.
It
may easily happen that, as time goes on, it will become so difficult
to
recognize certain definite virulent poisons as such that they are
accepted as
belonging to the national being; or they are merely
tolerated as a necessary
evil, so that drastic attempts to locate those
alien germs are not held to be
necessary.
During the long period of peace prior to the last war certain
evils were
apparent here and there although, with one or two exceptions, very
little effort was made to discover their origin. Here again these
exceptions
were first and foremost those phenomena in the economic life
of the nation
which were more apparent to the individual than the evil
conditions existing
in a good many other spheres.
There were many signs of decay which ought
to have been given serious
thought. As far as economics were concerned, the
following may be
said:--
The amazing increase of population in Germany
before the war brought the
question of providing daily bread into a more and
more prominent
position in all spheres of political and economic thought and
action.
But unfortunately those responsible could not make up their minds to
arrive at the only correct solution and preferred to reach their
objective by
cheaper methods. Repudiation of the idea of acquiring fresh
territory and the
substitution for it of the mad desire for the
commercial conquest of the
world was bound to lead eventually to
unlimited and injurious
industrialization.
The first and most fatal result brought about in this
way was the
weakening of the agricultural classes, whose decline was
proportionate
to the increase in the proletariat of the urban areas, until
finally the
equilibrium was completely upset.
The big barrier dividing
rich and poor now became apparent. Luxury and
poverty lived so close to each
other that the consequences were bound to
be deplorable. Want and frequent
unemployment began to play havoc with
the people and left discontent and
embitterment behind them. The result
of this was to divide the population
into political classes. Discontent
increased in spite of commercial
prosperity. Matters finally reached
that stage which brought about the
general conviction that 'things
cannot go on as they are', although no one
seemed able to visualize what
was really going to happen.
These were
typical and visible signs of the depths which the prevailing
discontent had
reached. Far worse than these, however, were other
consequences which became
apparent as a result of the industrialization
of the nation.
In
proportion to the extent that commerce assumed definite control of
the State,
money became more and more of a God whom all had to serve and
bow down to.
Heavenly Gods became more and more old-fashioned and were
laid away in the
corners to make room for the worship of mammon. And
thus began a period of
utter degeneration which became specially
pernicious because it set in at a
time when the nation was more than
ever in need of an exalted idea, for a
critical hour was threatening.
Germany should have been prepared to protect
with the sword her efforts
to win her own daily bread in a peaceful way.
Unfortunately, the predominance of money received support and sanction
in
the very quarter which ought to have been opposed to it. His Majesty,
the
Kaiser, made a mistake when he raised representatives of the new
finance
capital to the ranks of the nobility. Admittedly, it may be
offered as an
excuse that even Bismarck failed to realize the
threatening danger in this
respect. In practice, however, all ideal
virtues became secondary
considerations to those of money, for it was
clear that having once taken
this road, the nobility of the sword would
very soon rank second to that of
finance.
Financial operations succeed easier than war operations. Hence
it was no
longer any great attraction for a true hero or even a statesman to
be
brought into touch with the nearest Jew banker. Real merit was not
interested in receiving cheap decorations and therefore declined them
with
thanks. But from the standpoint of good breeding such a development
was
deeply regrettable. The nobility began to lose more and more of the
racial
qualities that were a condition of its very existence, with the
result that
in many cases the term 'plebeian' would have been more
appropriate.
A
serious state of economic disruption was being brought about by the
slow
elimination of the personal control of vested interests and the
gradual
transference of the whole economic structure into the hands of
joint stock
companies.
In this way labour became degraded into an object of
speculation in the
hands of unscrupulous exploiters.
The
de-personalization of property ownership increased on a vast scale.
Financial
exchange circles began to triumph and made slow but sure
progress in assuming
control of the whole of national life.
Before the War the
internationalization of the German economic structure
had already begun by
the roundabout way of share issues. It is true that
a section of the German
industrialists made a determined attempt to
avert the danger, but in the end
they gave way before the united attacks
of money-grabbing capitalism, which
was assisted in this fight by its
faithful henchmen in the Marxist movement.
The persistent war against German 'heavy industries' was the visible
start of the internationalization of German economic life as envisaged
by the
Marxists. This, however, could only be brought to a successful
conclusion by
the victory which Marxism was able to gain in the
Revolution. As I write
these words, success is attending the general
attack on the German State
Railways which are now to be turned over to
international capitalists. Thus
'International Social-Democracy' has
once again attained one of its main
objectives.
The best evidence of how far this 'commercialization' of the
German
nation was able to go can be plainly seen in the fact that when the
War
was over one of the leading captains of German industry and commerce
gave it as his opinion that commerce as such was the only force which
could
put Germany on its feet again.
This sort of nonsense was uttered just at
the time when France was
restoring public education on a humanitarian basis,
thus doing away with
the idea that national life is dependent on commerce
rather than ideal
values. The statement which Stinnes broadcasted to the
world at that
time caused incredible confusion. It was immediately taken up
and has
become the leading motto of all those humbugs and babblers--the
'statesmen' whom Fate let loose on Germany after the Revolution.
One of
the worst evidences of decadence in Germany before the War was
the ever
increasing habit of doing things by halves. This was one of the
consequences
of the insecurity that was felt all round. And it is to be
attributed also to
a certain timidity which resulted from one cause or
another. And the latter
malady was aggravated by the educational system.
German education in
pre-War times had an extraordinary number of weak
features. It was simply and
exclusively limited to the production of
pure knowledge and paid little
attention to the development of practical
ability. Still less attention was
given to the development of individual
character, in so far as this is ever
possible. And hardly any attention
at all was paid to the development of a
sense of responsibility, to
strengthening the will and the powers of
decision. The result of this
method was to produce erudite people who had a
passion for knowing
everything. Before the War we Germans were accepted and
estimated
accordingly. The German was liked because good use could be made of
him;
but there was little esteem for him personally, on account of this
weakness of character. For those who can read its significance aright,
there
is much instruction in the fact that among all nationalities
Germans were the
first to part with their national citizenship when they
found themselves in a
foreign country. And there is a world of meaning
in the saying that was then
prevalent: 'With the hat in the hand one can
go through the whole country'.
This kind of social etiquette turned out disastrous when it prescribed
the exclusive forms that had to be observed in the presence of His
Majesty.
These forms insisted that there should be no contradiction
whatsoever, but
that everything should be praised which His Majesty
condescended to like.
It was just here that the frank expression of manly dignity, and not
subservience, was most needed. Servility in the presence of monarchs may
be
good enough for the professional lackey and place-hunter, in fact for
all
those decadent beings who are more pleased to be found moving in the
high
circles of royalty than among honest citizens. These exceedingly
'humble'
creatures however, though they grovel before their lord and
bread-giver,
invariably put on airs of boundless superciliousness
towards other mortals,
which was particularly impudent when they posed
as the only people who had
the right to be called 'monarchists'. This
was a gross piece of impertinence
such as only despicable specimens
among the newly-ennobled or
yet-to-be-ennobled could be capable of.
And these have always been just
the people who have prepared the way for
the downfall of monarchy and the
monarchical principle. It could not be
otherwise. For when a man is prepared
to stand up for a cause, come what
may, he never grovels before its
representative. A man who is serious
about the maintenance and welfare of an
institution will not allow
himself to be discouraged when the representatives
of that institution
show certain faults and failings. And he certainly will
not run around
to tell the world about it, as certain false democratic
'friends' of the
monarchy have done; but he will approach His Majesty, the
bearer of the
Crown himself, to warn him of the seriousness of a situation
and
persuade the monarch to act. Furthermore, he will not take up the
standpoint that it must be left to His Majesty to act as the latter
thinks
fit, even though the course which he would take must plainly lead
to
disaster. But the man I am thinking of will deem it his duty to
protect the
monarchy against the monarch himself, no matter what
personal risk he may run
in doing so. If the worth of the monarchical
institution be dependent on the
person of the monarch himself, then it
would be the worst institution
imaginable; for only in rare cases are
kings found to be models of wisdom and
understanding, and integrity of
character, though we might like to think
otherwise. But this fact is
unpalatable to the professional knaves and
lackeys. Yet all upright men,
and they are the backbone of the nation,
repudiate the nonsensical
fiction that all monarchs are wise, etc. For such
men history is history
and truth is truth, even where monarchs are concerned.
But if a nation
should have the good luck to possess a great king or a great
man it
ought to consider itself as specially favoured above all the other
nations, and these may be thankful if an adverse fortune has not
allotted the
worst to them.
It is clear that the worth and significance of the
monarchical principle
cannot rest in the person of the monarch alone, unless
Heaven decrees
that the crown should be set on the head of a brilliant hero
like
Frederick the Great, or a sagacious person like William I. This may
happen once in several centuries, but hardly oftener than that. The
ideal of
the monarchy takes precedence of the person of the monarch,
inasmuch as the
meaning of the institution must lie in the institution
it self. Thus the
monarchy may be reckoned in the category of those
whose duty it is to serve.
He, too, is but a wheel in this machine and
as such he is obliged to do his
duty towards it. He has to adapt himself
for the fulfilment of high aims. If,
therefore, there were no
significance attached to the idea itself and
everything merely centred
around the 'sacred' person, then it would never be
possible to depose a
ruler who has shown himself to be an imbecile.
It
is essential to insist upon this truth at the present time, because
recently
those phenomena have appeared again and were in no small
measure responsible
for the collapse of the monarchy. With a certain
amount of native impudence
these persons once again talk about 'their
King'--that is to say, the man
whom they shamefully deserted a few years
ago at a most critical hour. Those
who refrain from participating in
this chorus of lies are summarily
classified as 'bad Germans'. They who
make the charge are the same class of
quitters who ran away in 1918 and
took to wearing red badges. They thought
that discretion was the better
part of valour. They were indifferent about
what happened to the Kaiser.
They camouflaged themselves as 'peaceful
citizens' but more often than
not they vanished altogether. All of a sudden
these champions of royalty
were nowhere to be found at that time.
Circumspectly, one by one, these
'servants and counsellors' of the Crown
reappeared, to resume their
lip-service to royalty but only after others had
borne the brunt of the
anti-royalist attack and suppressed the Revolution for
them. Once again
they were all there. remembering wistfully the flesh-pots of
Egypt and
almost bursting with devotion for the royal cause. This went on
until
the day came when red badges were again in the ascendant. Then this
whole ramshackle assembly of royal worshippers scuttled anew like mice
from
the cats.
If monarchs were not themselves responsible for such things one
could
not help sympathizing with them. But they must realize that with such
champions thrones can be lost but certainly never gained.
All this
devotion was a mistake and was the result of our whole system
of education,
which in this case brought about a particularly severe
retribution. Such
lamentable trumpery was kept up at the various courts
that the monarchy was
slowly becoming under mined. When finally it did
begin to totter, everything
was swept away. Naturally, grovellers and
lick-spittles are never willing to
die for their masters. That monarchs
never realize this, and almost on
principle never really take the
trouble to learn it, has always been their
undoing.
One visible result of wrong educational system was the fear of
shouldering responsibility and the resultant weakness in dealing with
obvious
vital problems of existence.
The starting point of this epidemic,
however, was in our parliamentary
institution where the shirking of
responsibility is particularly
fostered. Unfortunately the disease slowly
spread to all branches of
everyday life but particularly affected the sphere
of public affairs.
Responsibility was being shirked everywhere and this led
to insufficient
or half-hearted measures being taken, personal responsibility
for each
act being reduced to a minimum.
If we consider the attitude
of various Governments towards a whole
series of really pernicious phenomena
in public life, we shall at once
recognize the fearful significance of this
policy of half-measures and
the lack of courage to undertake
responsibilities. I shall single out
only a few from the large numbers of
instances known to me.
In journalistic circles it is a pleasing custom to
speak of the Press as
a 'Great Power' within the State. As a matter of fact
its importance is
immense. One cannot easily overestimate it, for the Press
continues the
work of education even in adult life. Generally, readers of the
Press
can be classified into three groups:
First, those who believe
everything they read;
Second, those who no longer believe anything;
Third, those who critically examine what they read and form their
judgments accordingly.
Numerically, the first group is by far the
strongest, being composed of
the broad masses of the people. Intellectually,
it forms the simplest
portion of the nation. It cannot be classified
according to occupation
but only into grades of intelligence. Under this
category come all those
who have not been born to think for themselves or who
have not learnt to
do so and who, partly through incompetence and partly
through ignorance,
believe everything that is set before them in print. To
these we must
add that type of lazy individual who, although capable of
thinking for
himself out of sheer laziness gratefully absorbs everything that
others
had thought over, modestly believing this to have been thoroughly
done.
The influence which the Press has on all these people is therefore
enormous; for after all they constitute the broad masses of a nation.
But,
somehow they are not in a position or are not willing personally to
sift what
is being served up to them; so that their whole attitude
towards daily
problems is almost solely the result of extraneous
influence. All this can be
advantageous where public enlightenment is of
a serious and truthful
character, but great harm is done when scoundrels
and liars take a hand at
this work.
The second group is numerically smaller, being partly composed
of those
who were formerly in the first group and after a series of bitter
disappointments are now prepared to believe nothing of what they see in
print. They hate all newspapers. Either they do not read them at all or
they
become exceptionally annoyed at their contents, which they hold to
be nothing
but a congeries of lies and misstatements. These people are
difficult to
handle; for they will always be sceptical of the truth.
Consequently, they
are useless for any form of positive work.
The third group is easily the
smallest, being composed of real
intellectuals whom natural aptitude and
education have taught to think
for themselves and who in all things try to
form their own judgments,
while at the same time carefully sifting what they
read. They will not
read any newspaper without using their own intelligence
to collaborate
with that of the writer and naturally this does not set
writers an easy
task. Journalists appreciate this type of reader only with a
certain
amount of reservation.
Hence the trash that newspapers are
capable of serving up is of little
danger--much less of importance--to the
members of the third group of
readers. In the majority of cases these readers
have learnt to regard
every journalist as fundamentally a rogue who sometimes
speaks the
truth. Most unfortunately, the value of these readers lies in
their
intelligence and not in their numerical strength, an unhappy state of
affairs in a period where wisdom counts for nothing and majorities for
everything. Nowadays when the voting papers of the masses are the
deciding
factor; the decision lies in the hands of the numerically
strongest group;
that is to say the first group, the crowd of simpletons
and the credulous.
It is an all-important interest of the State and a national duty to
prevent these people from falling into the hands of false, ignorant or
even
evil-minded teachers. Therefore it is the duty of the State to
supervise
their education and prevent every form of offence in this
respect. Particular
attention should be paid to the Press; for its
influence on these people is
by far the strongest and most penetrating
of all; since its effect is not
transitory but continual. Its immense
significance lies in the uniform and
persistent repetition of its
teaching. Here, if anywhere, the State should
never forget that all
means should converge towards the same end. It must not
be led astray by
the will-o'-the-wisp of so-called 'freedom of the Press', or
be talked
into neglecting its duty, and withholding from the nation that
which is
good and which does good. With ruthless determination the State must
keep control of this instrument of popular education and place it at the
service of the State and the Nation.
But what sort of pabulum was it that
the German Press served up for the
consumption of its readers in pre-War
days? Was it not the worst
virulent poison imaginable? Was not pacifism in
its worst form
inoculated into our people at a time when others were
preparing slowly
but surely to pounce upon Germany? Did not this self-same
Press of ours
in peace time already instil into the public mind a doubt as to
the
sovereign rights of the State itself, thereby already handicapping the
State in choosing its means of defence? Was it not the German Press that
under stood how to make all the nonsensical talk about 'Western
democracy'
palatable to our people, until an exuberant public was
eventually prepared to
entrust its future to the League of Nations? Was
not this Press instrumental
in bringing in a state of moral degradation
among our people? Were not morals
and public decency made to look
ridiculous and classed as out-of-date and
banal, until finally our
people also became modernized? By means of
persistent attacks, did not
the Press keep on undermining the authority of
the State, until one blow
sufficed to bring this institution tottering to the
ground? Did not the
Press oppose with all its might every movement to give
the State that
which belongs to the State, and by means of constant
criticism, injure
the reputation of the army, sabotage general conscription
and demand
refusal of military credits, etc.--until the success of this
campaign
was assured?
The function of the so-called liberal Press was
to dig the grave for the
German people and REICH. No mention need be made of
the lying Marxist
Press. To them the spreading of falsehood is as much a
vital necessity
as the mouse is to a cat. Their sole task is to break the
national
backbone of the people, thus preparing the nation to become the
slaves
of international finance and its masters, the Jews.
And what
measures did the State take to counteract this wholesale
poisoning of the
public mind? None, absolutely nothing at all. By this
policy it was hoped to
win the favour of this pest--by means of
flattery, by a recognition of the
'value' of the Press, its
'importance', its 'educative mission' and similar
nonsense. The Jews
acknowledged all this with a knowing smile and returned
thanks.
The reason for this ignominious failure on the part of the State
lay not
so much in its refusal to realize the danger as in the out-and-out
cowardly way of meeting the situation by the adoption of faulty and
ineffective measures. No one had the courage to employ any energetic and
radical methods. Everyone temporised in some way or other; and instead
of
striking at its heart, the viper was only further irritated. The
result was
that not only did everything remain as it was, but the power
of this
institution which should have been combated grew greater from
year to year.
The defence put up by the Government in those days against a mainly
Jew-controlled Press that was slowly corrupting the nation, followed no
definite line of action, it had no determination behind it and above
all, no
fixed objective whatsoever in view. This is where official
understanding of
the situation completely failed both in estimating the
importance of the
struggle, choosing the means and deciding on a
definite plan. They merely
tinkered with the problem. Occasionally, when
bitten, they imprisoned one or
another journalistic viper for a few
weeks or months, but the whole poisonous
brood was allowed to carry on
in peace.
It must be admitted that all
this was partly the result of extraordinary
crafty tactics on the part of
Jewry on the one hand, and obvious
official stupidity or naïveté on the other
hand. The Jews were too
clever to allow a simultaneous attack to be made on
the whole of their
Press. No one section functioned as cover for the other.
While the
Marxist newspaper, in the most despicable manner possible, reviled
everything that was sacred, furiously attacked the State and Government
and
incited certain classes of the community against each other, the
bourgeois-democratic papers, also in Jewish hands, knew how to
camouflage
themselves as model examples of objectivity. They studiously
avoided harsh
language, knowing well that block-heads are capable of
judging only by
external appearances and never able to penetrate to the
real depth and
meaning of anything. They measure the worth of an object
by its exterior and
not by its content. This form of human frailty was
carefully studied and
understood by the Press.
For this class of blockheads the FRANKFURTER
ZEITUNG would be
acknowledged as the essence of respectability. It always
carefully
avoided calling a spade a spade. It deprecated the use of every
form of
physical force and persistently appealed to the nobility of fighting
with 'intellectual' weapons. But this fight, curiously enough, was most
popular with the least intellectual classes. That is one of the results
of
our defective education, which turns the youth away from the
instinctive
dictates of Nature, pumps into them a certain amount of
knowledge without
however being able to bring them to what is the
supreme act of knowing. To
this end diligence and goodwill are of no
avail, if innate understanding
fail. This final knowledge at which man
must aim is the understanding of
causes which are instinctively
perceived.
Let me explain: Man must not
fall into the error of thinking that he was
ever meant to become lord and
master of Nature. A lopsided education has
helped to encourage that illusion.
Man must realize that a fundamental
law of necessity reigns throughout the
whole realm of Nature and that
his existence is subject to the law of eternal
struggle and strife. He
will then feel that there cannot be a separate law
for mankind in a
world in which planets and suns follow their orbits, where
moons and
planets trace their destined paths, where the strong are always the
masters of the weak and where those subject to such laws must obey them
or be
destroyed. Man must also submit to the eternal principles of this
supreme
wisdom. He may try to understand them but he can never free
himself from
their sway.
It is just for intellectual DEMI-MONDE that the Jew writes
those papers
which he calls his 'intellectual' Press. For them the
FRANKFURTER
ZEITUNG and BERLINER TAGEBLATT are written, the tone being
adapted to
them, and it is over these people that such papers have an
influence.
While studiously avoiding all forms of expression that might
strike the
reader as crude, the poison is injected from other vials into the
hearts
of the clientele. The effervescent tone and the fine phraseology lug
the
readers into believing that a love for knowledge and moral principle is
the sole driving force that determines the policy of such papers,
whereas in
reality these features represent a cunning way of disarming
any opposition
that might be directed against the Jews and their Press.
They make such a
parade of respectability that the imbecile readers are
all the more ready to
believe that the excesses which other papers
indulge in are only of a mild
nature and not such as to warrant legal
action being taken against them.
Indeed such action might trespass on
the freedom of the Press, that
expression being a euphemism under which
such papers escape legal punishment
for deceiving the public and
poisoning the public mind. Hence the authorities
are very slow indeed to
take any steps against these journalistic bandits for
fear of
immediately alienating the sympathy of the so-called respectable
Press.
A fear that is only too well founded, for the moment any attempt is
made
to proceed against any member of the gutter press all the others rush to
its assistance at once, not indeed to support its policy but simply and
solely to defend the principle of freedom of the Press and liberty of
public
opinion. This outcry will succeed in cowering the most stalwart;
for it comes
from the mouth of what is called decent journalism.
And so this poison
was allowed to enter the national bloodstream and
infect public life without
the Government taking any effectual measures
to master the course of the
disease. The ridiculous half-measures that
were taken were in themselves an
indication of the process of
disintegration that was already threatening to
break up the Empire. For
an institution practically surrenders its existence
when it is no longer
determined to defend itself with all the weapons at its
command. Every
half-measure is the outward expression of an internal process
of decay
which must lead to an external collapse sooner or later.
I
believe that our present generation would easily master this danger if
they
were rightly led. For this generation has gone through certain
experiences
which must have strengthened the nerves of all those who did
not become
nervously broken by them. Certainly in days to come the Jews
will raise a
tremendous cry throughout their newspapers once a hand is
laid on their
favourite nest, once a move is made to put an end to this
scandalous Press
and once this instrument which shapes public opinion is
brought under State
control and no longer left in the hands of aliens
and enemies of the people.
I am certain that this will be easier for us
than it was for our fathers. The
scream of the twelve-inch shrapnel is
more penetrating than the hiss from a
thousand Jewish newspaper vipers.
Therefore let them go on with their
hissing.
A further example of the weak and hesitating way in which vital
national
problems were dealt with in pre-War Germany is the following: Hand
in
hand with the political and moral process of infecting the nation, for
many years an equally virulent process of infection had been attacking
the
public health of the people. In large cities, particularly, syphilis
steadily
increased and tuberculosis kept pace with it in reaping its
harvest of death
almost in every part of the country.
Although in both cases the effect on
the nation was alarming, it seemed
as if nobody was in a position to
undertake any decisive measures
against these scourges.
In the case of
syphilis especially the attitude of the State and public
bodies was one of
absolute capitulation. To combat this state of affairs
something of far wider
sweep should have been undertaken than was really
done. The discovery of a
remedy which is of a questionable nature and
the excellent way in which it
was placed on the market were only of
little assistance in fighting such a
scourge. Here again the only course
to adopt is to attack the disease in its
causes rather than in its
symptoms. But in this case the primary cause is to
be found in the
manner in which love has been prostituted. Even though this
did not
directly bring about the fearful disease itself, the nation must
still
suffer serious damage thereby, for the moral havoc resulting from this
prostitution would be sufficient to bring about the destruction of the
nation, slowly but surely. This Judaizing of our spiritual life and
mammonizing of our natural instinct for procreation will sooner or later
work
havoc with our whole posterity. For instead of strong, healthy
children,
blessed with natural feelings, we shall see miserable
specimens of humanity
resulting from economic calculation. For economic
considerations are becoming
more and more the foundations of marriage
and the sole preliminary condition
of it. And love looks for an outlet
elsewhere.
Here, as elsewhere, one
may defy Nature for a certain period of time;
but sooner or later she will
take her inexorable revenge. And when man
realizes this truth it is often too
late.
Our own nobility furnishes an example of the devastating
consequences
that follow from a persistent refusal to recognize the primary
conditions necessary for normal wedlock. Here we are openly brought face
to
face with the results of those reproductive habits which on the one
hand are
determined by social pressure and, on the other, by financial
considerations.
The one leads to inherited debility and the other to
adulteration of the
blood-strain; for all the Jewish daughters of the
department store
proprietors are looked upon as eligible mates to
co-operate in propagating
His Lordship's stock. And the stock certainly
looks it. All this leads to
absolute degeneration. Nowadays our
bourgeoise are making efforts to follow
in the same path, They will come
to the same journey's end.
These
unpleasant truths are hastily and nonchalantly brushed aside, as
if by so
doing the real state of affairs could also be abolished. But
no. It cannot be
denied that the population of our great towns and
cities is tending more and
more to avail of prostitution in the exercise
of its amorous instincts and is
thus becoming more and more contaminated
by the scourge of venereal disease.
On the one hand, the visible effects
of this mass-infection can be observed
in our insane asylums and, on the
other hand, alas! among the children at
home. These are the doleful and
tragic witnesses to the steadily increasing
scourge that is poisoning
our sexual life. Their sufferings are the visible
results of parental
vice.
There are many ways of becoming resigned to
this unpleasant and terrible
fact. Many people go about seeing nothing or, to
be more correct, not
wanting to see anything. This is by far the simplest and
cheapest
attitude to adopt. Others cover themselves in the sacred mantle of
prudery, as ridiculous as it is false. They describe the whole condition
of
affairs as sinful and are profoundly indignant when brought face to
face with
a victim. They close their eyes in reverend abhorrence to this
godless
scourge and pray to the Almighty that He--if possible after
their own
death--may rain down fire and brimstone as on Sodom and
Gomorrah and so once
again make an out standing example of this
shameless section of humanity.
Finally, there are those who are well
aware of the terrible results which
this scourge will and must bring
about, but they merely shrug their
shoulders, fully convinced of their
inability to undertake anything against
this peril. Hence matters are
allowed to take their own course.
Undoubtedly all this is very convenient and simple, only it must not be
overlooked that this convenient way of approaching things can have fatal
consequences for our national life. The excuse that other nations are
also
not faring any better does not alter the fact of our own
deterioration,
except that the feeling of sympathy for other stricken
nations makes our own
suffering easier to bear. But the important
question that arises here is:
Which nation will be the first to take the
initiative in mastering this
scourge, and which nations will succumb to
it? This will be the final upshot
of the whole situation. The present is
a period of probation for racial
values. The race that fails to come
through the test will simply die out and
its place will be taken by the
healthier and stronger races, which will be
able to endure greater
hardships. As this problem primarily concerns
posterity, it belongs to
that category of which it is said with terrible
justification that the
sins of the fathers are visited on their offspring
unto the tenth
generation. This is a consequence which follows on an
infringement of
the laws of blood and race.
The sin against blood and
race is the hereditary sin in this world and
it brings disaster on every
nation that commits it.
The attitude towards this one vital problem in
pre-War Germany was most
regrettable. What measures were undertaken to arrest
the infection of
our youth in the large cities? What was done to put an end
to the
contamination and mammonization of sexual life among us? What was done
to fight the resultant spreading of syphilis throughout the whole of our
national life? The reply to this question can best be illustrated by
showing
what should have been done.
Instead of tackling this problem in a
haphazard way, the authorities
should have realized that the fortunes or
misfortunes of future
generations depended on its solution. But to admit this
would have
demanded that active measures be carried out in a ruthless manner.
The
primary condition would have been that the enlightened attention of the
whole country should be concentrated on this terrible danger, so that
every
individual would realize the importance of fighting against it. It
would be
futile to impose obligations of a definite character--which are
often
difficult to bear--and expect them to become generally effective,
unless the
public be thoroughly instructed on the necessity of imposing
and accepting
such obligations. This demands a widespread and systematic
method of
enlightenment and all other daily problems that might distract
public
attention from this great central problem should be relegated to
the
background.
In every case where there are exigencies or tasks that seem
impossible
to deal with successfully public opinion must be concentrated on
the one
problem, under the conviction that the solution of this problem alone
is
a matter of life or death. Only in this way can public interest be
aroused to such a pitch as will urge people to combine in a great
voluntary
effort and achieve important results.
This fundamental truth applies also
to the individual, provided he is
desirous of attaining some great end. He
must always concentrate his
efforts to one definitely limited stage of his
progress which has to be
completed before the next step be attempted. Those
who do not endeavour
to realize their aims step by step and who do not
concentrate their
energy in reaching the individual stages, will never attain
the final
objective. At some stage or other they will falter and fail. This
systematic way of approaching an objective is an art in itself, and
always
calls for the expenditure of every ounce of energy in order to
conquer step
after step of the road.
Therefore the most essential preliminary
condition necessary for an
attack on such a difficult stage of the human road
is that the
authorities should succeed in convincing the masses that the
immediate
objective which is now being fought for is the only one that
deserves to
be considered and the only one on which everything depends. The
broad
masses are never able clearly to see the whole stretch of the road
lying
in front of them without becoming tired and thus losing faith in their
ability to complete the task. To a certain extent they will keep the
objective in mind, but they are only able to survey the whole road in
small
stages, as in the case of the traveller who knows where his
journey is going
to end but who masters the endless stretch far better
by attacking it in
degrees. Only in this way can he keep up his
determination to reach the final
objective.
It is in this way, with the assistance of every form of
propaganda, that
the problem of fighting venereal disease should be placed
before the
public--not as a task for the nation but as THE main task. Every
possible means should be employed to bring the truth about this scourge
home
to the minds of the people, until the whole nation has been
convinced that
everything depends on the solution of this problem; that
is to say, a healthy
future or national decay.
Only after such preparatory measures--if
necessary spread over a period
of many years--will public attention and
public resolution be fully
aroused, and only then can serious and definite
measures be undertaken
without running the risk of not being fully understood
or of being
suddenly faced with a slackening of the public will. It must be
made
clear to all that a serious fight against this scourge calls for vast
sacrifices and an enormous amount of work.
To wage war against syphilis
means fighting against prostitution,
against prejudice, against
old-established customs, against current
fashion, public opinion, and, last
but not least, against false prudery
in certain circles.
The first
preliminary condition to be fulfilled before the State can
claim a moral
right to fight against all these things is that the young
generation should
be afforded facilities for contracting early
marriages. Late marriages have
the sanction of a custom which, from
whatever angle we view it, is and will
remain a disgrace to humanity.
Prostitution is a disgrace to humanity and
cannot be removed simply by
charitable or academic methods. Its restriction
and final extermination
presupposes the removal of a whole series of
contributory circumstances.
The first remedy must always be to establish such
conditions as will
make early marriages possible, especially for young
men--for women are,
after all, only passive subjects in this matter.
An illustration of the extent to which people have so often been led
astray
nowadays is afforded by the fact that not infrequently one hears
mothers in
so-called 'better' circles openly expressing their
satisfaction at having
found as a husband for their daughter a man who
has already sown his wild
oats, etc. As there is usually so little
shortage in men of this type, the
poor girl finds no difficulty in
getting a mate of this description, and the
children of this marriage
are a visible result of such supposedly sensible
unions.
When one realizes, apart from this, that every possible effort is
being
made to hinder the process of procreation and that Nature is being
wilfully cheated of her rights, there remains really only one question:
Why
is such an institution as marriage still in existence, and what are
its
functions? Is it really nothing better than prostitution? Does our
duty to
posterity no longer play any part? Or do people not realize the
nature of the
curse they are inflicting on themselves and their
offspring by such
criminally foolish neglect of one of the primary laws
of Nature? This is how
civilized nations degenerate and gradually
perish.
Marriage is not an
end in itself but must serve the greater end, which
is that of increasing and
maintaining the human species and the race.
This is its only meaning and
purpose.
This being admitted, then it is clear that the institution of
marriage
must be judged by the manner in which its allotted function is
fulfilled. Therefore early marriages should be the rule, because thus
the
young couple will still have that pristine force which is the
fountain head
of a healthy posterity with unimpaired powers of
resistance. Of course early
marriages cannot be made the rule unless a
whole series of social measures
are first undertaken without which early
marriages cannot be even thought of.
In other words, a solution of this
question, which seems a small problem in
itself, cannot be brought about
without adopting radical measures to alter
the social background. The
importance of such measures ought to be studied
and properly estimated,
especially at a time when the so-called 'social'
Republic has shown
itself unable to solve the housing problem and thus has
made it
impossible for innumerable couples to get married. That sort of
policy
prepares the way for the further advance of prostitution.
Another reason why early marriages are impossible is our nonsensical
method
of regulating the scale of salaries, which pays far too little
attention to
the problem of family support. Prostitution, therefore, can
only be really
seriously tackled if, by means of a radical social
reform, early marriage is
made easier than hitherto. This is the first
preliminary necessity for the
solution of this problem.
Secondly, a whole series of false notions must
be eradicated from our
system of bringing up and educating children--things
which hitherto no
one seems to have worried about. In our present educational
system a
balance will have to be established, first and foremost, between
mental
instruction and physical training.
What is known as GYMNASIUM
(Grammar School) to-day is a positive insult
to the Greek institution. Our
system of education entirely loses sight
of the fact that in the long run a
healthy mind can exist only in a
healthy body. This statement, with few
exceptions, applies particularly
to the broad masses of the nation.
In
the pre-War Germany there was a time when no one took the trouble to
think
over this truth. Training of the body was criminally neglected,
the one-sided
training of the mind being regarded as a sufficient
guarantee for the
nation's greatness. This mistake was destined to show
its effects sooner than
had been anticipated. It is not pure chance that
the Bolshevic teaching
flourishes in those regions whose degenerate
population has been brought to
the verge of starvation, as, for example,
in the case of Central Germany,
Saxony, and the Ruhr Valley. In all
these districts there is a marked absence
of any serious resistance,
even by the so-called intellectual classes,
against this Jewish
contagion. And the simple reason is that the intellectual
classes are
themselves physically degenerate, not through privation but
through
education. The exclusive intellectualism of the education in vogue
among
our upper classes makes them unfit for life's struggle at an epoch in
which physical force and not mind is the dominating factor. Thus they
are
neither capable of maintaining themselves nor of making their way in
life. In
nearly every case physical disability is the forerunner of
personal
cowardice.
The extravagant emphasis laid on purely intellectual education
and the
consequent neglect of physical training must necessarily lead to
sexual
thoughts in early youth. Those boys whose constitutions have been
trained and hardened by sports and gymnastics are less prone to sexual
indulgence than those stay-at-homes who have been fed exclusively with
mental
pabulum. Sound methods of education cannot, however, afford to
disregard
this, and we must not forget that the expectations of a
healthy young man
from a woman will differ from those of a weakling who
has been prematurely
corrupted.
Thus in every branch of our education the day's curriculum
must be
arranged so as to occupy a boy's free time in profitable development
of
his physical powers. He has no right in those years to loaf about,
becoming a nuisance in public streets and in cinemas; but when his day's
work
is done he ought to harden his young body so that his strength may
not be
found wanting when the occasion arises. To prepare for this and
to carry it
out should be the function of our educational system and not
exclusively to
pump in knowledge or wisdom. Our school system must also
rid itself of the
notion that the training of the body is a task that
should be left to the
individual himself. There is no such thing as
allowing freedom of choice to
sin against posterity and thus against the
race.
The fight against
pollution of the mind must be waged simultaneously
with the training of the
body. To-day the whole of our public life may
be compared to a hot-house for
the forced growth of sexual notions and
incitements. A glance at the
bill-of-fare provided by our cinemas,
playhouses, and theatres suffices to
prove that this is not the right
food, especially for our young people.
Hoardings and advertisements
kiosks combine to attract the public in the most
vulgar manner. Anyone
who has not altogether lost contact with adolescent
yearnings will
realize that all this must have very grave consequences. This
seductive
and sensuous atmosphere puts notions into the heads of our youth
which,
at their age, ought still to be unknown to them. Unfortunately, the
results of this kind of education can best be seen in our contemporary
youth
who are prematurely grown up and therefore old before their time.
The law
courts from time to time throw a distressing light on the
spiritual life of
our 14- and 15-year old children. Who, therefore, will
be surprised to learn
that venereal disease claims its victims at this
age? And is it not a
frightful shame to see the number of physically
weak and intellectually
spoiled young men who have been introduced to
the mysteries of marriage by
the whores of the big cities?
No; those who want seriously to combat
prostitution must first of all
assist in removing the spiritual conditions on
which it thrives. They
will have to clean up the moral pollution of our city
'culture'
fearlessly and without regard for the outcry that will follow. If
we do
not drag our youth out of the morass of their present environment they
will be engulfed by it. Those people who do not want to see these things
are
deliberately encouraging them and are guilty of spreading the
effects of
prostitution to the future--for the future belongs to our
young generation.
This process of cleansing our 'Kultur' will have to be
applied in practically
all spheres. The stage, art, literature, the
cinema, the Press and
advertisement posters, all must have the stains of
pollution removed and be
placed in the service of a national and
cultural idea. The life of the people
must be freed from the
asphyxiating perfume of our modern eroticism and also
from every unmanly
and prudish form of insincerity. In all these things the
aim and the
method must be determined by thoughtful consideration for the
preservation of our national well-being in body and soul. The right to
personal freedom comes second in importance to the duty of maintaining
the
race.
Only after such measures have been put into practice can a medical
campaign against this scourge begin with some hope of success. But, here
again, half-measures will be valueless. Far-reaching and important
decisions
will have to be made. It would be doing things by halves if
incurables were
given the opportunity of infecting one healthy person
after another. This
would be that kind of humanitarianism which would
allow hundreds to perish in
order to save the suffering of one
individual. The demand that it should be
made impossible for defective
people to continue to propagate defective
offspring is a demand that is
based on most reasonable grounds, and its
proper fulfilment is the most
humane task that mankind has to face. Unhappy
and undeserved suffering
in millions of cases will be spared, with the result
that there will be
a gradual improvement in national health. A determined
decision to act
in this manner will at the same time provide an obstacle
against the
further spread of venereal disease. It would then be a case,
where
necessary, of mercilessly isolating all incurables--perhaps a barbaric
measure for those unfortunates--but a blessing for the present
generation and
for posterity. The temporary pain thus experienced in
this century can and
will spare future thousands of generations from
suffering.
The fight
against syphilis and its pace-maker, prostitution, is one of
the gigantic
tasks of mankind; gigantic, because it is not merely a case
of solving a
single problem but the removal of a whole series of evils
which are the
contributory causes of this scourge. Disease of the body
in this case is
merely the result of a diseased condition of the moral,
social, and racial
instincts.
But if for reasons of indolence or cowardice this fight is not
fought to
a finish we may imagine what conditions will be like 500 years
hence.
Little of God's image will be left in human nature, except to mock the
Creator.
But what has been done in Germany to counteract this scourge? If
we
think calmly over the answer we shall find it distressing. It is true
that in governmental circles the terrible and injurious effects of this
disease were well known, but the counter-measures which were officially
adopted were ineffective and a hopeless failure. They tinkered with
cures for
the symptoms, wholly regardless of the cause of the disease.
Prostitutes were
medically examined and controlled as far as possible,
and when signs of
infection were apparent they were sent to hospital.
When outwardly cured,
they were once more let loose on humanity.
It is true that 'protective
legislation' was introduced which made
sexual intercourse a punishable
offence for all those not completely
cured, or those suffering from venereal
disease. This legislation was
correct in theory, but in practice it failed
completely. In the first
place, in the majority of cases women will decline
to appear in court as
witnesses against men who have robbed them of their
health. Women would
be exposed far more than men to uncharitable remarks in
such cases, and
one can imagine what their position would be if they had been
infected
by their own husbands. Should women in that case lay a charge? Or
what
should they do?
In the case of the man there is the additional
fact that he frequently
is unfortunate enough to run up against this danger
when he is under the
influence of alcohol. His condition makes it impossible
for him to
assess the qualities of his 'amorous beauty,' a fact which is well
known
to every diseased prostitute and makes them single out men in this
ideal
condition for preference. The result is that the unfortunate man is not
able to recollect later on who his compassionate benefactress was, which
is
not surprising in cities like Berlin and Munich. Many of such cases
are
visitors from the provinces who, held speechless and enthralled by
the magic
charm of city life, become an easy prey for prostitutes.
In the final
analysis who is able to say whether he has been infected or
not?
Are
there not innumerable cases on record where an apparently cured
person has a
relapse and does untold harm without knowing it?
Therefore in practice
the results of these legislative measures are
negative. The same applies to
the control of prostitution, and, finally,
even medical treatment and cure
are nowadays unsafe and doubtful. One
thing only is certain. The scourge has
spread further and further in
spite of all measures, and this alone suffices
definitely to stamp and
substantiate their inefficiency.
Everything
else that was undertaken was just as inefficient as it was
absurd. The
spiritual prostitution of the people was neither arrested
nor was anything
whatsoever undertaken in this direction.
Those, however, who do not
regard this subject as a serious one would do
well to examine the statistical
data of the spread of this disease,
study its growth in the last century and
contemplate the possibilities
of its further development. The ordinary
observer, unless he were
particularly stupid, would experience a cold shudder
if the position
were made clear to him.
The half-hearted and wavering
attitude adopted in pre-War Germany
towards this iniquitous condition can
assuredly be taken as a visible
sign of national decay. When the courage to
fight for one's own health
is no longer in evidence, then the right to live
in this world of
struggle also ceases.
One of the visible signs of
decay in the old REICH was the slow setback
which the general cultural level
experienced. But by 'Kultur' I do not
mean that which we nowadays style as
civilization, which on the contrary
may rather be regarded as inimical to the
spiritual elevation of life.
At the turn of the last century a new
element began to make its
appearance in our world. It was an element which
had been hitherto
absolutely unknown and foreign to us. In former times there
had
certainly been offences against good taste; but these were mostly
departures from the orthodox canons of art, and posterity could
recognize a
certain historical value in them. But the new products
showed signs, not only
of artistic aberration but of spiritual
degeneration. Here, in the cultural
sphere, the signs of the coming
collapse first became manifest.
The
Bolshevization of art is the only cultural form of life and the only
spiritual manifestation of which Bolshevism is capable.
Anyone to whom
this statement may appear strange need only take a glance
at those lucky
States which have become Bolshevized and, to his horror,
he will there
recognize those morbid monstrosities which have been
produced by insane and
degenerate people. All those artistic aberrations
which are classified under
the names of cubism and dadism, since the
opening of the present century, are
manifestations of art which have
come to be officially recognized by the
State itself. This phenomenon
made its appearance even during the short-lived
period of the Soviet
Republic in Bavaria. At that time one might easily have
recognized how
all the official posters, propagandist pictures and
newspapers, etc.,
showed signs not only of political but also of cultural
decadence.
About sixty years ago a political collapse such as we are
experiencing
to-day would have been just as inconceivable as the cultural
decline
which has been manifested in cubist and futurist pictures ever since
1900. Sixty years ago an exhibition of so-called dadistic 'experiences'
would
have been an absolutely preposterous idea. The organizers of such
an
exhibition would then have been certified for the lunatic asylum,
whereas,
to-day they are appointed presidents of art societies. At that
time such an
epidemic would never have been allowed to spread. Public
opinion would not
have tolerated it, and the Government would not have
remained silent; for it
is the duty of a Government to save its people
from being stampeded into such
intellectual madness. But intellectual
madness would have resulted from a
development that followed the
acceptance of this kind of art. It would have
marked one of the worst
changes in human history; for it would have meant
that a retrogressive
process had begun to take place in the human brain, the
final stages of
which would be unthinkable.
If we study the course of
our cultural life during the last twenty-five
years we shall be astonished to
note how far we have already gone in
this process of retrogression.
Everywhere we find the presence of those
germs which give rise to protuberant
growths that must sooner or later
bring about the ruin of our culture. Here
we find undoubted symptoms of
slow corruption; and woe to the nations that
are no longer able to bring
that morbid process to a halt.
In almost
all the various fields of German art and culture those morbid
phenomena may
be observed. Here everything seems to have passed the
culminating point of
its excellence and to have entered the curve of a
hasty decline. At the
beginning of the century the theatres seemed
already degenerating and ceasing
to be cultural factors, except the
Court theatres, which opposed this
prostitution of the national art.
With these exceptions, and also a few other
decent institutions, the
plays produced on the stage were of such a nature
that the people would
have benefited by not visiting them at all. A sad
symptom of decline was
manifested by the fact that in the case of many 'art
centres' the sign
was posted on the entrance doors: FOR ADULTS ONLY.
Let it be borne in mind that these precautions had to be taken in regard
to
institutions whose main purpose should have been to promote the
education of
the youth and not merely to provide amusement for
sophisticated adults. What
would the great dramatists of other times
have said of such measures and,
above all, of the conditions which made
these measures necessary? How
exasperated Schiller would have been, and
how Goethe would have turned away
in disgust!
But what are Schiller, Goethe and Shakespeare when confronted
with the
heroes of our modern German literature? Old and frowsy and outmoded
and
finished. For it was typical of this epoch that not only were its own
products bad but that the authors of such products and their backers
reviled
everything that had really been great in the past. This is a
phenomenon that
is very characteristic of such epochs. The more vile and
miserable are the
men and products of an epoch, the more they will hate
and denigrate the ideal
achievements of former generations. What these
people would like best would
be completely to destroy every vestige of
the past, in order to do away with
that sole standard of comparison
which prevents their own daubs from being
looked upon as art. Therefore
the more lamentable and wretched are the
products of each new era, the
more it will try to obliterate all the
memorials of the past. But any
real innovation that is for the benefit of
mankind can always face
comparison with the best of what has gone before; and
frequently it
happens that those monuments of the past guarantee the
acceptance of
those modern productions. There is no fear that modern
productions of
real worth will look pale and worthless beside the monuments
of the
past. What is contributed to the general treasury of human culture
often
fulfils a part that is necessary in order to keep the memory of old
achievements alive, because this memory alone is the standard whereby
our own
works are properly appreciated. Only those who have nothing of
value to give
to the world will oppose everything that already exists
and would have it
destroyed at all costs.
And this holds good not only for new phenomena in
the cultural domain
but also in politics. The more inferior new revolutionary
movements are,
the more will they try to denigrate the old forms. Here again
the desire
to pawn off their shoddy products as great and original
achievements
leads them into a blind hatred against everything which belongs
to the
past and which is superior to their own work. As long as the
historical
memory of Frederick the Great, for instance, still lives,
Frederick
Ebert can arouse only a problematic admiration. The relation of the
hero
of Sans Souci to the former republican of Bremen may be compared to that
of the sun to the moon; for the moon can shine only after the direct
rays of
the sun have left the earth. Thus we can readily understand why
it is that
all the new moons in human history have hated the fixed
stars. In the field
of politics, if Fate should happen temporarily to
place the ruling power in
the hands of those nonentities they are not
only eager to defile and revile
the past but at the same time they will
use all means to evade criticism of
their own acts. The Law for the
Protection of the Republic, which the new
German State enacted, may be
taken as one example of this truth.
One
has good grounds to be suspicious in regard to any new idea, or any
doctrine
or philosophy, any political or economical movement, which
tries to deny
everything that the past has produced or to present it as
inferior and
worthless. Any renovation which is really beneficial to
human progress will
always have to begin its constructive work at the
level where the last stones
of the structure have been laid. It need not
blush to utilize those truths
which have already been established; for
all human culture, as well as man
himself, is only the result of one
long line of development, where each
generation has contributed but one
stone to the building of the whole
structure. The meaning and purpose of
revolutions cannot be to tear down the
whole building but to take away
what has not been well fitted into it or is
unsuitable, and to rebuild
the free space thus caused, after which the main
construction of the
building will be carried on.
Thus alone will it be
possible to talk of human progress; for otherwise
the world would never be
free of chaos, since each generation would feel
entitled to reject the past
and to destroy all the work of the past, as
the necessary preliminary to any
new work of its own.
The saddest feature of the condition in which our
whole civilization
found itself before the War was the fact that it was not
only barren of
any creative force to produce its own works of art and
civilization but
that it hated, defiled and tried to efface the memory of the
superior
works produced in the past. About the end of the last century people
were less interested in producing new significant works of their
own--particularly in the fields of dramatic art and literature--than in
defaming the best works of the past and in presenting them as inferior
and
antiquated. As if this period of disgraceful decadence had the
slightest
capacity to produce anything of superior quality! The efforts
made to conceal
the past from the eyes of the present afforded clear
evidence of the fact
that these apostles of the future acted from an
evil intent. These symptoms
should have made it clear to all that it was
not a question of new, though
wrong, cultural ideas but of a process
which was undermining the very
foundations of civilization. It threw the
artistic feeling which had hitherto
been quite sane into utter
confusion, thus spiritually preparing the way for
political Bolshevism.
If the creative spirit of the Periclean age be
manifested in the
Parthenon, then the Bolshevist era is manifested through
its cubist
grimace.
In this connection attention must be drawn once
again to the want of
courage displayed by one section of our people, namely,
by those who, in
virtue of their education and position, ought to have felt
themselves
obliged to take up a firm stand against this outrage on our
culture. But
they refrained from offering serious resistance and surrendered
to what
they considered the inevitable. This abdication of theirs was due,
however, to sheer funk lest the apostles of Bolshevist art might raise a
rumpus; for those apostles always violently attacked everyone who was
not
ready to recognize them as the choice spirits of artistic creation,
and they
tried to strangle all opposition by saying that it was the
product of
philistine and backwater minds. People trembled in fear lest
they might be
accused by these yahoos and swindlers of lacking artistic
appreciation, as if
it would have been a disgrace not to be able to
understand and appreciate the
effusions of those mental degenerates or
arrant rogues. Those cultural
disciples, however, had a very simple way
of presenting their own effusions
as works of the highest quality. They
offered incomprehensible and manifestly
crazy productions to their
amazed contemporaries as what they called 'an
inner experience'. Thus
they forestalled all adverse criticism at very little
cost indeed. Of
course nobody ever doubted that there could have been inner
experiences
like that, but some doubt ought to have arisen as to whether or
not
there was any justification for exposing these hallucinations of
psychopaths or criminals to the sane portion of human society. The works
produced by a Moritz von Schwind or a Böcklin were also externalizations
of
an inner experience, but these were the experiences of divinely
gifted
artists and not of buffoons.
This situation afforded a good opportunity
of studying the miserable
cowardliness of our so-called intellectuals who
shirked the duty of
offering serious resistance to the poisoning of the sound
instincts of
our people. They left it to the people themselves to formulate
their own
attitude towards his impudent nonsense. Lest they might be
considered as
understanding nothing of art, they accepted every caricature of
art,
until they finally lost the power of judging what is really good or bad.
Taken all in all, there were superabundant symptoms to show that a
diseased epoch had begun.
Still another critical symptom has to be
considered. In the course of
the nineteenth century our towns and cities
began more and more to lose
their character as centres of civilization and
became more and more
centres of habitation. In our great modern cities the
proletariat does
not show much attachment to the place where it lives. This
feeling
results from the fact that their dwelling-place is nothing but an
accidental abode, and that feeling is also partly due to the frequent
change
of residence which is forced upon them by social conditions.
There is no time
for the growth of any attachment to the town in which
they live. But another
reason lies in the cultural barrenness and
superficiality of our modern
cities. At the time of the German Wars of
Liberation our German towns and
cities were not only small in number but
also very modest in size. The few
that could really be called great
cities were mostly the residential cities
of princes; as such they had
almost always a definite cultural value and also
a definite cultural
aspect. Those few towns which had more than fifty
thousand inhabitants
were, in comparison with modern cities of the same size,
rich in
scientific and artistic treasures. At the time when Munich had not
more
than sixty thousand souls it was already well on the way to become one
of the first German centres of art. Nowadays almost every industrial
town has
a population at least as large as that, without having anything
of real value
to call its own. They are agglomerations of tenement
houses and congested
dwelling barracks, and nothing else. It would be a
miracle if anybody should
grow sentimentally attached to such a
meaningless place. Nobody can grow
attached to a place which offers only
just as much or as little as any other
place would offer, which has no
character of its own and where obviously
pains have been taken to avoid
everything that might have any resemblance to
an artistic appearance.
But this is not all. Even the great cities become
more barren of real
works of art the more they increase in population. They
assume more and
more a neutral atmosphere and present the same aspect, though
on a
larger scale, as the wretched little factory towns. Everything that our
modern age has contributed to the civilization of our great cities is
absolutely deficient. All our towns are living on the glory and the
treasures
of the past. If we take away from the Munich of to-day
everything that was
created under Ludwig II we should be horror-stricken
to see how meagre has
been the output of important artistic creations
since that time. One might
say much the same of Berlin and most of our
other great towns.
But the
following is the essential thing to be noticed: Our great modern
cities have
no outstanding monuments that dominate the general aspect of
the city and
could be pointed to as the symbols of a whole epoch. Yet
almost every ancient
town had a monument erected to its glory. It was
not in private dwellings
that the characteristic art of ancient cities
was displayed but in the public
monuments, which were not meant to have
a transitory interest but an enduring
one. And this was because they did
not represent the wealth of some
individual citizen but the greatness
and importance of the community. It was
under this inspiration that
those monuments arose which bound the individual
inhabitants to their
own town in a manner that is often almost
incomprehensible to us to-day.
What struck the eye of the individual citizen
was not a number of
mediocre private buildings, but imposing structures that
belonged to the
whole community. In contradistinction to these, private
dwellings were
of only very secondary importance indeed.
When we
compare the size of those ancient public buildings with that of
the private
dwellings belonging to the same epoch then we can understand
the great
importance which was given to the principle that those works
which reflected
and affected the life of the community should take
precedence of all others.
Among the broken arches and vast spaces that are covered with ruins from
the ancient world the colossal riches that still arouse our wonder have
not
been left to us from the commercial palaces of these days but from
the
temples of the Gods and the public edifices that belonged to the
State. The
community itself was the owner of those great edifices. Even
in the pomp of
Rome during the decadence it was not the villas and
palaces of some citizens
that filled the most prominent place but rather
the temples and the baths,
the stadia, the circuses, the aqueducts, the
basilicas, etc., which belonged
to the State and therefore to the people
as a whole.
In medieval
Germany also the same principle held sway, although the
artistic outlook was
quite different. In ancient times the theme that
found its expression in the
Acropolis or the Pantheon was now clothed in
the forms of the Gothic
Cathedral. In the medieval cities these
monumental structures towered
gigantically above the swarm of smaller
buildings with their framework walls
of wood and brick. And they remain
the dominant feature of these cities even
to our own day, although they
are becoming more and more obscured by the
apartment barracks. They
determine the character and appearance of the
locality. Cathedrals,
city-halls, corn exchanges, defence towers, are the
outward expression
of an idea which has its counterpart only in the ancient
world.
The dimensions and quality of our public buildings to-day are in
deplorable contrast to the edifices that represent private interests. If
a
similar fate should befall Berlin as befell Rome future generations
might
gaze upon the ruins of some Jewish department stores or
joint-stock hotels
and think that these were the characteristic
expressions of the culture of
our time. In Berlin itself, compare the
shameful disproportion between the
buildings which belong to the REICH
and those which have been erected for the
accommodation of trade and
finance.
The credits that are voted for
public buildings are in most cases
inadequate and really ridiculous. They are
not built as structures that
were meant to last but mostly for the purpose of
answering the need of
the moment. No higher idea influenced those who
commissioned such
buildings. At the time the Berlin Schloss was built it had
a quite
different significance from what the new library has for our time,
seeing that one battleship alone represents an expenditure of about
sixty
million marks, whereas less than half that sum was allotted for
the building
of the Reichstag, which is the most imposing structure
erected for the REICH
and which should have been built to last for ages.
Yet, in deciding the
question of internal decoration, the Upper House
voted against the use of
stone and ordered that the walls should be
covered with stucco. For once,
however, the parliamentarians made an
appropriate decision on that occasion;
for plaster heads would be out of
place between stone walls.
The
community as such is not the dominant characteristic of our
contemporary
cities, and therefore it is not to be wondered at if the
community does not
find itself architecturally represented. Thus we must
eventually arrive at a
veritable civic desert which will at last be
reflected in the total
indifference of the individual citizen towards
his own country.
This
is also a sign of our cultural decay and general break-up. Our era
is
entirely preoccupied with little things which are to no purpose, or
rather it
is entirely preoccupied in the service of money. Therefore it
is not to be
wondered at if, with the worship of such an idol, the sense
of heroism should
entirely disappear. But the present is only reaping
what the past has sown.
All these symptoms which preceded the final collapse of the Second
Empire
must be attributed to the lack of a definite and uniformly
accepted
WELTANSCHAUUNG and the general uncertainty of outlook
consequent on that
lack. This uncertainty showed itself when the great
questions of the time had
to be considered one after another and a
decisive policy adopted towards
them. This lack is also accountable for
the habit of doing everything by
halves, beginning with the educational
system, the shilly-shally, the
reluctance to undertake responsibilites
and, finally, the cowardly tolerance
of evils that were even admitted to
be destructive. Visionary
humanitarianisms became the fashion. In weakly
submitting to these
aberrations and sparing the feelings of the
individual, the future of
millions of human beings was sacrificed.
An examination of the religious
situation before the War shows that the
general process of disruption had
extended to this sphere also. A great
part of the nation itself had for a
long time already ceased to have any
convictions of a uniform and practical
character in their ideological
outlook on life. In this matter the point of
primary importance was by
no means the number of people who renounced their
church membership but
rather the widespread indifference. While the two
Christian
denominations maintained missions in Asia and Africa, for the
purpose of
securing new adherents to the Faith, these same denominations were
losing millions and millions of their adherents at home in Europe. These
former adherents either gave up religion wholly as a directive force in
their
lives or they adopted their own interpretation of it. The
consequences of
this were specially felt in the moral life of the
country. In parenthesis it
may be remarked that the progress made by the
missions in spreading the
Christian Faith abroad was only quite modest
in comparison with the spread of
Mohammedanism.
It must be noted too that the attack on the dogmatic
principles
underlying ecclesiastical teaching increased steadily in violence.
And
yet this human world of ours would be inconceivable without the
practical existence of a religious belief. The great masses of a nation
are
not composed of philosophers. For the masses of the people,
especially faith
is absolutely the only basis of a moral outlook on
life. The various
substitutes that have been offered have not shown any
results that might
warrant us in thinking that they might usefully
replace the existing
denominations. But if religious teaching and
religious faith were once
accepted by the broad masses as active forces
in their lives, then the
absolute authority of the doctrines of faith
would be the foundation of all
practical effort. There may be a few
hundreds of thousands of superior men
who can live wisely and
intelligently without depending on the general
standards that prevail in
everyday life, but the millions of others cannot do
so. Now the place
which general custom fills in everyday life corresponds to
that of
general laws in the State and dogma in religion. The purely spiritual
idea is of itself a changeable thing that may be subjected to endless
interpretations. It is only through dogma that it is given a precise and
concrete form without which it could not become a living faith.
Otherwise the
spiritual idea would never become anything more than a
mere metaphysical
concept, or rather a philosophical opinion.
Accordingly the attack against
dogma is comparable to an attack against
the general laws on which the State
is founded. And so this attack would
finally lead to complete political
anarchy if it were successful, just
as the attack on religion would lead to a
worthless religious nihilism.
The political leader should not estimate
the worth of a religion by
taking some of its shortcomings into account, but
he should ask himself
whether there be any practical substitute in a view
which is
demonstrably better. Until such a substitute be available only fools
and
criminals would think of abolishing the existing religion.
Undoubtedly no small amount of blame for the present unsatisfactory
religious
situation must be attributed to those who have encumbered the
ideal of
religion with purely material accessories and have thus given
rise to an
utterly futile conflict between religion and science. In this
conflict
victory will nearly always be on the side of science, even
though after a
bitter struggle, while religion will suffer heavily in
the eyes of those who
cannot penetrate beneath the mere superficial
aspects of science.
But
the greatest damage of all has come from the practice of debasing
religion as
a means that can be exploited to serve political interests,
or rather
commercial interests. The impudent and loud-mouthed liars who
do this make
their profession of faith before the whole world in
stentorian tones so that
all poor mortals may hear--not that they are
ready to die for it if necessary
but rather that they may live all the
better. They are ready to sell their
faith for any political QUID PRO
QUO. For ten parliamentary mandates they
would ally themselves with the
Marxists, who are the mortal foes of all
religion. And for a seat in the
Cabinet they would go the length of wedlock
with the devil, if the
latter had not still retained some traces of decency.
If religious life in pre-war Germany had a disagreeable savour for the
mouths of many people this was because Christianity had been lowered to
base
uses by political parties that called themselves Christian and
because of the
shameful way in which they tried to identify the Catholic
Faith with a
political party.
This substitution was fatal. It procured some worthless
parliamentary
mandates for the party in question, but the Church suffered
damage
thereby.
The consequences of that situation had to be borne by
the whole nation;
for the laxity that resulted in religious life set in at a
juncture when
everything was beginning to lose hold and vacillate and the
traditional
foundations of custom and of morality were threatening to fall
asunder.
Yet all those cracks and clefts in the social organism might not
have
been dangerous if no grave burdens had been laid upon it; but they
became disastrous when the internal solidarity of the nation was the
most
important factor in withstanding the storm of big events.
In the
political field also observant eyes might have noticed certain
anomalies of
the REICH which foretold disaster unless some alteration
and correction took
place in time. The lack of orientation in German
policy, both domestic and
foreign, was obvious to everyone who was not
purposely blind. The best thing
that could be said about the practice of
making compromises is that it seemed
outwardly to be in harmony with
Bismarck's axiom that 'politics is the art of
the possible'. But
Bismarck was a slightly different man from the Chancellors
who followed
him. This difference allowed the former to apply that formula to
the
very essence of his policy, while in the mouths of the others it took on
an utterly different significance. When he uttered that phrase Bismarck
meant
to say that in order to attain a definite political end all
possible means
should be employed or at least that all possibilities
should be tried. But
his successors see in that phrase only a solemn
declaration that one is not
necessarily bound to have political
principles or any definite political aims
at all. And the political
leaders of the REICH at that time had no far-seeing
policy. Here, again,
the necessary foundation was lacking, namely, a definite
WELTANSCHAUUNG, and these leaders also lacked that clear insight into
the
laws of political evolution which is a necessary quality in
political
leadership.
Many people who took a gloomy view of things at that time
condemned the
lack of ideas and lack of orientation which were evident in
directing
the policy of the REICH. They recognized the inner weakness and
futility
of this policy. But such people played only a secondary role in
politics. Those who had the Government of the country in their hands
were
quite as indifferent to principles of civil wisdom laid down by
thinkers like
Houston Stewart Chamberlain as our political leaders now
are. These people
are too stupid to think for themselves, and they have
too much self-conceit
to take from others the instruction which they
need. Oxenstierna (Note 14a)
gave expression to a truth which has lasted
since time immemorial, when he
said that the world is governed by only a
particle of wisdom. Almost every
civil servant of councillor rank might
naturally be supposed to possess only
an atom or so belonging to this
particle. But since Germany became a Republic
even this modicum is
wanting. And that is why they had to promulgate the Law
for the Defence
of the Republic, which prohibits the holding of such views or
expressing
them. It was fortunate for Oxenstierna that he lived at that time
and
not in this wise Republic of our time.
[Note 14a. Swedish
Chancellor who took over the reins of Government after
the death of Gustavus
Adolphus]
Already before the War that institution which should have
represented
the strength of the Reich--the Parliament, the Reichstag--was
widely
recognized as its weakest feature. Cowardliness and fear of
shouldering
responsibilities were associated together there in a perfect
fashion.
One of the silliest notions that one hears expressed to-day is
that in
Germany the parliamentary institution has ceased to function since
the
Revolution. This might easily be taken to imply that the case was
different before the Revolution. But in reality the parliamentary
institution
never functioned except to the detriment of the country. And
it functioned
thus in those days when people saw nothing or did not wish
to see anything.
The German downfall is to be attributed in no small
degree to this
institution. But that the catastrophe did not take place
sooner is not to be
credited to the Parliament but rather to those who
opposed the influence of
this institution which, during peace times, was
digging the grave of the
German Nation and the German REICH.
From the immense mass of devastating
evils that were due either directly
or indirectly to the Parliament I shall
select one the most intimately
typical of this institution which was the most
irresponsible of all
time. The evil I speak of was seen in the appalling
shilly-shally and
weakness in conducting the internal and external affairs of
the REICH.
It was attributable in the first place to the action of the
Reichstag
and was one of the principal causes of the political collapse.
Everything subject to the influence of Parliament was done by halves, no
matter from what aspect you may regard it.
The foreign policy of the
REICH in the matter of alliances was an
example of shilly-shally. They wished
to maintain peace, but in doing so
they steered straight. into war.
Their Polish policy was also carried out by half-measures. It resulted
neither in a German triumph nor Polish conciliation, and it made enemies
of
the Russians.
They tried to solve the Alsace-Lorraine question through
half-measures.
Instead of crushing the head of the French hydra once and for
all with
the mailed fist and granting Alsace-Lorraine equal rights with the
other
German States, they did neither the one nor the other. Anyhow, it was
impossible for them to do otherwise, for they had among their ranks the
greatest traitors to the country, such as Herr Wetterlé of the Centre
Party.
But still the country might have been able to bear with all this
provided
the half-measure policy had not victimized that force in which,
as the last
resort, the existence of the Empire depended: namely, the
Army.
The
crime committed by the so-called German Reichstag in this regard was
sufficient of itself to draw down upon it the curses of the German
Nation for
all time. On the most miserable of pretexts these
parliamentary party
henchmen filched from the hands of the nation and
threw away the weapons
which were needed to maintain its existence and
therewith defend the liberty
and independence of our people. If the
graves on the plains of Flanders were
to open to-day the bloodstained
accusers would arise, hundreds of thousands
of our best German youth who
were driven into the arms of death by those
conscienceless parliamentary
ruffians who were either wrongly educated for
their task or only
half-educated. Those youths, and other millions of the
killed and
mutilated, were lost to the Fatherland simply and solely in order
that a
few hundred deceivers of the people might carry out their political
manoeuvres and their exactions or even treasonably pursue their
doctrinaire
theories.
By means of the Marxist and democratic Press, the Jews spread
the
colossal falsehood about 'German Militarism' throughout the world and
tried to inculpate Germany by every possible means, while at the same
time
the Marxist and democratic parties refused to assent to the
measures that
were necessary for the adequate training of our national
defence forces. The
appalling crime thus committed by these people ought
to have been obvious to
everybody who foresaw that in case of war the
whole nation would have to be
called to arms and that, because of the
mean huckstering of these noble
'representatives of the people', as they
called themselves, millions of
Germans would have to face the enemy
ill-equipped and insufficiently trained.
But even apart from the
consequences of the crude and brutal lack of
conscience which these
parliamentarian rascals displayed, it was quite clear
that the lack of
properly trained soldiers at the beginning of a war would
most probably
lead to the loss of such a war; and this probability was
confirmed in a
most terrible way during the course of the world war.
Therefore the German people lost the struggle for the freedom and
independence of their country because of the half-hearted and defective
policy employed during times of peace in the organization and training
of the
defensive strength of the nation.
The number of recruits trained for the
land forces was too small; but
the same half-heartedness was shown in regard
to the navy and made this
weapon of national self-preservation more or less
ineffective.
Unfortunately, even the naval authorities themselves were
contaminated
with this spirit of half-heartedness. The tendency to build the
ship on
the stocks somewhat smaller than that just launched by the British
did
not show much foresight and less genius. A fleet which cannot be brought
to the same numerical strength as that of the probable enemy ought to
compensate for this inferiority by the superior fighting power of the
individual ship. It is the weight of the fighting power that counts and
not
any sort of traditional quality. As a matter of fact, modern
technical
development is so advanced and so well proportioned among the
various
civilized States that it must be looked on as practically
impossible for one
Power to build vessels which would have a superior
fighting quality to that
of the vessels of equal size built by the other
Powers. But it is even less
feasible to build vessels of smaller
displacement which will be superior in
action to those of larger
displacement.
As a matter of fact, the
smaller proportions of the German vessels could
be maintained only at the
expense of speed and armament. The phrase used
to justify this policy was in
itself an evidence of the lack of logical
thinking on the part of the naval
authorities who were in charge of
these matters in times of peace. They
declared that the German guns were
definitely superior to the British 30.5
cm. as regards striking
efficiency.
But that was just why they should
have adopted the policy of building
30.5 cm. guns also; for it ought to have
been their object not to
achieve equality but superiority in fighting
strength. If that were not
so then it would have been superfluous to equip
the land forces with 42
cm. mortars; for the German 21 cm. mortar could be
far superior to any
high-angle guns which the French possessed at that time
and since the
fortresses could probably have been taken by means of 30.5 cm.
mortars.
The army authorities unfortunately failed to do so. If they
refrained
from assuring superior efficiency in the artillery as in the
velocity,
this was because of the fundamentally false 'principle of risk'
which
they adopted. The naval authorities, already in times of peace,
renounced the principle of attack and thus had to follow a defensive
policy
from the very beginning of the War. But by this attitude they
renounced also
the chances of final success, which can be achieved only
by an offensive
policy.
A vessel with slower speed and weaker armament will be crippled
and
battered by an adversary that is faster and stronger and can frequently
shoot from a favourable distance. A large number of cruisers have been
through bitter experiences in this matter. How wrong were the ideas
prevalent
among the naval authorities in times of peace was proved
during the War. They
were compelled to modify the armament of the old
vessels and to equip the new
ones with better armament whenever there
was a chance to do so. If the German
vessels in the Battle of the
Skagerrak had been of equal size, the same
armament and the same speed
as the English, the British Fleet would have gone
down under the tempest
of the German 38 centimeter shells, which hit their
aims more accurately
and were more effective.
Japan had followed a
different kind of naval policy. There, care was
principally taken to create
with every single new vessel a fighting
force that would be superior to those
of the eventual adversaries. But,
because of this policy, it was afterwards
possible to use the fleet for
the offensive.
While the army
authorities refused to adopt such fundamentally erroneous
principles, the
navy--which unfortunately had more representatives in
Parliament--succumbed
to the spirit that ruled there. The navy was not
organized on a strong basis,
and it was later used in an unsystematic
and irresolute way. The immortal
glory which the navy won, in spite of
these drawbacks, must be entirely
credited to the good work and the
efficiency and incomparable heroism of
officers and crews. If the former
commanders-in-chief had been inspired with
the same kind of genius all
the sacrifices would not have been in vain.
It was probably the very parliamentarian skill displayed by the chief of
the navy during the years of peace which later became the cause of the
fatal
collapse, since parliamentarian considerations had begun to play a
more
important role in the construction of the navy than fighting
considerations.
The irresolution, the weakness and the failure to adopt
a logically
consistent policy, which is typical of the parliamentary
system, contaminated
the naval authorities.
As I have already emphasized, the military
authorities did not allow
themselves to be led astray by such fundamentally
erroneous ideas.
Ludendorff, who was then a Colonel in the General Staff, led
a desperate
struggle against the criminal vacillations with which the
Reichstag
treated the most vital problems of the nation and in most cases
voted
against them. If the fight which this officer then waged remained
unsuccessful this must be debited to the Parliament and partly also to
the
wretched and weak attitude of the Chancellor, Bethmann-Hollweg.
Yet those
who are responsible for Germany's collapse do not hesitate now
to lay all the
blame on the shoulders of the one man who took a firm
stand against the
neglectful manner in which the interests of the nation
were managed. But one
falsehood more or less makes no difference to
these congenital tricksters.
Anybody who thinks of all the sacrifices which this nation has had to
bear, as a result of the criminal neglect of those irresponsible
individuals;
anybody who thinks of the number of those who died or were
maimed
unnecessarily; anybody who thinks of the deplorable shame and
dishonour which
has been heaped upon us and of the illimitable distress
into which our people
are now plunged--anybody who realizes that in
order to prepare the way to a
few seats in Parliament for some
unscrupulous place-hunters and arrivists
will understand that such
hirelings can be called by no other name than that
of rascal and
criminal; for otherwise those words could have no meaning. In
comparison
with traitors who betrayed the nation's trust every other kind of
twister may be looked upon as an honourable man.
It was a peculiar
feature of the situation that all the real faults of
the old Germany were
exposed to the public gaze only when the inner
solidarity of the nation could
be injured by doing so. Then, indeed,
unpleasant truths were openly
proclaimed in the ears of the broad
masses, while many other things were at
other times shamefully hushed up
or their existence simply denied, especially
at times when an open
discussion of such problems might have led to an
improvement in their
regard. The higher government authorities knew little or
nothing of the
nature and use of propaganda in such matters. Only the Jew
knew that by
an able and persistent use of propaganda heaven itself can be
presented
to the people as if it were hell and, vice versa, the most
miserable
kind of life can be presented as if it were paradise. The Jew knew
this
and acted accordingly. But the German, or rather his Government, did not
have the slightest suspicion of it. During the War the heaviest of
penalties
had to be paid for that ignorance.
Over against the innumerable drawbacks
which I have mentioned here and
which affected German life before the War
there were many outstanding
features on the positive side. If we take an
impartial survey we must
admit that most of our drawbacks were in great
measure prevalent also in
other countries and among the other nations, and
very often in a worse
form than with us; whereas among us there were many
real advantages
which the other did not have.
The leading phase of
Germany's superiority arose from the fact that,
almost alone among all the
other European nations, the German nation had
made the strongest effort to
preserve the national character of its
economic structure and for this reason
was less subject than other
countries to the power of international finance,
though indeed there
were many untoward symptoms in this regard also.
And yet this superiority was a perilous one and turned out later to be
one of
the chief causes of the world war.
But even if we disregard this
advantage of national independence in
economic matters there were certain
other positive features of our
social and political life which were of
outstanding excellence. These
features were represented by three institutions
which were constant
sources of regeneration. In their respective spheres they
were models of
perfection and were partly unrivalled.
The first of
these was the statal form as such and the manner in which
it had been
developed for Germany in modern times. Of course we must
except those
monarchs who, as human beings, were subject to the failings
which afflict
this life and its children. If we were not so tolerant in
these matters, then
the case of the present generation would be
hopeless; for if we take into
consideration the personal capabilities
and character of the representative
figures in our present regime it
would be difficult to imagine a more modest
level of intelligence and
moral character. If we measure the 'value' of the
German Revolution by
the personal worth and calibre of the individuals whom
this revolution
has presented to the German people since November 1918 then
we may feel
ashamed indeed in thinking of the judgment which posterity will
pass on
these people, when the Law for the Protection of the Republic can no
longer silence public opinion. Coming generations will surely decide
that the
intelligence and integrity of our new German leaders were in
adverse ratio to
their boasting and their vices.
It must be admitted that the monarchy had
become alien in spirit to many
citizens and especially the broad masses. This
resulted from the fact
that the monarchs were not always surrounded by the
highest
intelligence--so to say--and certainly not always by persons of the
most
upright character. Unfortunately many of them preferred flatterers to
honest-spoken men and hence received their 'information' from the
former.
This was a source of grave danger at a time when the world was
passing
through a period in which many of the old conditions were
changing and when
this change was affecting even the traditions of the
Court.
The
average man or woman could not have felt a wave of enthusiasm
surging within
the breast when, for example, at the turn of the century,
a princess in
uniform and on horseback had the soldiers file past her on
parade. Those high
circles had apparently no idea of the impression
which such a parade made on
the minds of ordinary people; else such
unfortunate occurrences would not
have taken place. The sentimental
humanitarianism--not always very
sincere--which was professed in those
high circles was often more repulsive
than attractive. When, for
instance, the Princess X condescended to taste the
products of a soup
kitchen and found them excellent, as usual, such a gesture
might have
made an excellent impression in times long past, but on this
occasion it
had the opposite effect to what was intended. For even if we take
it for
granted that Her Highness did not have the slightest idea, that on the
day she sampled it, the food was not quite the same as on other days, it
sufficed that the people knew it. Even the best of intentions thus
became an
object of ridicule or a cause of exasperation.
Descriptions of the
proverbial frugality practised by the monarch, his
much too early rise in the
morning and the drudgery he had to go through
all day long until late at
night, and especially the constantly
expressed fears lest he might become
undernourished--all this gave rise
to ominous expression on the part of the
people. Nobody was keen to know
what and how much the monarch ate or drank.
Nobody grudged him a full
meal, or the necessary amount of sleep. Everybody
was pleased when the
monarch, as a man and a personality, brought honour on
his family and
his country and fulfilled his duties as a sovereign. All the
legends
which were circulated about him helped little and did much damage.
These and such things, however, are only mere bagatelle. What was much
worse was the feeling, which spread throughout large sections of the
nation,
that the affairs of the individual were being taken care of from
above and
that he did not need to bother himself with them. As long as
the Government
was really good, or at least moved by goodwill, no
serious objections could
be raised.
But the country was destined to disaster when the old
Government, which
had at least striven for the best, became replaced by a new
regime which
was not of the same quality. Then the docile obedience and
infantile
credulity which formerly offered no resistance was bound to be one
of
the most fatal evils that can be imagined.
But against these and
other defects there were certain qualities which
undoubtedly had a positive
effect.
First of all the monarchical form of government guarantees
stability in
the direction of public affairs and safeguards public offices
from the
speculative turmoil of ambitious politicians. Furthermore, the
venerable
tradition which this institution possesses arouses a feeling which
gives
weight to the monarchical authority. Beyond this there is the fact that
the whole corps of officials, and the army in particular, are raised
above
the level of political party obligations. And still another
positive feature
was that the supreme rulership of the State was
embodied in the monarch, as
an individual person, who could serve as the
symbol of responsibility, which
a monarch has to bear more seriously
than any anonymous parliamentary
majority. Indeed, the proverbial
honesty and integrity of the German
administration must be attributed
chiefly to this fact. Finally, the monarchy
fulfilled a high cultural
function among the German people, which made amends
for many of its
defects. The German residential cities have remained, even to
our time,
centres of that artistic spirit which now threatens to disappear
and is
becoming more and more materialistic. The German princes gave a great
deal of excellent and practical encouragement to art and science,
especially
during the nineteenth century. Our present age certainly has
nothing of equal
worth.
During that process of disintegration which was slowly extending
throughout the social order the most positive force of resistance was
that
offered by the army. This was the strongest source of education
which the
German people possessed. For that reason all the hatred of our
enemies was
directed against the paladin of our national
self-preservation and our
liberty. The strongest testimony in favour of
this unique institution is the
fact that it was derided, hated and
fought against, but also feared, by
worthless elements all round. The
fact that the international profiteers who
gathered at Versailles,
further to exploit and plunder the nations directed
their enmity
specially against the old German army proved once again that it
deserved
to be regarded as the institution which protected the liberties of
our
people against the forces of the international stock-exchange. If the
army had not been there to sound the alarm and stand on guard, the
purposes
of the Versailles representatives would have been carried out
much sooner.
There is only one word to express what the German people
owe to this
army--Everything!
It was the army that still inculcated a sense of
responsibility among
the people when this quality had become very rare and
when the habit of
shirking every kind of responsibility was steadily
spreading. This habit
had grown up under the evil influences of Parliament,
which was itself
the very model of irresponsibility. The army trained the
people to
personal courage at a time when the virtue of timidity threatened
to
become an epidemic and when the spirit of sacrificing one's personal
interests for the good of the community was considered as something that
amounted almost to weak-mindedness. At a time when only those were
estimated
as intelligent who knew how to safeguard and promote their own
egotistic
interests, the army was the school through which individual
Germans were
taught not to seek the salvation of their nation in the
false ideology of
international fraternization between negroes, Germans,
Chinese, French and
English, etc., but in the strength and unity of
their own national being.
The army developed the individual's powers of resolute decision, and
this
at a time when a spirit of indecision and scepticism governed human
conduct.
At a time when the wiseacres were everywhere setting the
fashion it needed
courage to uphold the principle that any command is
better than none. This
one principle represents a robust and sound style
of thought, of which not a
trace would have been left in the other
branches of life if the army had not
furnished a constant rejuvenation
of this fundamental force. A sufficient
proof of this may be found in
the appalling lack of decision which our
present government authorities
display. They cannot shake off their mental
and moral lethargy and
decide on some definite line of action except when
they are forced to
sign some new dictate for the exploitation of the German
people. In that
case they decline all responsibility while at the same time
they sign
everything which the other side places before them; and they sign
with
the readiness of an official stenographer. Their conduct is here
explicable on the ground that in this case they are not under the
necessity
of coming to a decision; for the decision is dictated to them.
The army
imbued its members with a spirit of idealism and developed
their readiness to
sacrifice themselves for their country and its
honour, while greed and
materialism dominated in all the other branches
of life. The army united a
people who were split up into classes: and in
this respect had only one
defect, which was the One Year Military
Service, a privilege granted to those
who had passed through the high
schools. It was a defect, because the
principle of absolute equality was
thereby violated; and those who had a
better education were thus placed
outside the cadres to which the rest of
their comrades belonged. The
reverse would have been better. Since our upper
classes were really
ignorant of what was going on in the body corporate of
the nation and
were becoming more and more estranged from the life of the
people, the
army would have accomplished a very beneficial mission if it had
refused
to discriminate in favour of the so-called intellectuals, especially
within its own ranks. It was a mistake that this was not done; but in
this
world of ours can we find any institution that has not at least one
defect?
And in the army the good features were so absolutely predominant
that the few
defects it had were far below the average that generally
rises from human
weakness.
But the greatest credit which the army of the old Empire
deserves is
that, at a time when the person of the individual counted for
nothing
and the majority was everything, it placed individual personal values
above majority values. By insisting on its faith in personality, the
army
opposed that typically Jewish and democratic apotheosis of the
power of
numbers. The army trained what at that time was most surely
needed: namely,
real men. In a period when men were falling a prey to
effeminacy and laxity,
350,000 vigorously trained young men went from
the ranks of the army each
year to mingle with their fellow-men. In the
course of their two years'
training they had lost the softness of their
young days and had developed
bodies as tough as steel. The young man who
had been taught obedience for two
years was now fitted to command. The
trained soldier could be recognized
already by his walk.
This was the great school of the German nation; and
it was not without
reason that it drew upon its head all the bitter hatred of
those who
wanted the Empire to be weak and defenceless, because they were
jealous
of its greatness and were themselves possessed by a spirit of
rapacity
and greed. The rest of the world recognized a fact which many
Germans
did not wish to see, either because they were blind to facts or
because
out of malice they did not wish to see it. This fact was that the
German
Army was the most powerful weapon for the defence and freedom of the
German nation and the best guarantee for the livelihood of its citizens.
There was a third institution of positive worth, which has to be placed
beside that of the monarchy and the army. This was the civil service.
German administration was better organized and better carried out than
the
administration of other countries. There may have been objections to
the
bureaucratic routine of the officials, but from this point of view
the state
of affairs was similar, if not worse, in the other countries.
But the other
States did not have the wonderful solidarity which this
organization
possessed in Germany, nor were their civil servants of that
same high level
of scrupulous honesty. It is certainly better to be a
trifle
over-bureaucratic and honest and loyal than to be
over-sophisticated and
modern, the latter often implying an inferior
type of character and also
ignorance and inefficiency. For if it be
insinuated to-day that the German
administration of the pre-War period
may have been excellent so far as
bureaucratic technique goes, but that
from the practical business point of
view it was incompetent, I can only
give the following reply: What other
country in the world possessed a
better-organized and administered business
enterprise than the German
State Railways, for instance? It was left to the
Revolution to destroy
this standard organization, until a time came when it
was taken out of
the hands of the nation and socialized, in the sense which
the founders
of the Republic had given to that word, namely, making it
subservient to
the international stock-exchange capitalists, who were the
wire-pullers
of the German Revolution.
The most outstanding trait in
the civil service and the whole body of
the civil administration was its
independence of the vicissitudes of
government, the political mentality of
which could exercise no influence
on the attitude of the German State
officials. Since the Revolution this
situation has been completely changed.
Efficiency and capability have
been replaced by the test of party-adherence;
and independence of
character and initiative are no longer appreciated as
positive qualities
in a public official. They rather tell against him.
The wonderful might and power of the old Empire was based on the
monarchical form of government, the army and the civil service. On these
three foundations rested that great strength which is now entirely
lacking;
namely, the authority of the State. For the authority of the
State cannot be
based on the babbling that goes on in Parliament or in
the provincial diets
and not upon laws made to protect the State, or
upon sentences passed by the
law courts to frighten those who have had
the hardihood to deny the authority
of the State, but only on the
general confidence which the management and
administration of the
community establishes among the people. This confidence
is in its turn,
nothing else than the result of an unshakable inner
conviction that the
government and administration of a country is inspired by
disinterested
and honest goodwill and on the feeling that the spirit of the
law is in
complete harmony with the moral convictions of the people. In the
long
run, systems of government are not maintained by terrorism but on the
belief of the people in the merits and sincerity of those who administer
and
promote the public interests.
Though it be true that in the period
preceding the War certain grave
evils tended to infect and corrode the inner
strength of the nation, it
must be remembered that the other States suffered
even more than Germany
from these drawbacks and yet those other States did
not fail and break
down when the time of crisis came. If we remember further
that those
defects in pre-War Germany were outweighed by great positive
qualities
we shall have to look elsewhere for the effective cause of the
collapse.
And elsewhere it lay.
The ultimate and most profound reason
of the German downfall is to be
found in the fact that the racial problem was
ignored and that its
importance in the historical development of nations was
not grasped. For
the events that take place in the life of nations are not
due to chance
but are the natural results of the effort to conserve and
multiply the
species and the race, even though men may not be able
consciously to
picture to their minds the profound motives of their conduct.
CHAPTER XI
RACE AND PEOPLE
There are
certain truths which stand out so openly on the roadsides of
life, as it
were, that every passer-by may see them. Yet, because of
their very
obviousness, the general run of people disregard such truths
or at least they
do not make them the object of any conscious knowledge.
People are so blind
to some of the simplest facts in every-day life that
they are highly
surprised when somebody calls attention to what
everybody ought to know.
Examples of The Columbus Egg lie around us in
hundreds of thousands; but
observers like Columbus are rare.
Walking about in the garden of Nature,
most men have the self-conceit to
think that they know everything; yet almost
all are blind to one of the
outstanding principles that Nature employs in her
work. This principle
may be called the inner isolation which characterizes
each and every
living species on this earth.
Even a superficial glance
is sufficient to show that all the innumerable
forms in which the life-urge
of Nature manifests itself are subject to a
fundamental law--one may call it
an iron law of Nature--which compels
the various species to keep within the
definite limits of their own
life-forms when propagating and multiplying
their kind. Each animal
mates only with one of its own species. The titmouse
cohabits only with
the titmouse, the finch with the finch, the stork with the
stork, the
field-mouse with the field-mouse, the house-mouse with the
house-mouse,
the wolf with the she-wolf, etc.
Deviations from this law
take place only in exceptional circumstances.
This happens especially under
the compulsion of captivity, or when some
other obstacle makes procreative
intercourse impossible between
individuals of the same species. But then
Nature abhors such intercourse
with all her might; and her protest is most
clearly demonstrated by the
fact that the hybrid is either sterile or the
fecundity of its
descendants is limited. In most cases hybrids and their
progeny are
denied the ordinary powers of resistance to disease or the
natural means
of defence against outer attack.
Such a dispensation of
Nature is quite logical. Every crossing between
two breeds which are not
quite equal results in a product which holds an
intermediate place between
the levels of the two parents. This means
that the offspring will indeed be
superior to the parent which stands in
the biologically lower order of being,
but not so high as the higher
parent. For this reason it must eventually
succumb in any struggle
against the higher species. Such mating contradicts
the will of Nature
towards the selective improvements of life in general. The
favourable
preliminary to this improvement is not to mate individuals of
higher and
lower orders of being but rather to allow the complete triumph of
the
higher order. The stronger must dominate and not mate with the weaker,
which would signify the sacrifice of its own higher nature. Only the
born
weakling can look upon this principle as cruel, and if he does so
it is
merely because he is of a feebler nature and narrower mind; for if
such a law
did not direct the process of evolution then the higher
development of
organic life would not be conceivable at all.
This urge for the
maintenance of the unmixed breed, which is a
phenomenon that prevails
throughout the whole of the natural world,
results not only in the sharply
defined outward distinction between one
species and another but also in the
internal similarity of
characteristic qualities which are peculiar to each
breed or species.
The fox remains always a fox, the goose remains a goose,
and the tiger
will retain the character of a tiger. The only difference that
can exist
within the species must be in the various degrees of structural
strength
and active power, in the intelligence, efficiency, endurance, etc.,
with
which the individual specimens are endowed. It would be impossible to
find a fox which has a kindly and protective disposition towards geese,
just
as no cat exists which has a friendly disposition towards mice.
That is
why the struggle between the various species does not arise from
a feeling of
mutual antipathy but rather from hunger and love. In both
cases Nature looks
on calmly and is even pleased with what happens. The
struggle for the daily
livelihood leaves behind in the ruck everything
that is weak or diseased or
wavering; while the fight of the male to
possess the female gives to the
strongest the right, or at least, the
possibility to propagate its kind. And
this struggle is a means of
furthering the health and powers of resistance in
the species. Thus it
is one of the causes underlying the process of
development towards a
higher quality of being.
If the case were
different the progressive process would cease, and even
retrogression might
set in. Since the inferior always outnumber the
superior, the former would
always increase more rapidly if they
possessed the same capacities for
survival and for the procreation of
their kind; and the final consequence
would be that the best in quality
would be forced to recede into the
background. Therefore a corrective
measure in favour of the better quality
must intervene. Nature supplies
this by establishing rigorous conditions of
life to which the weaker
will have to submit and will thereby be numerically
restricted; but even
that portion which survives cannot indiscriminately
multiply, for here a
new and rigorous selection takes place, according to
strength and
health.
If Nature does not wish that weaker individuals
should mate with the
stronger, she wishes even less that a superior race
should intermingle
with an inferior one; because in such a case all her
efforts, throughout
hundreds of thousands of years, to establish an
evolutionary higher
stage of being, may thus be rendered futile.
History furnishes us with innumerable instances that prove this law. It
shows, with a startling clarity, that whenever Aryans have mingled their
blood with that of an inferior race the result has been the downfall of
the
people who were the standard-bearers of a higher culture. In North
America,
where the population is prevalently Teutonic, and where those
elements
intermingled with the inferior race only to a very small
degree, we have a
quality of mankind and a civilization which are
different from those of
Central and South America. In these latter
countries the immigrants--who
mainly belonged to the Latin races--mated
with the aborigines, sometimes to a
very large extent indeed. In this
case we have a clear and decisive example
of the effect produced by the
mixture of races. But in North America the
Teutonic element, which has
kept its racial stock pure and did not mix it
with any other racial
stock, has come to dominate the American Continent and
will remain
master of it as long as that element does not fall a victim to
the habit
of adulterating its blood.
In short, the results of
miscegenation are always the following:
(a) The level of the superior
race becomes lowered;
(b) physical and mental degeneration sets in, thus
leading slowly but
steadily towards a progressive drying up of the vital sap.
The act which brings about such a development is a sin against the will
of the Eternal Creator. And as a sin this act will be avenged.
Man's
effort to build up something that contradicts the iron logic of
Nature brings
him into conflict with those principles to which he
himself exclusively owes
his own existence. By acting against the laws
of Nature he prepares the way
that leads to his ruin.
Here we meet the insolent objection, which is
Jewish in its inspiration
and is typical of the modern pacifist. It says:
"Man can control even
Nature."
There are millions who repeat by rote
that piece of Jewish babble and
end up by imagining that somehow they
themselves are the conquerors of
Nature. And yet their only weapon is just a
mere idea, and a very
preposterous idea into the bargain; because if one
accepted it, then it
would be impossible even to imagine the existence of the
world.
The real truth is that, not only has man failed to overcome Nature
in
any sphere whatsoever but that at best he has merely succeeded in
getting hold of and lifting a tiny corner of the enormous veil which she
has
spread over her eternal mysteries and secret. He never creates
anything. All
he can do is to discover something. He does not master
Nature but has only
come to be the master of those living beings who
have not gained the
knowledge he has arrived at by penetrating into some
of Nature's laws and
mysteries. Apart from all this, an idea can never
subject to its own sway
those conditions which are necessary for the
existence and development of
mankind; for the idea itself has come only
from man. Without man there would
be no human idea in this world. The
idea as such is therefore always
dependent on the existence of man and
consequently is dependent on those laws
which furnish the conditions of
his existence.
And not only that.
Certain ideas are even confined to certain people.
This holds true with
regard to those ideas in particular which have not
their roots in objective
scientific truth but in the world of feeling.
In other words, to use a phrase
which is current to-day and which well
and clearly expresses this truth: THEY
REFLECT AN INNER EXPERIENCE. All
such ideas, which have nothing to do with
cold logic as such but
represent mere manifestations of feeling, such as
ethical and moral
conceptions, etc., are inextricably bound up with man's
existence. It is
to the creative powers of man's imagination that such ideas
owe their
existence.
Now, then, a necessary condition for the
maintenance of such ideas is
the existence of certain races and certain types
of men. For example,
anyone who sincerely wishes that the pacifist idea
should prevail in
this world ought to do all he is capable of doing to help
the Germans
conquer the world; for in case the reverse should happen it may
easily
be that the last pacifist would disappear with the last German. I say
this because, unfortunately, only our people, and no other people in the
world, fell a prey to this idea. Whether you like it or not, you would
have
to make up your mind to forget wars if you would achieve the
pacifist ideal.
Nothing less than this was the plan of the American
world-redeemer, Woodrow
Wilson. Anyhow that was what our visionaries
believed, and they thought that
through his plans their ideals would be
attained.
The
pacifist-humanitarian idea may indeed become an excellent one when
the most
superior type of manhood will have succeeded in subjugating the
world to such
an extent that this type is then sole master of the earth.
This idea could
have an injurious effect only in the measure according
to which its
application would become difficult and finally impossible.
So, first of all,
the fight and then pacifism. If the case were
different it would mean that
mankind has already passed the zenith of
its development, and accordingly the
end would not be the supremacy of
some moral ideal but degeneration into
barbarism and consequent chaos.
People may laugh at this statement; but our
planet has been moving
through the spaces of ether for millions and millions
of years,
uninhabited by men, and at some future date may easily begin to do
so
again--if men should forget that wherever they have reached a superior
level of existence, it was not the result of following the ideas of
crazy
visionaries but by acknowledging and rigorously observing the iron
laws of
Nature.
All that we admire in the world to-day, its science, its art, its
technical developments and discoveries, are the products of the creative
activities of a few peoples, and it may be true that their first
beginnings
must be attributed to one race. The maintenance of
civilization is wholly
dependent on such peoples. Should they perish,
all that makes this earth
beautiful will descend with them into the
grave.
However great, for
example, be the influence which the soil exerts on
men, this influence will
always vary according to the race in which it
produces its effect. Dearth of
soil may stimulate one race to the most
strenuous efforts and highest
achievement; while, for another race, the
poverty of the soil may be the
cause of misery and finally of
undernourishment, with all its consequences.
The internal
characteristics of a people are always the causes which
determine the
nature of the effect that outer circumstances have on them.
What reduces
one race to starvation trains another race to harder work.
All the great civilizations of the past became decadent because the
originally creative race died out, as a result of contamination of the
blood.
The most profound cause of such a decline is to be found in the fact
that
the people ignored the principle that all culture depends on men,
and not the
reverse. In other words, in order to preserve a certain
culture, the type of
manhood that creates such a culture must be
preserved. But such a
preservation goes hand-in-hand with the inexorable
law that it is the
strongest and the best who must triumph and that they
have the right to
endure.
He who would live must fight. He who does not wish to fight in
this
world, where permanent struggle is the law of life, has not the right to
exist.
Such a saying may sound hard; but, after all, that is how the
matter
really stands. Yet far harder is the lot of him who believes that he
can
overcome Nature and thus in reality insults her. Distress, misery, and
disease are her rejoinders.
Whoever ignores or despises the laws of race
really deprives himself of
the happiness to which he believes he can attain.
For he places an
obstacle in the victorious path of the superior race and, by
so doing,
he interferes with a prerequisite condition of all human progress.
Loaded with the burden of humanitarian sentiment, he falls back to the
level
of those who are unable to raise themselves in the scale of being.
It
would be futile to attempt to discuss the question as to what race or
races
were the original standard-bearers of human culture and were
thereby the real
founders of all that we understand by the word
humanity. It is much simpler
to deal with this question in so far as it
relates to the present time. Here
the answer is simple and clear. Every
manifestation of human culture, every
product of art, science and
technical skill, which we see before our eyes
to-day, is almost
exclusively the product of the Aryan creative power. This
very fact
fully justifies the conclusion that it was the Aryan alone who
founded a
superior type of humanity; therefore he represents the architype of
what
we understand by the term: MAN. He is the Prometheus of mankind, from
whose shining brow the divine spark of genius has at all times flashed
forth,
always kindling anew that fire which, in the form of knowledge,
illuminated
the dark night by drawing aside the veil of mystery and thus
showing man how
to rise and become master over all the other beings on
the earth. Should he
be forced to disappear, a profound darkness will
descend on the earth; within
a few thousand years human culture will
vanish and the world will become a
desert.
If we divide mankind into three categories--founders of culture,
bearers
of culture, and destroyers of culture--the Aryan alone can be
considered
as representing the first category. It was he who laid the
groundwork
and erected the walls of every great structure in human culture.
Only
the shape and colour of such structures are to be attributed to the
individual characteristics of the various nations. It is the Aryan who
has
furnished the great building-stones and plans for the edifices of
all human
progress; only the way in which these plans have been executed
is to be
attributed to the qualities of each individual race. Within a
few decades the
whole of Eastern Asia, for instance, appropriated a
culture and called such a
culture its own, whereas the basis of that
culture was the Greek mind and
Teutonic skill as we know it. Only the
external form--at least to a certain
degree--shows the traits of an
Asiatic inspiration. It is not true, as some
believe, that Japan adds
European technique to a culture of her own. The
truth rather is that
European science and technics are just decked out with
the peculiar
characteristics of Japanese civilization. The foundations of
actual life
in Japan to-day are not those of the native Japanese culture,
although
this characterizes the external features of the country, which
features
strike the eye of European observers on account of their fundamental
difference from us; but the real foundations of contemporary Japanese
life
are the enormous scientific and technical achievements of Europe
and America,
that is to say, of Aryan peoples. Only by adopting these
achievements as the
foundations of their own progress can the various
nations of the Orient take
a place in contemporary world progress. The
scientific and technical
achievements of Europe and America provide the
basis on which the struggle
for daily livelihood is carried on in the
Orient. They provide the necessary
arms and instruments for this
struggle, and only the outer forms of these
instruments have become
gradually adapted to Japanese ways of life.
If, from to-day onwards, the Aryan influence on Japan would cease--and
if we
suppose that Europe and America would collapse--then the present
progress of
Japan in science and technique might still last for a short
duration; but
within a few decades the inspiration would dry up, and
native Japanese
character would triumph, while the present civilization
would become
fossilized and fall back into the sleep from which it was
aroused about
seventy years ago by the impact of Aryan culture. We may
therefore draw the
conclusion that, just as the present Japanese
development has been due to
Aryan influence, so in the immemorial past
an outside influence and an
outside culture brought into existence the
Japanese culture of that day. This
opinion is very strongly supported by
the fact that the ancient civilization
of Japan actually became
fossilizied and petrified. Such a process of
senility can happen only if
a people loses the racial cell which originally
had been creative or if
the outside influence should be withdrawn after
having awakened and
maintained the first cultural developments in that
region. If it be
shown that a people owes the fundamental elements of its
culture to
foreign races, assimilating and elaborating such elements, and if
subsequently that culture becomes fossilized whenever the external
influence
ceases, then such a race may be called the depository but
never the creator
of a culture.
If we subject the different peoples to a strict test from
this
standpoint we shall find that scarcely any one of them has originally
created a culture, but almost all have been merely the recipients of a
culture created elsewhere.
This development may be depicted as always
happening somewhat in the
following way:
Aryan tribes, often almost
ridiculously small in number, subjugated
foreign peoples and, stimulated by
the conditions of life which their
new country offered them (fertility, the
nature of the climate, etc.),
and profiting also by the abundance of manual
labour furnished them by
the inferior race, they developed intellectual and
organizing faculties
which had hitherto been dormant in these conquering
tribes. Within the
course of a few thousand years, or even centuries, they
gave life to
cultures whose primitive traits completely corresponded to the
character
of the founders, though modified by adaptation to the peculiarities
of
the soil and the characteristics of the subjugated people. But finally
the conquering race offended against the principles which they first had
observed, namely, the maintenance of their racial stock unmixed, and
they
began to intermingle with the subjugated people. Thus they put an
end to
their own separate existence; for the original sin committed in
Paradise has
always been followed by the expulsion of the guilty
parties.
After a
thousand years or more the last visible traces of those former
masters may
then be found in a lighter tint of the skin which the Aryan
blood had
bequeathed to the subjugated race, and in a fossilized culture
of which those
Aryans had been the original creators. For just as the
blood. of the
conqueror, who was a conqueror not only in body but also
in spirit, got
submerged in the blood of the subject race, so the
substance disappeared out
of which the torch of human culture and
progress was kindled. In so far as
the blood of the former ruling race
has left a light nuance of colour in the
blood of its descendants, as a
token and a memory, the night of cultural life
is rendered less dim and
dark by a mild light radiated from the products of
those who were the
bearers of the original fire. Their radiance shines across
the barbarism
to which the subjected race has reverted and might often lead
the
superficial observer to believe that he sees before him an image of the
present race when he is really looking into a mirror wherein only the
past is
reflected.
It may happen that in the course of its history such a people
will come
into contact a second time, and even oftener, with the original
founders
of their culture and may not even remember that distant association.
Instinctively the remnants of blood left from that old ruling race will
be
drawn towards this new phenomenon and what had formerly been possible
only
under compulsion can now be successfully achieved in a voluntary
way. A new
cultural wave flows in and lasts until the blood of its
standard-bearers
becomes once again adulterated by intermixture with the
originally conquered
race.
It will be the task of those who set themselves to the study of a
universal history of civilization to investigate history from this point
of
view instead of allowing themselves to be smothered under the mass of
external data, as is only too often the case with our present historical
science.
This short sketch of the changes that take place among those
races that
are only the depositories of a culture also furnishes a picture of
the
development and the activity and the disappearance of those who are the
true founders of culture on this earth, namely the Aryans themselves.
Just as in our daily life the so-called man of genius needs a particular
occasion, and sometimes indeed a special stimulus, to bring his genius
to
light, so too in the life of the peoples the race that has genius in
it needs
the occasion and stimulus to bring that genius to expression.
In the monotony
and routine of everyday life even persons of
significance seem just like the
others and do not rise beyond the
average level of their fellow-men. But as
soon as such men find
themselves in a special situation which disconcerts and
unbalances the
others, the humble person of apparently common qualities
reveals traits
of genius, often to the amazement of those who have hitherto
known him
in the small things of everyday life. That is the reason why a
prophet
only seldom counts for something in his own country. War offers an
excellent occasion for observing this phenomenon. In times of distress,
when
the others despair, apparently harmless boys suddenly spring up and
become
heroes, full of determination, undaunted in the presence of Death
and
manifesting wonderful powers of calm reflection under such
circumstances. If
such an hour of trial did not come nobody would have
thought that the soul of
a hero lurked in the body of that beardless
youth. A special impulse is
almost always necessary to bring a man of
genius into the foreground. The
sledge-hammer of Fate which strikes down
the one so easily suddenly finds the
counter-impact of steel when it
strikes at the other. And, after the common
shell of everyday life is
broken, the core that lay hidden in it is displayed
to the eyes of an
astonished world. This surrounding world then grows
obstinate and will
not believe that what had seemed so like itself is really
of that
different quality so suddenly displayed. This is a process which is
repeated probably every time a man of outstanding significance appears.
Though an inventor, for example, does not establish his fame until the
very
day that he carries through his invention, it would be a mistake to
believe
that the creative genius did not become alive in him until that
moment. From
the very hour of his birth the spark of genius is living
within the man who
has been endowed with the real creative faculty. True
genius is an innate
quality. It can never be the result of education or
training.
As I
have stated already, this holds good not merely of the individual
but also of
the race. Those peoples who manifest creative abilities in
certain periods of
their history have always been fundamentally
creative. It belongs to their
very nature, even though this fact may
escape the eyes of the superficial
observer. Here also recognition from
outside is only the consequence of
practical achievement. Since the rest
of the world is incapable of
recognizing genius as such, it can only see
the visible manifestations of
genius in the form of inventions,
discoveries, buildings, painting, etc.; but
even here a long time passes
before recognition is given. Just as the
individual person who has been
endowed with the gift of genius, or at least
talent of a very high
order, cannot bring that endowment to realization until
he comes under
the urge of special circumstances, so in the life of the
nations the
creative capacities and powers frequently have to wait until
certain
conditions stimulate them to action.
The most obvious example
of this truth is furnished by that race which
has been, and still is, the
standard-bearer of human progress: I mean
the Aryan race. As soon as Fate
brings them face to face with special
circumstances their powers begin to
develop progressively and to be
manifested in tangible form. The
characteristic cultures which they
create under such circumstances are almost
always conditioned by the
soil, the climate and the people they subjugate.
The last factor--that
of the character of the people--is the most decisive
one. The more
primitive the technical conditions under which the civilizing
activity
takes place, the more necessary is the existence of manual labour
which
can be organized and employed so as to take the place of mechanical
power. Had it not been possible for them to employ members of the
inferior
race which they conquered, the Aryans would never have been in
a position to
take the first steps on the road which led them to a later
type of culture;
just as, without the help of certain suitable animals
which they were able to
tame, they would never have come to the
invention of mechanical power which
has subsequently enabled them to do
without these beasts. The phrase, 'The
Moor has accomplished his
function, so let him now depart', has,
unfortunately, a profound
application. For thousands of years the horse has
been the faithful
servant of man and has helped him to lay the foundations of
human
progress, but now motor power has dispensed with the use of the horse.
In a few years to come the use of the horse will cease entirely; and yet
without its collaboration man could scarcely have come to the stage of
development which he has now created.
For the establishment of superior
types of civilization the members of
inferior races formed one of the most
essential pre-requisites. They
alone could supply the lack of mechanical
means without which no
progress is possible. It is certain that the first
stages of human
civilization were not based so much on the use of tame
animals as on the
employment of human beings who were members of an inferior
race.
Only after subjugated races were employed as slaves was a similar
fate
allotted to animals, and not vice versa, as some people would have us
believe. At first it was the conquered enemy who had to draw the plough
and
only afterwards did the ox and horse take his place. Nobody else but
puling
pacifists can consider this fact as a sign of human degradation.
Such people
fail to recognize that this evolution had to take place in
order that man
might reach that degree of civilization which these
apostles now exploit in
an attempt to make the world pay attention to
their rigmarole.
The
progress of mankind may be compared to the process of ascending an
infinite
ladder. One does not reach the higher level without first
having climbed the
lower rungs. The Aryan therefore had to take that
road which his sense of
reality pointed out to him and not that which
the modern pacifist dreams of.
The path of reality is, however,
difficult and hard to tread; yet it is the
only one which finally leads
to the goal where the others envisage mankind in
their dreams. But the
real truth is that those dreamers help only to lead man
away from his
goal rather than towards it.
It was not by mere chance
that the first forms of civilization arose
there where the Aryan came into
contact with inferior races, subjugated
them and forced them to obey his
command. The members of the inferior
race became the first mechanical tools
in the service of a growing
civilization.
Thereby the way was clearly
indicated which the Aryan had to follow. As
a conqueror, he subjugated
inferior races and turned their physical
powers into organized channels under
his own leadership, forcing them to
follow his will and purpose. By imposing
on them a useful, though hard,
manner of employing their powers he not only
spared the lives of those
whom he had conquered but probably made their lives
easier than these
had been in the former state of so-called 'freedom'. While
he ruthlessly
maintained his position as their master, he not only remained
master but
he also maintained and advanced civilization. For this depended
exclusively on his inborn abilities and, therefore, on the preservation
of
the Aryan race as such. As soon, however, as his subject began to
rise and
approach the level of their conqueror, a phase of which
ascension was
probably the use of his language, the barriers that had
distinguished master
from servant broke down. The Aryan neglected to
maintain his own racial stock
unmixed and therewith lost the right to
live in the paradise which he himself
had created. He became submerged
in the racial mixture and gradually lost his
cultural creativeness,
until he finally grew, not only mentally but also
physically, more like
the aborigines whom he had subjected rather than his
own ancestors. For
some time he could continue to live on the capital of that
culture which
still remained; but a condition of fossilization soon set in
and he sank
into oblivion.
That is how cultures and empires decline
and yield their places to new
formations.
The adulteration of the
blood and racial deterioration conditioned
thereby are the only causes that
account for the decline of ancient
civilizations; for it is never by war that
nations are ruined, but by
the loss of their powers of resistance, which are
exclusively a
characteristic of pure racial blood. In this world everything
that is
not of sound racial stock is like chaff. Every historical event in
the
world is nothing more nor less than a manifestation of the instinct of
racial self-preservation, whether for weal or woe.
The question as to the
ground reasons for the predominant importance of
Aryanism can be answered by
pointing out that it is not so much that the
Aryans are endowed with a
stronger instinct for self-preservation, but
rather that this manifests
itself in a way which is peculiar to
themselves. Considered from the
subjective standpoint, the will-to-live
is of course equally strong all round
and only the forms in which it is
expressed are different. Among the most
primitive organisms the instinct
for self-preservation does not extend beyond
the care of the individual
ego. Egotism, as we call this passion, is so
predominant that it
includes even the time element; which means that the
present moment is
deemed the most important and that nothing is left to the
future. The
animal lives only for itself, searching for food only when it
feels
hunger and fighting only for the preservation of its own life. As long
as the instinct for self-preservation manifests itself exclusively in
such a
way, there is no basis for the establishment of a community; not
even the
most primitive form of all, that is to say the family. The
society formed by
the male with the female, where it goes beyond the
mere conditions of mating,
calls for the extension of the instinct of
self-preservation, since the
readiness to fight for one's own ego has to
be extended also to the mate. The
male sometimes provides food for the
female, but in most cases both parents
provide food for the offspring.
Almost always they are ready to protect and
defend each other; so that
here we find the first, though infinitely simple,
manifestation of the
spirit of sacrifice. As soon as this spirit extends
beyond the narrow
limits of the family, we have the conditions under which
larger
associations and finally even States can be formed.
The lowest
species of human beings give evidence of this quality only to
a very small
degree, so that often they do not go beyond the formation
of the family
society. With an increasing readiness to place their
immediate personal
interests in the background, the capacity for
organizing more extensive
communities develops.
The readiness to sacrifice one's personal work and,
if necessary, even
one's life for others shows its most highly developed form
in the Aryan
race. The greatness of the Aryan is not based on his
intellectual
powers, but rather on his willingness to devote all his
faculties to the
service of the community. Here the instinct for
self-preservation has
reached its noblest form; for the Aryan willingly
subordinates his own
ego to the common weal and when necessity calls he will
even sacrifice
his own life for the community.
The constructive powers
of the Aryan and that peculiar ability he has
for the building up of a
culture are not grounded in his intellectual
gifts alone. If that were so
they might only be destructive and could
never have the ability to organize;
for the latter essentially depends
on the readiness of the individual to
renounce his own personal opinions
and interests and to lay both at the
service of the human group. By
serving the common weal he receives his reward
in return. For example,
he does not work directly for himself but makes his
productive work a
part of the activity of the group to which he belongs, not
only for his
own benefit but for the general. The spirit underlying this
attitude is
expressed by the word: WORK, which to him does not at all signify
a
means of earning one's daily livelihood but rather a productive activity
which cannot clash with the interests of the community. Whenever human
activity is directed exclusively to the service of the instinct for
self-preservation it is called theft or usury, robbery or burglary, etc.
This mental attitude, which forces self-interest to recede into the
background in favour of the common weal, is the first prerequisite for
any
kind of really human civilization. It is out of this spirit alone
that great
human achievements have sprung for which the original doers
have scarcely
ever received any recompense but which turns out to be the
source of abundant
benefit for their descendants. It is this spirit
alone which can explain why
it so often happens that people can endure a
harsh but honest existence which
offers them no returns for their toil
except a poor and modest livelihood.
But such a livelihood helps to
consolidate the foundations on which the
community exists. Every worker
and every peasant, every inventor, state
official, etc., who works
without ever achieving fortune or prosperity for
himself, is a
representative of this sublime idea, even though he may never
become
conscious of the profound meaning of his own activity.
Everything that may be said of that kind of work which is the
fundamental
condition of providing food and the basic means of human
progress is true
even in a higher sense of work that is done for the
protection of man and his
civilization. The renunciation of one's own
life for the sake of the
community is the crowning significance of the
idea of all sacrifice. In this
way only is it possible to protect what
has been built up by man and to
assure that this will not be destroyed
by the hand of man or of nature.
In the German language we have a word which admirably expresses this
underlying spirit of all work: It is Pflichterfüllung, which means the
service of the common weal before the consideration of one's own
interests.
The fundamental spirit out of which this kind of activity
springs is the
contradistinction of 'Egotism' and we call it 'Idealism'.
By this we mean to
signify the willingness of the individual to make
sacrifices for the
community and his fellow-men.
It is of the utmost importance to insist
again and again that idealism
is not merely a superfluous manifestation of
sentiment but rather
something which has been, is and always will be, a
necessary
precondition of human civilization; it is even out of this that the
very
idea of the word 'Human' arises. To this kind of mentality the Aryan
owes his position in the world. And the world is indebted to the Aryan
mind
for having developed the concept of 'mankind'; for it is out of
this spirit
alone that the creative force has come which in a unique way
combined robust
muscular power with a first-class intellect and thus
created the monuments of
human civilization.
Were it not for idealism all the faculties of the
intellect, even the
most brilliant, would be nothing but intellect itself, a
mere external
phenomenon without inner value and never a creative force.
Since true idealism, however, is essentially the subordination of the
interests and life of the individual to the interests and life of the
community, and since the community on its part represents the
pre-requisite
condition of every form of organization, this idealism
accords in its
innermost essence with the final purpose of Nature. This
feeling alone makes
men voluntarily acknowledge that strength and power
are entitled to take the
lead and thus makes them a constituent particle
in that order out of which
the whole universe is shaped and formed.
Without being conscious of it,
the purest idealism is always associated
with the most profound knowledge.
How true this is and how little
genuine idealism has to do with fantastic
self-dramatization will become
clear the moment we ask an unspoilt child, a
healthy boy for example, to
give his opinion. The very same boy who listens
to the rantings of an
'idealistic' pacifist without understanding them, and
even rejects them,
would readily sacrifice his young life for the ideal of
his people.
Unconsciously his instinct will submit to the knowledge that
the
preservation of the species, even at the cost of the individual life, is
a primal necessity and he will protest against the fantasies of pacifist
ranters, who in reality are nothing better than cowardly egoists, even
though
camouflaged, who contradict the laws of human development. For it
is a
necessity of human evolution that the individual should be imbued
with the
spirit of sacrifice in favour of the common weal, and that he
should not be
influenced by the morbid notions of those knaves who
pretend to know better
than Nature and who have the impudencc to
criticize her decrees.
It is
just at those junctures when the idealistic attitude threatens to
disappear
that we notice a weakening of this force which is a necessary
constituent in
the founding and maintenance of the community and is
thereby a necessary
condition of civilization. As soon as the spirit of
egotism begins to prevail
among a people then the bonds of the social
order break and man, by seeking
his own personal happiness, veritably
tumbles out of heaven and falls into
hell.
Posterity will not remember those who pursued only their own
individual
interests, but it will praise those heroes who renounced their own
happiness.
The Jew offers the most striking contrast to the Aryan. There
is
probably no other people in the world who have so developed the instinct
of self-preservation as the so-called 'chosen' people. The best proof of
this
statement is found in the simple fact that this race still exists.
Where can
another people be found that in the course of the last two
thousand years has
undergone so few changes in mental outlook and
character as the Jewish
people? And yet what other people has taken such
a constant part in the great
revolutions? But even after having passed
through the most gigantic
catastrophes that have overwhelmed mankind,
the Jews remain the same as ever.
What an infinitely tenacious
will-to-live, to preserve one's kind, is
demonstrated by that fact!
The intellectual faculties of the Jew have
been trained through
thousands of years. To-day the Jew is looked upon as
specially
'cunning'; and in a certain sense he has been so throughout the
ages.
His intellectual powers, however, are not the result of an inner
evolution but rather have been shaped by the object-lessons which the
Jew has
received from others. The human spirit cannot climb upwards
without taking
successive steps. For every step upwards it needs the
foundation of what has
been constructed before--the past--which in, the
comprehensive sense here
employed, can have been laid only in a general
civilization. All thinking
originates only to a very small degree in
personal experience. The largest
part is based on the accumulated
experiences of the past. The general level
of civilization provides the
individual, who in most cases is not consciously
aware of the fact, with
such an abundance of preliminary knowledge that with
this equipment he
can more easily take further steps on the road of progress.
The boy of
to-day, for example, grows up among such an overwhelming mass of
technical achievement which has accumulated during the last century that
he
takes as granted many things which a hundred years ago were still
mysteries
even to the greatest minds of those times. Yet these things
that are not so
much a matter of course are of enormous importance to
those who would
understand the progress we have made in these matters
and would carry on that
progress a step farther. If a man of genius
belonging to the 'twenties of the
last century were to arise from his
grave to-day he would find it more
difficult to understand our present
age than the contemporary boy of fifteen
years of age who may even have
only an average intelligence. The man of
genius, thus come back from the
past, would need to provide himself with an
extraordinary amount of
preliminary information which our contemporary youth
receive
automatically, so to speak, during the time they are growing up among
the products of our modern civilization.
Since the Jew--for reasons that
I shall deal with immediately--never had
a civilization of his own, he has
always been furnished by others with a
basis for his: intellectual work. His
intellect has always developed by
the use of those cultural achievements
which he has found ready-to-hand
around him.
The process has never
been the reverse.
For, though among the Jews the instinct of
self-preservation has not
been weaker but has been much stronger than among
other peoples, and
though the impression may easily be created that the
intellectual powers
of the Jew are at least equal to those of other races,
the Jews
completely lack the most essential pre-requisite of a cultural
people,
namely the idealistic spirit. With the Jewish people the readiness
for
sacrifice does not extend beyond the simple instinct of individual
preservation. In their case the feeling of racial solidarity which they
apparently manifest is nothing but a very primitive gregarious instinct,
similar to that which may be found among other organisms in this world.
It is
a remarkable fact that this herd instinct brings individuals
together for
mutual protection only as long as there is a common danger
which makes mutual
assistance expedient or inevitable. The same pack of
wolves which a moment
ago joined together in a common attack on their
victim will dissolve into
individual wolves as soon as their hunger has
been satisfied. This is also
sure of horses, which unite to defend
themselves against any aggressor but
separate the moment the danger is
over.
It is much the same with the
Jew. His spirit of sacrifice is only
apparent. It manifests itself only so
long as the existence of the
individual makes this a matter of absolute
necessity. But as soon as the
common foe is conquered and the danger which
threatened the individual
Jews is overcome and the prey secured, then the
apparent harmony
disappears and the original conditions set in again. Jews
act in concord
only when a common danger threatens them or a common prey
attracts them.
Where these two motives no longer exist then the most brutal
egotism
appears and these people who before had lived together in unity will
turn into a swarm of rats that bitterly fight against each other.
If the
Jews were the only people in the world they would be wallowing in
filth and
mire and would exploit one another and try to exterminate one
another in a
bitter struggle, except in so far as their utter lack of
the ideal of
sacrifice, which shows itself in their cowardly spirit,
would prevent this
struggle from developing.
Therefore it would be a complete mistake to
interpret the mutual help
which the Jews render one another when they have to
fight--or, to put it
more accurately, to exploit--their fellow being, as the
expression of a
certain idealistic spirit of sacrifice.
Here again the
Jew merely follows the call of his individual egotism.
That is why the Jewish
State, which ought to be a vital organization to
serve the purpose of
preserving or increasing the race, has absolutely
no territorial boundaries.
For the territorial delimitation of a State
always demands a certain idealism
of spirit on the part of the race
which forms that State and especially a
proper acceptance of the idea of
work. A State which is territorially
delimited cannot be established or
maintained unless the general attitude
towards work be a positive one.
If this attitude be lacking, then the
necessary basis of a civilization
is also lacking.
That is why the
Jewish people, despite the intellectual powers with
which they are apparently
endowed, have not a culture--certainly not a
culture of their own. The
culture which the Jew enjoys to-day is the
product of the work of others and
this product is debased in the hands
of the Jew.
In order to form a
correct judgment of the place which the Jew holds in
relation to the whole
problem of human civilization, we must bear in
mind the essential fact that
there never has been any Jewish art and
consequently that nothing of this
kind exists to-day. We must realize
that especially in those two royal
domains of art, namely architecture
and music, the Jew has done no original
creative work. When the Jew
comes to producing something in the field of art
he merely bowdler-izes
something already in existence or simply steals the
intellectual word,
of others. The Jew essentially lacks those qualities which
are
characteristic of those creative races that are the founders of
civilization.
To what extent the Jew appropriates the civilization built
up by
others--or rather corrupts it, to speak more accurately--is indicated
by
the fact that he cultivates chiefly the art which calls for the smallest
amount of original invention, namely the dramatic art. And even here he
is
nothing better than a kind of juggler or, perhaps more correctly
speaking, a
kind of monkey imitator; for in this domain also he lacks
the creative elan
which is necessary for the production of all really
great work. Even here,
therefore, he is not a creative genius but rather
a superficial imitator who,
in spite of all his retouching and tricks,
cannot disguise the fact that
there is no inner vitality in the shape he
gives his products. At this
juncture the Jewish Press comes in and
renders friendly assistance by
shouting hosannas over the head of even
the most ordinary bungler of a Jew,
until the rest of the world is
stampeded into thinking that the object of so
much praise must really be
an artist, whereas in reality he may be nothing
more than a low-class
mimic.
No; the Jews have not the creative
abilities which are necessary to the
founding of a civilization; for in them
there is not, and never has
been, that spirit of idealism which is an
absolutely necessary element
in the higher development of mankind. Therefore
the Jewish intellect
will never be constructive but always destructive. At
best it may serve
as a stimulus in rare cases but only within the meaning of
the poet's
lines: 'THE POWER WHICH ALWAYS WILLS THE BAD, AND ALWAYS WORKS THE
GOOD'
(KRAFT, DIE STETS DAS BÖSE WILL UND STETS DAS GUTE SCHAFFT). (Note 15)
It
is not through his help but in spite of his help that mankind makes any
progress.
[Note 15. When Mephistopheles first appears to Faust, in the
latter's
study, Faust inquires: "What is thy name?" To which Mephistopheles
replies: "A part ofthe Power which always wills the Bad and always works
the
Good." And when Faust asks him what is meant by this riddle and why he
should
call himself'a part,' the gist of Mephistopheles' reply is that he
is the
Spirit of Negation and exists through opposition to the positive
Truth and
Order and Beauty which proceed from the never-ending creative
energy of the
Deity. In the Prologue to Faust the Lord declares that
man's active nature
would grow sluggishin working the good and that
therefore he has to be
aroused by the Spirit of Opposition. This Spirit
wills the Bad, but of itself
it can do nothing positive, and by its
opposition always works the opposite
of what it wills.]
Since the Jew has never had a State which was based on
territorial
delimitations, and therefore never a civilization of his own, the
idea
arose that here we were dealing with a people who had to be considered
as Nomads. That is a great and mischievous mistake. The true nomad does
actually possess a definite delimited territory where he lives. It is
merely
that he does not cultivate it, as the settled farmer does, but
that he lives
on the products of his herds, with which he wanders over
his domain. The
natural reason for this mode of existence is to be found
in the fact that the
soil is not fertile and that it does not give the
steady produce which makes
a fixed abode possible. Outside of this
natural cause, however, there is a
more profound cause: namely, that no
mechanical civilization is at hand to
make up for the natural poverty of
the region in question. There are
territories where the Aryan can
establish fixed settlements by means of the
technical skill which he has
developed in the course of more than a thousand
years, even though these
territories would otherwise have to be abandoned,
unless the Aryan were
willing to wander about them in nomadic fashion; but
his technical
tradition and his age-long experience of the use of technical
means
would probably make the nomadic life unbearable for him. We ought to
remember that during the first period of American colonization numerous
Aryans earned their daily livelihood as trappers and hunters, etc.,
frequently wandering about in large groups with their women and
children,
their mode of existence very much resembling that of ordinary
nomads. The
moment, however, that they grew more numerous and were able
to accumulate
larger resources, they cleared the land and drove out the
aborigines, at the
same time establishing settlements which rapidly
increased all over the
country.
The Aryan himself was probably at first a nomad and became a
settler in
the course of ages. But yet he was never of the Jewish kind. The
Jew is
not a nomad; for the nomad has already a definite attitude towards the
concept of 'work', and this attitude served as the basis of a later
cultural
development, when the necessary intellectual conditions were at
hand. There
is a certain amount of idealism in the general attitude of
the nomad, even
though it be rather primitive. His whole character may,
therefore, be foreign
to Aryan feeling but it will never be repulsive.
But not even the slightest
trace of idealism exists in the Jewish
character. The Jew has never been a
nomad, but always a parasite,
battening on the substance of others. If he
occasionally abandoned
regions where he had hitherto lived he did not do it
voluntarily. He did
it because from time to time he was driven out by people
who were tired
of having their hospitality abused by such guests. Jewish
self-expansion
is a parasitic phenomenon--since the Jew is always looking for
new
pastures for his race.
But this has nothing to do with nomadic
life as such; because the Jew
does not ever think of leaving a territory
which he has once occupied.
He sticks where he is with such tenacity that he
can hardly be driven
out even by superior physical force. He expands into new
territories
only when certain conditions for his existence are provided
therein; but
even then--unlike the nomad--he will not change his former
abode. He is
and remains a parasite, a sponger who, like a pernicious
bacillus,
spreads over wider and wider areas according as some favourable
area
attracts him. The effect produced by his presence is also like that of
the vampire; for wherever he establishes himself the people who grant
him
hospitality are bound to be bled to death sooner or later. Thus the
Jew has
at all times lived in States that have belonged to other races
and within the
organization of those States he had formed a State of his
own, which is,
however, hidden behind the mask of a 'religious
community', as long as
external circumstances do not make it advisable
for this community to declare
its true nature. As soon as the Jew feels
himself sufficiently established in
his position to be able to hold it
without a disguise, he lifts the mask and
suddenly appears in the
character which so many did not formerly believe or
wish to see: namely
that of the Jew.
The life which the Jew lives as a
parasite thriving on the substance of
other nations and States has resulted
in developing that specific
character which Schopenhauer once described when
he spoke of the Jew as
'The Great Master of Lies'. The kind of existence
which he leads forces
the Jew to the systematic use of falsehood, just as
naturally as the
inhabitants of northern climates are forced to wear warm
clothes.
He can live among other nations and States only as long as he
succeeds
in persuading them that the Jews are not a distinct people but the
representatives of a religious faith who thus constitute a 'religious
community', though this be of a peculiar character.
As a matter of fact,
however, this is the first of his great falsehoods.
He is obliged to
conceal his own particular character and mode of life
that he may be allowed
to continue his existence as a parasite among the
nations. The greater the
intelligence of the individual Jew, the better
will he succeed in deceiving
others. His success in this line may even
go so far that the people who grant
him hospitality may be led to
believe that the Jew among them is a genuine
Frenchman, for instance, or
Englishman or German or Italian, who just happens
to belong to a
religious denomination which is different from that prevailing
in these
countries. Especially in circles concerned with the executive
administration of the State, where the officials generally have only a
minimum of historical sense, the Jew is able to impose his infamous
deception
with comparative ease. In these circles independent thinking
is considered a
sin against the sacred rules according to which official
promotion takes
place. It is therefore not surprising that even to-day
in the Bavarian
government offices, for example, there is not the
slightest suspicion that
the Jews form a distinct nation themselves and
are not merely the adherents
of a 'Confession', though one glance at the
Press which belongs to the Jews
ought to furnish sufficient evidence to
the contrary even for those who
possess only the smallest degree of
intelligence. The JEWISH ECHO, however,
is not an official gazette and
therefore not authoritative in the eyes of
those government potentates.
Jewry has always been a nation of a definite
racial character and never
differentiated merely by the fact of belonging to
a certain religion. At
a very early date, urged on by the desire to make
their way in the
world, the Jews began to cast about for a means whereby they
might
distract such attention as might prove inconvenient for them. What
could
be more effective and at the same time more above suspicion than to
borrow and utilize the idea of the religious community? Here also
everything
is copied, or rather stolen; for the Jew could not possess
any religious
institution which had developed out of his own
consciousness, seeing that he
lacks every kind of idealism; which means
that belief in a life beyond this
terrestrial existence is foreign to
him. In the Aryan mind no religion can
ever be imagined unless it
embodies the conviction that life in some form or
other will continue
after death. As a matter of fact, the Talmud is not a
book that lays
down principles according to which the individual should
prepare for the
life to come. It only furnishes rules for a practical and
convenient
life in this world.
The religious teaching of the Jews is
principally a collection of
instructions for maintaining the Jewish blood
pure and for regulating
intercourse between Jews and the rest of the world:
that is to say,
their relation with non-Jews. But the Jewish religious
teaching is not
concerned with moral problems. It is rather concerned with
economic
problems, and very petty ones at that. In regard to the moral value
of
the religious teaching of the Jews there exist and always have existed
quite exhaustive studies (not from the Jewish side; for whatever the
Jews
have written on this question has naturally always been of a
tendentious
character) which show up the kind of religion that the Jews
have in a light
that makes it look very uncanny to the Aryan mind. The
Jew himself is the
best example of the kind of product which this
religious training evolves.
His life is of this world only and his
mentality is as foreign to the true
spirit of Christianity as his
character was foreign to the great Founder of
this new creed two
thousand years ago. And the Founder of Christianity made
no secret
indeed of His estimation of the Jewish people. When He found it
necessary He drove those enemies of the human race out of the Temple of
God;
because then, as always, they used religion as a means of advancing
their
commercial interests. But at that time Christ was nailed to the
Cross for his
attitude towards the Jews; whereas our modern Christians
enter into party
politics and when elections are being held they debase
themselves to beg for
Jewish votes. They even enter into political
intrigues with the atheistic
Jewish parties against the interests of
their own Christian nation.
On
this first and fundamental lie, the purpose of which is to make
people
believe that Jewry is not a nation but a religion, other lies are
subsequently based. One of those further lies, for example, is in
connection
with the language spoken by the Jew. For him language is not
an instrument
for the expression of his inner thoughts but rather a
means of cloaking them.
When talking French his thoughts are Jewish and
when writing German rhymes he
only gives expression to the character of
his own race.
As long as the
Jew has not succeeded in mastering other peoples he is
forced to speak their
language whether he likes it or not. But the
moment that the world would
become the slave of the Jew it would have to
learn some other language
(Esperanto, for example) so that by this means
the Jew could dominate all the
more easily.
How much the whole existence of this people is based on a
permanent
falsehood is proved in a unique way by 'The Protocols of the Elders
of
Zion', which are so violently repudiated by the Jews. With groans and
moans, the FRANKFURTER ZEITUNG repeats again and again that these are
forgeries. This alone is evidence in favour of their authenticity. What
many
Jews unconsciously wish to do is here clearly set forth. It is not
necessary
to ask out of what Jewish brain these revelations sprang; but
what is of
vital interest is that they disclose, with an almost
terrifying precision,
the mentality and methods of action characteristic
of the Jewish people and
these writings expound in all their various
directions the final aims towards
which the Jews are striving. The study
of real happenings, however, is the
best way of judging the authenticity
of those documents. If the historical
developments which have taken
place within the last few centuries be studied
in the light of this book
we shall understand why the Jewish Press
incessantly repudiates and
denounces it. For the Jewish peril will be stamped
out the moment the
general public come into possession of that book and
understand it.
In order to get to know the Jew properly it is necessary
to study the
road which he has been following among the other peoples during
the last
few centuries. One example will suffice to give a clear insight
here.
Since his career has been the same at all epochs--just as the people at
whose expense he has lived have remained the same--for the purposes of
making
the requisite analysis it will be best to mark his progress by
stages. For
the sake of simplicity we shall indicate these stages by
letters of the
alphabet.
The first Jews came into what was then called Germania during
the period
of the Roman invasion; and, as usual, they came as merchants.
During the
turmoil caused by the great migrations of the German tribes the
Jews
seem to have disappeared. We may therefore consider the period when the
Germans formed the first political communities as the beginning of that
process whereby Central and Northern Europe was again, and this time
permanently, Judaized. A development began which has always been the
same or
similar wherever and whenever Jews came into contact with Aryan
peoples.
(a) As soon as the first permanent settlements had been established the
Jew was suddenly 'there'. He arrived as a merchant and in the beginning
did
not trouble to disguise his nationality. He still remained openly a
Jew,
partly it may be because he knew too little of the language. It may
also be
that people of other races refused to mix with him, so that he
could not very
well adopt any other appearance than that of a foreign
merchant. Because of
his subtlety and cunning and the lack of experience
on the part of the people
whose guest he became, it was not to his
disadvantage openly to retain his
Jewish character. This may even have
been advantageous to him; for the
foreigner was received kindly.
(b) Slowly but steadily he began to take
part in the economic life
around him; not as a producer, however, but only as
a middleman. His
commercial cunning, acquired through thousands of years of
negotiation
as an intermediary, made him superior in this field to the
Aryans, who
were still quite ingenuous and indeed clumsy and whose honesty
was
unlimited; so that after a short while commerce seemed destined to
become a Jewish monopoly. The Jew began by lending out money at usurious
interest, which is a permanent trade of his. It was he who first
introduced
the payment of interest on borrowed money. The danger which
this innovation
involved was not at first recognized; indeed the
innovation was welcomed,
because it offered momentary advantages.
(c) At this stage the Jew had
become firmly settled down; that is to
say, he inhabited special sections of
the cities and towns and had his
own quarter in the market-places. Thus he
gradually came to form a State
within a State. He came to look upon the
commercial domain and all money
transactions as a privilege belonging
exclusively to himself and he
exploited it ruthlessly.
(d) At this
stage finance and trade had become his complete monopoly.
Finally, his
usurious rate of interest aroused opposition and the
increasing impudence
which the Jew began to manifest all round stirred
up popular indignation,
while his display of wealth gave rise to popular
envy. The cup of his
iniquity became full to the brim when he included
landed property among his
commercial wares and degraded the soil to the
level of a market commodity.
Since he himself never cultivated the soil
but considered it as an object to
be exploited, on which the peasant may
still remain but only on condition
that he submits to the most heartless
exactions of his new master, public
antipathy against the Jew steadily
increased and finally turned into open
animosity. His extortionate
tyranny became so unbearable that people rebelled
against his control
and used physical violence against him. They began to
scrutinize this
foreigner somewhat more closely, and then began to discover
the
repulsive traits and characteristics inherent in him, until finally an
abyss opened between the Jews and their hosts, across which abyss there
could
be no further contact.
In times of distress a wave of public anger has
usually arisen against
the Jew; the masses have taken the law into their own
hands; they have
seized Jewish property and ruined the Jew in their urge to
protect
themselves against what they consider to be a scourge of God. Having
come to know the Jew intimately through the course of centuries, in
times of
distress they looked upon his presence among them as a public
danger
comparable only to the plague.
(e) But then the Jew began to reveal his
true character. He paid court
to governments, with servile flattery, used his
money to ingratiate
himself further and thus regularly secured for himself
once again the
privilege of exploiting his victim. Although public wrath
flared up
against this eternal profiteer and drove him out, after a few years
he
reappeared in those same places and carried on as before. No persecution
could force him to give up his trade of exploiting other people and no
amount
of harrying succeeded in driving him out permanently. He always
returned
after a short time and it was always the old story with him.
In an effort
to save at least the worst from happening, legislation was
passed which
debarred the Jew from obtaining possession of the land.
(f) In proportion
as the powers of kings and princes increased, the Jew
sidled up to them. He
begged for 'charters' and 'privileges' which those
gentlemen, who were
generally in financial straits, gladly granted if
they received adequate
payment in return. However high the price he has
to pay, the Jew will succeed
in getting it back within a few years from
operating the privilege he has
acquired, even with interest and compound
interest. He is a real leech who
clings to the body of his unfortunate
victims and cannot be removed; so that
when the princes found themselves
in need once again they took the blood from
his swollen veins with their
own hands.
This game was repeated
unendingly. In the case of those who were called
'German Princes', the part
they played was quite as contemptible as that
played by the Jew. They were a
real scourge for their people. Their
compeers may be found in some of the
government ministers of our time.
It was due to the German princes that
the German nation could not
succeed in definitely freeing itself from the
Jewish peril.
Unfortunately the situation did not change at a later period.
The
princes finally received the reward which they had a thousand-fold
deserved for all the crimes committed by them against their own people.
They
had allied themselves with Satan and later on they discovered that
they were
in Satan's embrace.
(g) By permitting themselves to be entangled in the
toils of the Jew,
the princes prepared their own downfall. The position which
they held
among their people was slowly but steadily undermined not only by
their
continued failure to guard the interests of their subjects but by the
positive exploitation of them. The Jew calculated exactly the time when
the
downfall of the princes was approaching and did his best to hasten
it. He
intensified their financial difficulties by hindering them in the
exercise of
their duty towards their people, by inveigling them through
the most servile
flatteries into further personal display, whereby he
made himself more and
more indispensable to them. His astuteness, or
rather his utter
unscrupulousness, in money affairs enabled him to exact
new income from the
princes, to squeeze the money out of them and then
have it spent as quickly
as possible. Every Court had its 'Court Jews',
as this plague was called, who
tortured the innocent victims until they
were driven to despair; while at the
same time this Jew provided the
means which the princes squandered on their
own pleasures. It is not to
be wondered at that these ornaments of the human
race became the
recipients of official honours and even were admitted into
the ranks of
the hereditary nobility, thus contributing not only to expose
that
social institution to ridicule but also to contaminate it from the
inside.
Naturally the Jew could now exploit the position to which he had
attained and push himself forward even more rapidly than before. Finally
he
became baptized and thus entitled to all the rights and privileges
which
belonged to the children of the nation on which he preyed. This
was a
high-class stroke of business for him, and he often availed
himself of it, to
the great joy of the Church, which was proud of having
gained a new child in
the Faith, and also to the joy of Israel, which
was happy at seeing the trick
pulled off successfully.
(h) At this stage a transformation began to take
place in the world of
Jewry. Up to now they had been Jews--that is to say,
they did not
hitherto set any great value on pretending to be something else;
and
anyhow the distinctive characteristics which separated them from other
races could not be easily overcome. Even as late as the time of
Frederick the
Great nobody looked upon the Jews as other than a
'foreign' people, and
Goethe rose up in revolt against the failure
legally to prohibit marriage
between Christians and Jews. Goethe was
certainly no reactionary and no
time-server. What he said came from the
voice of the blood and the voice of
reason. Notwithstanding the
disgraceful happenings taking place in Court
circles, the people
recognized instinctively that the Jew was the foreign
body in their own
flesh and their attitude towards him was directed by
recognition of that
fact.
But a change was now destined to take place.
In the course of more than
a thousand years the Jew had learned to master the
language of his hosts
so thoroughly that he considered he might now lay
stress on his Jewish
character and emphasize the 'Germanism' a bit more.
Though it must have
appeared ridiculous and absurd at first sight, he was
impudent enough to
call himself a 'Teuton', which in this case meant a
German. In that way
began one of the most infamous impositions that can be
imagined. The Jew
did not possess the slightest traces of the German
character. He had
only acquired the art of twisting the German language to
his own uses,
and that in a disgusting way, without having assimilated any
other
feature of the German character. Therefore his command of the language
was the sole ground on which he could pretend to be a German. It is not
however by the tie of language, but exclusively by the tie of blood that
the
members of a race are bound together. And the Jew himself knows this
better
than any other, seeing that he attaches so little importance to
the
preservation of his own language while at the same time he strives
his utmost
to maintain his blood free from intermixture with that of
other races. A man
may acquire and use a new language without much
trouble; but it is only his
old ideas that he expresses through the new
language. His inner nature is not
modified thereby. The best proof of
this is furnished by the Jew himself. He
may speak a thousand tongues
and yet his Jewish nature will remain always one
and the same. His
distinguishing characteristics were the same when he spoke
the Latin
language at Ostia two thousand years ago as a merchant in grain, as
they
are to-day when he tries to sell adulterated flour with the aid of his
German gibberish. He is always the same Jew. That so obvious a fact is
not
recognized by the average head-clerk in a German government
department, or by
an officer in the police administration, is also a
self-evident and natural
fact; since it would be difficult to find
another class of people who are so
lacking in instinct and intelligence
as the civil servants employed by our
modern German State authorities.
The reason why, at the stage I am
dealing with, the Jew so suddenly
decided to transform himself into a German
is not difficult to discover.
He felt the power of the princes slowly
crumbling and therefore looked
about to find a new social plank on which he
might stand. Furthermore,
his financial domination over all the spheres of
economic life had
become so powerful that he felt he could no longer sustain
that enormous
structure or add to it unless he were admitted to the full
enjoyment of
the 'rights of citizenship.' He aimed at both, preservation and
expansion; for the higher he could climb the more alluring became the
prospect of reaching the old goal, which was promised to him in ancient
times, namely world-rulership, and which he now looked forward to with
feverish eyes, as he thought he saw it visibly approaching. Therefore
all his
efforts were now directed to becoming a fully-fledged citizen,
endowed with
all civil and political rights.
That was the reason for his emancipation
from the Ghetto.
(i) And thus the Court Jew slowly developed into the
national Jew. But
naturally he still remained associated with persons in
higher quarters
and he even attempted to push his way further into the inner
circles of
the ruling set. But at the same time some other representatives of
his
race were currying favour with the people. If we remember the crimes the
Jew had committed against the masses of the people in the course of so
many
centuries, how repeatedly and ruthlessly he exploited them and how
he sucked
out even the very marrow of their substance, and when we
further remember how
they gradually came to hate him and finally
considered him as a public
scourge--then we may well understand how
difficult the Jew must have found
this final transformation. Yes,
indeed, it must tax all their powers to be
able to present themselves as
'friends of humanity' to the poor victims whom
they have skinned raw.
Therefore the Jew began by making public amends
for the crimes which he
had committed against the people in the past. He
started his
metamorphosis by first appearing as the 'benefactor' of humanity.
Since
his new philanthropic policy had a very concrete aim in view, he could
not very well apply to himself the biblical counsel, not to allow the
left
hand to know what the right hand is giving. He felt obliged to let
as many
people as possible know how deeply the sufferings of the masses
grieved him
and to what excesses of personal sacrifice he was ready to
go in order to
help them. With this manifestation of innate modesty, so
typical of the Jew,
he trumpeted his virtues before the world until
finally the world actually
began to believe him. Those who refused to
share this belief were considered
to be doing him an injustice. Thus
after a little while he began to twist
things around, so as to make it
appear that it was he who had always been
wronged, and vice versa. There
were really some particularly foolish people
who could not help pitying
this poor unfortunate creature of a Jew.
Attention may be called to the fact that, in spite of his proclaimed
readiness to make personal sacrifices, the Jew never becomes poor
thereby. He
has a happy knack of always making both ends meet.
Occasionally his
benevolence might be compared to the manure which is
not spread over the
field merely for the purpose of getting rid of it,
but rather with a view to
future produce. Anyhow, after a comparatively
short period of time, the world
was given to know that the Jew had
become a general benefactor and
philanthropist. What a transformation!
What is looked upon as more or
less natural when done by other people
here became an object of astonishment,
and even sometimes of admiration,
because it was considered so unusual in a
Jew. That is why he has
received more credit for his acts of benevolence than
ordinary mortals.
And something more: The Jew became liberal all of a
sudden and began to
talk enthusiastically of how human progress must be
encouraged.
Gradually he assumed the air of being the herald of a new age.
Yet at the same time he continued to undermine the ground-work of that
part of the economic system in which the people have the most practical
interest. He bought up stock in the various national undertakings and
thus
pushed his influence into the circuit of national production,
making this
latter an object of buying and selling on the stock
exchange, or rather what
might be called the pawn in a financial game of
chess, and thus ruining the
basis on which personal proprietorship alone
is possible. Only with the
entrance of the Jew did that feeling of
estrangement, between employers and
employees begin which led at a later
date to the political class-struggle.
Finally the Jew gained an increasing influence in all economic
undertakings by means of his predominance in the stock-exchange. If not
the
ownership, at least he secured control of the working power of the
nation.
In order to strengthen his political position, he directed his efforts
towards removing the barrier of racial and civic discrimination which
had
hitherto hindered his advance at every turn. With characteristic
tenacity he
championed the cause of religious tolerance for this
purpose; and in the
freemason organization, which had fallen completely
into his hands, he found
a magnificent weapon which helped him to
achieve his ends. Government
circles, as well as the higher sections of
the political and commercial
bourgeoisie, fell a prey to his plans
through his manipulation of the masonic
net, though they themselves did
not even suspect what was happening.
Only the people as such, or rather the masses which were just becoming
conscious of their own power and were beginning to use it in the fight
for
their rights and liberties, had hitherto escaped the grip of the
Jew. At
least his influence had not yet penetrated to the deeper and
wider sections
of the people. This was unsatisfactory to him. The most
important phase of
his policy was therefore to secure control over the
people. The Jew realized
that in his efforts to reach the position of
public despot he would need a
'peace-maker.' And he thought he could
find a peace-maker if he could whip-in
sufficient extensive sections of
the bourgeois. But the freemasons failed to
catch the
glove-manufacturers and the linen-weavers in the frail meshes of
their
net. And so it became necessary to find a grosser and withal a more
effective means. Thus another weapon beside that of freemasonry would
have to
be secured. This was the Press. The Jew exercised all his skill
and tenacity
in getting hold of it. By means of the Press he began
gradually to control
public life in its entirety. He began to drive it
along the road which he had
chosen to reach his own ends; for he was now
in a position to create and
direct that force which, under the name of
'public opinion' is better known
to-day than it was some decades ago.
Simultaneously the Jew gave himself
the air of thirsting after
knowledge. He lauded every phase of progress,
particularly those phases
which led to the ruin of others; for he judges all
progress and
development from the standpoint of the advantages which these
bring to
his own people. When it brings him no such advantages he is the
deadly
enemy of enlightenment and hates all culture which is real culture as
such. All the knowledge which he acquires in the schools of others is
exploited by him exclusively in the service of his own race.
Even more
watchfully than ever before, he now stood guard over his
Jewish nationality.
Though bubbling over with 'enlightenment',
'progress', 'liberty', 'humanity',
etc., his first care was to preserve
the racial integrity of his own people.
He occasionally bestowed one of
his female members on an influential
Christian; but the racial stock of
his male descendants was always preserved
unmixed fundamentally. He
poisons the blood of others but preserves his own
blood unadulterated.
The Jew scarcely ever marries a Christian girl, but the
Christian takes
a Jewess to wife. The mongrels that are a result of this
latter union
always declare themselves on the Jewish side. Thus a part of the
higher
nobility in particular became completely degenerate. The Jew was well
aware of this fact and systematically used this means of disarming the
intellectual leaders of the opposite race. To mask his tactics and fool
his
victims, he talks of the equality of all men, no matter what their
race or
colour may be. And the simpletons begin to believe him.
Since his whole
nature still retains too foreign an odour for the broad
masses of the people
to allow themselves to be caught in his snare, he
uses the Press to put
before the public a picture of himself which is
entirely untrue to life but
well designed to serve his purpose. In the
comic papers special efforts are
made to represent the Jews as an
inoffensive little race which, like all
others, has its peculiarities.
In spite of their manners, which may seem a
bit strange, the comic
papers present the Jews as fundamentally good-hearted
and honourable.
Attempts are generally made to make them appear insignificant
rather
than dangerous.
During this phase of his progress the chief
goal of the Jew was the
victory of democracy, or rather the supreme hegemony
of the
parliamentary system, which embodies his concept of democracy. This
institution harmonises best with his purposes; for thus the personal
element
is eliminated and in its place we have the dunder-headed
majority,
inefficiency and, last but by no means least, knavery.
The final result
must necessarily have been the overthrow of the
monarchy, which had to happen
sooner or later.
(j) A tremendous economic development transformed the
social structure
of the nation. The small artisan class slowly disappeared
and the
factory worker, who took its place, had scarcely any chance of
establishing an independent existence of his own but sank more and more
to
the level of a proletariat. An essential characteristic of the
factory worker
is that he is scarcely ever able to provide for an
independent source of
livelihood which will support him in later life.
In the true sense of the
word, he is 'disinherited'. His old age is a
misery to him and can hardly be
called life at all.
In earlier times a similar situation had been
created, which had
imperatively demanded a solution and for which a solution
was found.
Side by side with the peasant and the artisan, a new class was
gradually
developed, namely that of officials and employees, especially those
employed in the various services of the State. They also were a
'disinherited' class, in the true sense of the word. But the State found
a
remedy for this unhealthy situation by taking upon itself the duty of
providing for the State official who could establish nothing that would
be an
independent means of livelihood for himself in his old age. Thus
the system
of pensions and retiring allowances was introduced. Private
enterprises
slowly followed this example in increasing numbers; so that
to-day every
permanent non-manual worker receives a pension in his later
years, if the
firm which he has served is one that has reached or gone
beyond a certain
size. It was only by virtue of the assurance given of
State officials, that
they would be cared for in their old age. that
such a high degree of
unselfish devotion to duty was developed, which in
pre-war times was one of
the distinguising characteristics of German
officials.
Thus a whole
class which had no personal property was saved from
destitution by an
intelligent system of provision, and found a place in
the social structure of
the national community.
The problem is now put before the State and
nation, but this time in a
much larger form. When the new industries sprang
up and developed,
millions of people left the countryside and the villages to
take up
employment in the big factories. The conditions under which this new
class found itself forced to live were worse than miserable. The more or
less
mechanical transformation of the methods of work hitherto in vogue
among the
artisans and peasants did not fit in well with the habits or
mentality of
this new working-class. The way in which the peasants and
artisans had
formerly worked had nothing comparable to the intensive
labour of the new
factory worker. In the old trades time did not play a
highly important role,
but it became an essential element in the new
industrial system. The formal
taking over of the old working hours into
the mammoth industrial enterprises
had fatal results. The actual amount
of work hitherto accomplished within a
certain time was comparatively
small, because the modern methods of intensive
production were then
unknown. Therefore, though in the older system a working
day of fourteen
or even fifteen hours was not unendurable, now it was beyond
the
possibilities of human endurance because in the new system every minute
was utilized to the extreme. This absurd transference of the old working
hours to the new industrial system proved fatal in two directions.
First, it
ruined the health of the workers; secondly, it destroyed their
faith in a
superior law of justice. Finally, on the one hand a miserable
wage was
received and, on the other, the employer held a much more
lucrative position
than before. Hence a striking difference between the
ways of life on the one
side and on the other.
In the open country there could be no social
problem, because the master
and the farm-hand were doing the same kind of
work and doing it
together. They ate their food in common, and sometimes even
out of the
same dish. But in this sphere also the new system introduced an
entirely
different set of conditions between masters and men.
The
division created between employer and employees seems not to have
extended to
all branches of life. How far this Judaizing process has
been allowed to take
effect among our people is illustrated by the fact
that manual labour not
only receives practically no recognition but is
even considered degrading.
That is not a natural German attitude. It is
due to the introduction of a
foreign element into our lives, and that
foreign element is the Jewish
spirit, one of the effects of which has
been to transform the high esteem in
which our handicrafts once were
held into a definite feeling that all
physical labour is something base
and unworthy.
Thus a new social
class has grown up which stands in low esteem; and the
day must come when we
shall have to face the question of whether the
nation will be able to make
this class an integral part of the social
community or whether the difference
of status now existing will become a
permanent gulf separating this class
from the others.
One thing, however, is certain: This class does not
include the worst
elements of the community in its ranks. Rather the contrary
is the
truth: it includes the most energetic parts of the nation. The
sophistication which is the result of a so-called civilization has not
yet
exercised its disintegrating and degenerating influence on this
class. The
broad masses of this new lower class, constituted by the
manual labourers,
have not yet fallen a prey to the morbid weakness of
pacifism. These are
still robust and, if necessary, they can be brutal.
While our bourgeoisie
middle class paid no attention at all to this
momentous problem and
indifferently allowed events to take their course,
the Jew seized upon the
manifold possibilities which the situation
offered him for the future. While
on the one hand he organized
capitalistic methods of exploitation to their
ultimate degree of
efficiency, he curried favour with the victims of his
policy and his
power and in a short while became the leader of their struggle
against
himself. 'Against himself' is here only a figurative way of speaking;
for this 'Great Master of Lies' knows how to appear in the guise of the
innocent and throw the guilt on others. Since he had the impudence to
take a
personal lead among the masses, they never for a moment suspected
that they
were falling a prey to one of the most infamous deceits ever
practised. And
yet that is what it actually was.
The moment this new class had arisen
out of the general economic
situation and taken shape as a definite body in
the social order, the
Jew saw clearly where he would find the necessary
pacemaker for his own
progressive march. At first he had used the bourgeois
class as a
battering-ram against the feudal order; and now he used the worker
against the bourgeois world. Just as he succeeded in obtaining civic
rights
by intrigues carried on under the protection of the bourgeois
class, he now
hoped that by joining in the struggle which the workers
were waging for their
own existence he would be able to obtain full
control over them.
When
that moment arrives, then the only objective the workers will have
to fight
for will be the future of the Jewish people. Without knowing
it, the worker
is placing himself at the service of the very power
against which he believes
he is fighting. Apparently he is made to fight
against capital and thus he is
all the more easily brought to fight for
capitalist interests. Outcries are
systematically raised against
international capital but in reality it is
against the structure of
national economics that these slogans are directed.
The idea is to
demolish this structure and on its ruins triumphantly erect
the
structure of the International Stock Exchange.
In this line of
action the procedure of the Jew was as follows:
He kowtowed to the
worker, hypocritically pretended to feel pity for him
and his lot, and even
to be indignant at the misery and poverty which
the worker had to endure.
That is the way in which the Jew endeavoured
to gain the confidence of the
working class. He showed himself eager to
study their various hardships,
whether real or imaginary, and strove to
awaken a yearning on the part of the
workers to change the conditions
under which they lived. The Jew artfully
enkindled that innate yearning
for social justice which is a typical Aryan
characteristic. Once that
yearning became alive it was transformed into
hatred against those in
more fortunate circumstances of life. The next stage
was to give a
precise philosophical aspect to the struggle for the
elimination of
social wrongs. And thus the Marxist doctrine was invented.
By presenting his doctrine as part and parcel of a just revindication of
social rights, the Jew propagated the doctrine all the more effectively.
But
at the same time he provoked the opposition of decent people who
refused to
admit these demands which, because of the form and
pseudo-philosophical
trimmings in which they are presented, seemed
fundamentally unjust and
impossible for realization. For, under the
cloak of purely social concepts
there are hidden aims which are of a
Satanic character. These aims are even
expounded in the open with the
clarity of unlimited impudence. This Marxist
doctrine is an individual
mixture of human reason and human absurdity; but
the combination is
arranged in such a way that only the absurd part of it
could ever be put
into practice, but never the reasonable part of it. By
categorically
repudiating the personal worth of the individual and also the
nation and
its racial constituent, this doctrine destroys the fundamental
basis of
all civilization; for civilization essentially depends on these very
factors. Such is the true essence of the Marxist WELTANSCHAUUNG, so far
as
the word WELTANSCHAUUNG can be applied at all to this phantom
arising from a
criminal brain. The destruction of the concept of
personality and of race
removes the chief obstacle which barred the way
to domination of the social
body by its inferior elements, which are the
Jews.
The very absurdity
of the economic and political theories of Marxism
gives the doctrine its
peculiar significance. Because of its
pseudo-logic, intelligent people refuse
to support it, while all those
who are less accustomed to use their
intellectual faculties, or who have
only a rudimentary notion of economic
principles, join the Marxist cause
with flying banners. The intelligence
behind the movement--for even this
movement needs intelligence if it is to
subsist--is supplied by the Jews
themselves, naturally of course as a
gratuitous service which is at the
same time a sacrifice on their part.
Thus arose a movement which was composed exclusively of manual workers
under the leadership of Jews. To all external appearances, this movement
strives to ameliorate the conditions under which the workers live; but
in
reality its aim is to enslave and thereby annihilate the non-Jewish
races.
The propaganda which the freemasons had carried on among the so-called
intelligentsia, whereby their pacifist teaching paralysed the instinct
for
national self-preservation, was now extended to the broad masses of
the
workers and bourgeoisie by means of the Press, which was almost
everywhere in
Jewish hands. To those two instruments of disintegration a
third and still
more ruthless one was added, namely, the organization of
brute physical force
among the masses. As massed columns of attacks, the
Marxist troops stormed
those parts of the social order which had been
left standing after the two
former undermining operations had done their
work.
The combined
activity of all these forces has been marvellously managed.
And it will not
be surprising if it turns out that those institutions
which have always
appeared as the organs of the more or less traditional
authority of the State
should now fall before the Marxist attack. Among
our higher and highest State
officials, with very few exceptions, the
Jew has found the cost complacent
backers in his work of destruction. An
attitude of sneaking servility towards
'superiors' and supercilious
arrogance towards 'inferiors' are the
characteristics of this class of
people, as well as a grade of stupidity
which is really frightening and
at the same time a towering self-conceit,
which has been so consistently
developed to make it amusing.
But these
qualities are of the greatest utility to the Jew in his
dealings with our
authorities. Therefore they are qualities which he
appreciates most in the
officials.
If I were to sketch roughly the actual struggle which is now
beginning I
should describe it somewhat thus:
Not satisfied with the
economic conquest of the world, but also
demanding that it must come under
his political control, the Jew
subdivides the organized Marxist power into
two parts, which correspond
to the ultimate objectives that are to be fought
for in this struggle
which is carried on under the direction of the Jew. To
outward
appearance, these seem to be two independent movements, but in
reality
they constitute an indivisible unity. The two divisions are: The
political movement and the trades union movement.
The trades union
movement has to gather in the recruits. It offers
assistance and protection
to the workers in the hard struggle which they
have to wage for the bare
means of existence, a struggle which has been
occasioned by the greediness
and narrow-mindedness of many of the
industrialists. Unless the workers be
ready to surrender all claims to
an existence which the dignity of human
nature itself demands, and
unless they are ready to submit their fate to the
will of employers who
in many cases have no sense of human responsibilities
and are utterly
callous to human wants, then the worker must necessarily take
matters
into his own hands, seeing that the organized social community--that
is
to say, the State--pays no attention to his needs.
The so-called
national-minded bourgeoisie, blinded by its own material
interests, opposes
this life-or-death struggle of the workers and places
the most difficult
obstacles in their way. Not only does this
bourgeoisie hinder all efforts to
enact legislation which would shorten
the inhumanly long hours of work,
prohibit child-labour, grant security
and protection to women and improve the
hygienic conditions of the
workshops and the dwellings of the working-class,
but while the
bourgeoisie hinders all this the shrewd Jew takes the cause of
the
oppressed into his own hands. He gradually becomes the leader of the
trades union movements, which is an easy task for him, because he does
not
genuinely intend to find remedies for the social wrong: he pursues
only one
objective, namely, to gather and consolidate a body of
followers who will act
under his commands as an armed weapon in the
economic war for the destruction
of national economic independence. For,
while a sound social policy has to
move between the two poles of
securing a decent level of public health and
welfare on the one hand
and, on the other, that of safeguarding the
independence of the economic
life of the nation, the Jew does not take these
poles into account at
all. The destruction of both is one of his main
objects. He would ruin,
rather than safeguard, the independence of the
national economic system.
Therefore, as the leader of the trades union
movement, he has no
scruples about putting forward demands which not only go
beyond the
declared purpose of the movement but could not be carried into
effect
without ruining the national economic structure. On the other hand, he
has no interest in seeing a healthy and sturdy population develop; he
would
be more content to see the people degenerate into an unthinking
herd which
could be reduced to total subjection. Because these are his
final objectives,
he can afford to put forward the most absurd claims.
He knows very well that
these claims can never be realized and that
therefore nothing in the actual
state of affairs could be altered by
them, but that the most they can do is
to arouse the spirit of unrest
among the masses. That is exactly the purpose
which he wishes such
propaganda to serve and not a real and honest
improvement of the social
conditions.
The Jews will therefore remain
the unquestioned leaders of the trades
union movement so long as a campaign
is not undertaken, which must be
carried out on gigantic lines, for the
enlightenment of the masses; so
that they will be enabled better to
understand the causes of their
misery. Or the same end might be achieved if
the government authorities
would get rid of the Jew and his work. For as long
as the masses remain
so ill-informed as they actually are to-day, and as long
as the State
remains as indifferent to their lot as it now is, the masses
will follow
whatever leader makes them the most extravagant promises in
regard to
economic matters. The Jew is a past master at this art and his
activities are not hampered by moral considerations of any kind.
Naturally it takes him only a short time to defeat all his competitors
in
this field and drive them from the scene of action. In accordance
with the
general brutality and rapacity of his nature, he turns the
trades union
movement into an organization for the exercise of physical
violence. The
resistance of those whose common sense has hitherto saved
them from
surrendering to the Jewish dictatorship is now broken down by
terrorization.
The success of that kind of activity is enormous.
Parallel with this, the
political organization advances. It operates
hand-in-hand with the trades
union movement, inasmuch as the latter
prepares the masses for the political
organization and even forces them
into it. This is also the source that
provides the money which the
political organization needs to keep its
enormous apparatus in action.
The trades union organization is the organ of
control for the political
activity of its members and whips in the masses for
all great political
demonstrations. In the end it ceases to struggle for
economic interests
but places its chief weapon, the refusal to continue
work--which takes
the form of a general strike--at the disposal of the
political movement.
By means of a Press whose contents are adapted to the
level of the most
ignorant readers, the political and trades union
organizations are
provided with an instrument which prepares the lowest
stratum of the
nation for a campaign of ruthless destruction. It is not
considered part
of the purpose of this Press to inspire its readers with
ideals which
might help them to lift their minds above the sordid conditions
of their
daily lives; but, on the contrary, it panders to their lowest
instincts.
Among the lazy-minded and self-seeking sections of the masses this
kind
of speculation turns out lucrative.
It is this Press above all
which carries on a fanatical campaign of
calumny, strives to tear down
everything that might be considered as a
mainstay of national independence
and to sabotage all cultural values as
well as to destroy the autonomy of the
national economic system.
It aims its attack especially against all men
of character who refuse to
fall into line with the Jewish efforts to obtain
control over the State
or who appear dangerous to the Jews merely because of
their superior
intelligence. For in order to incur the enmity of the Jew it
is not
necessary to show any open hostility towards him. It is quite
sufficient
if one be considered capable of opposing the Jew some time in the
future
or using his abilities and character to enhance the power and position
of a nation which the Jew finds hostile to himself.
The Jewish instinct,
which never fails where these problems have to be
dealt with, readily
discerns the true mentality of those whom the Jew
meets in everyday life; and
those who are not of a kindred spirit with
him may be sure of being listed
among his enemies. Since the Jew is not
the object of aggression but the
aggressor himself, he considers as his
enemies not only those who attack him
but also those who may be capable
of resisting him. The means which he
employs to break people of this
kind, who may show themselves decent and
upright, are not the open means
generally used in honourable conflict, but
falsehood and calumny.
He will stop at nothing. His utterly low-down
conduct is so appalling
that one really cannot be surprised if in the
imagination of our people
the Jew is pictured as the incarnation of Satan and
the symbol of evil.
The ignorance of the broad masses as regards the
inner character of the
Jew, and the lack of instinct and insight that our
upper classes
display, are some of the reasons which explain how it is that
so many
people fall an easy prey to the systematic campaign of falsehood
which
the Jew carries on.
While the upper classes, with their innate
cowardliness, turn away from
anyone whom the Jew thus attacks with lies and
calumny, the common
people are credulous of everything, whether because of
their ignorance
or their simple-mindedness. Government authorities wrap
themselves up in
a robe of silence, but more frequently they persecute the
victims of
Jewish attacks in order to stop the campaign in the Jewish Press.
To the
fatuous mind of the government official such a line of conduct appears
to belong to the policy of upholding the authority of the State and
preserving public order. Gradually the Marxist weapon in the hands of
the Jew
becomes a constant bogy to decent people. Sometimes the fear of
it sticks in
the brain or weighs upon them as a kind of nightmare.
People begin to quail
before this fearful foe and therewith become his
victims.
(k) The
Jewish domination in the State seems now so fully assured that
not only can
he now afford to call himself a Jew once again, but he even
acknowledges
freely and openly what his ideas are on racial and
political questions. A
section of the Jews avows itself quite openly as
an alien people, but even
here there is another falsehood. When the
Zionists try to make the rest of
the world believe that the new national
consciousness of the Jews will be
satisfied by the establishment of a
Jewish State in Palestine, the Jews
thereby adopt another means to dupe
the simple-minded Gentile. They have not
the slightest intention of
building up a Jewish State in Palestine so as to
live in it. What they
really are aiming at is to establish a central
organization for their
international swindling and cheating. As a sovereign
State, this cannot
be controlled by any of the other States. Therefore it can
serve as a
refuge for swindlers who have been found out and at the same time
a
high-school for the training of other swindlers.
As a sign of their
growing presumption and sense of security, a certain
section of them openly
and impudently proclaim their Jewish nationality
while another section
hypocritically pretend that they are German,
French or English as the case
may be. Their blatant behaviour in their
relations with other people shows
how clearly they envisage their day of
triumph in the near future.
The
black-haired Jewish youth lies in wait for hours on end, satanically
glaring
at and spying on the unsuspicious girl whom he plans to seduce,
adulterating
her blood and removing her from the bosom of her own
people. The Jew uses
every possible means to undermine the racial
foundations of a subjugated
people. In his systematic efforts to ruin
girls and women he strives to break
down the last barriers of
discrimination between him and other peoples. The
Jews were responsible
for bringing negroes into the Rhineland, with the
ultimate idea of
bastardizing the white race which they hate and thus
lowering its
cultural and political level so that the Jew might dominate. For
as long
as a people remain racially pure and are conscious of the treasure of
their blood, they can never be overcome by the Jew. Never in this world
can
the Jew become master of any people except a bastardized people.
That is
why the Jew systematically endeavours to lower the racial
quality of a people
by permanently adulterating the blood of the
individuals who make up that
people.
In the field of politics he now begins to replace the idea of
democracy
by introducing the dictatorship of the proletariat. In the masses
organized under the Marxist banners he has found a weapon which makes it
possible for him to discard democracy, so as to subjugate and rule in a
dictatorial fashion by the aid of brute force. He is systematically
working
in two ways to bring about this revolution. These ways are the
economic and
the political respectively.
Aided by international influences, he forms a
ring of enemies around
those nations which have proved themselves too sturdy
for him in
withstanding attacks from within. He would like to force them into
war
and then, if it should be necessary to his plans, he will unfurl the
banners of revolt even while the troops are actually fighting at the
front.
Economically he brings about the destruction of the State by a
systematic
method of sabotaging social enterprises until these become so
costly that
they are taken out of the hands of the State and then
submitted to the
control of Jewish finance. Politically he works to
withdraw from the State
its means of susbsistence, inasmuch as he
undermines the foundations of
national resistance and defence, destroys
the confidence which the people
have in their Government, reviles the
past and its history and drags
everything national down into the gutter.
Culturally his activity
consists in bowdlerizing art, literature and the
theatre, holding the
expressions of national sentiment up to scorn,
overturning all concepts of
the sublime and beautiful, the worthy and
the good, finally dragging the
people to the level of his own low
mentality.
Of religion he makes a
mockery. Morality and decency are described as
antiquated prejudices and thus
a systematic attack is made to undermine
those last foundations on which the
national being must rest if the
nation is to struggle for its existence in
this world.
(l) Now begins the great and final revolution. As soon as the
Jew is in
possession of political power he drops the last few veils which
have
hitherto helped to conceal his features. Out of the democratic Jew, the
Jew of the People, arises the 'Jew of the Blood', the tyrant of the
peoples.
In the course of a few years he endeavours to exterminate all
those who
represent the national intelligence. And by thus depriving the
peoples of
their natural intellectual leaders he fits them for their
fate as slaves
under a lasting despotism.
Russia furnishes the most terrible example of
such a slavery. In that
country the Jew killed or starved thirty millions of
the people, in a
bout of savage fanaticism and partly by the employment of
inhuman
torture. And he did this so that a gang of Jewish literati and
financial
bandits should dominate over a great people.
But the final
consequence is not merely that the people lose all their
freedom under the
domination of the Jews, but that in the end these
parasites themselves
disappear. The death of the victim is followed
sooner or later by that of the
vampire.
If we review all the causes which contributed to bring about the
downfall of the German people we shall find that the most profound and
decisive cause must be attributed to the lack of insight into the racial
problem and especially in the failure to recognize the Jewish danger.
It
would have been easy enough to endure the defeats suffered on the
battlefields in August 1918. They were nothing when compared with the
military victories which our nation had achieved. Our downfall was not
the
result of those defeats; but we were overthrown by that force which
had
prepared those defeats by systematically operating for several
decades to
destroy those political instincts and that moral stamina
which alone enable a
people to struggle for its existence and therewith
secure the right to exist.
By neglecting the problem of preserving the racial foundations of our
national life, the old Empire abrogated the sole right which entitles a
people to live on this planet. Nations that make mongrels of their
people, or
allow their people to be turned into mongrels, sin against
the Will of
Eternal Providence. And thus their overthrow at the hands of
a stronger
opponent cannot be looked upon as a wrong but, on the
contrary, as a
restoration of justice. If a people refuses to guard and
uphold the qualities
with which it has been endowed by Nature and which
have their roots in the
racial blood, then such a people has no right to
complain over the loss of
its earthly existence.
Everything on this earth can be made into
something better. Every defeat
may be made the foundation of a future
victory. Every lost war may be
the cause of a later resurgence. Every
visitation of distress can give a
new impetus to human energy. And out of
every oppression those forces
can develop which bring about a new re-birth of
the national
soul--provided always that the racial blood is kept pure.
But the loss of racial purity will wreck inner happiness for ever. It
degrades men for all time to come. And the physical and moral
consequences
can never be wiped out.
If this unique problem be studied and compared
with the other problems
of life we shall easily recognize how small is their
importance in
comparison with this. They are all limited to time; but the
problem of
the maintenance or loss of the purity of the racial blood will
last as
long as man himself lasts.
All the symptoms of decline which
manifested themselves already in
pre-war times can be traced back to the
racial problem.
Whether one is dealing with questions of general law, or
monstrous
excrescences in economic life, of phenomena which point to a
cultural
decline or political degeneration, whether it be a question of
defects
in the school-system or of the evil influence which the Press exerts
over the adult population--always and everywhere these phenomena are at
bottom caused by a lack of consideration for the interests of the race
to
which one's own nation belongs, or by the failure to recognize the
danger
that comes from allowing a foreign race to exist within the
national body.
That is why all attempts at reform, all institutions for social relief,
all political striving, all economic progress and all apparent increase
in
the general stock of knowledge, were doomed to be unproductive of any
significant results. The nation, as well as the organization which
enables it
to exist--namely, the State--were not developing in inner
strength and
stability, but, on the contrary, were visibly losing their
vitality. The
false brilliance of the Second Empire could not disguise
the inner weakness.
And every attempt to invigorate it anew failed
because the main and most
important problem was left out of
consideration.
It would be a mistake
to think that the followers of the various
political parties which tried to
doctor the condition of the German
people, or even all their leaders, were
bad in themselves or meant
wrong. Their activity even at best was doomed to
fail, merely because of
the fact that they saw nothing but the symptoms of
our general malady
and they tried to doctor the symptoms while they
overlooked the real
cause of the disease. If one makes a methodical study of
the lines along
which the old Empire developed one cannot help seeing, after
a careful
political analysis, that a process of inner degeneration had
already set
in even at the time when the united Empire was formed and the
German
nation began to make rapid external progress. The general situation
was
declining, in spite of the apparent political success and in spite of
the increasing economic wealth. At the elections to the Reichstag the
growing
number of Marxist votes indicated that the internal breakdown
and the
political collapse were then rapidly approaching. All the
victories of the
so-called bourgeois parties were fruitless, not only
because they could not
prevent the numerical increase in the growing
mass of Marxist votes, even
when the bourgeois parties triumphed at the
polls, but mainly because they
themselves were already infected with the
germs of decay. Though quite
unaware of it, the bourgeois world was
infected from within with the deadly
virus of Marxist ideas. The fact
that they sometimes openly resisted was to
be explained by the
competitive strife among ambitious political leaders,
rather than by
attributing it to any opposition in principle between
adversaries who
were determined to fight one another to the bitter end.
During all those
years only one protagonist was fighting with steadfast
perseverance.
This was the Jew. The Star of David steadily ascended as the
will to
national self-preservation declined.
Therefore it was not a
solid national phalanx that, of itself and out of
its own feeling of
solidarity, rushed to the battlefields in August
1914. But it was rather the
manifestation of the last flicker from the
instinct of national
self-preservation against the progress of the
paralysis with which the
pacifist and Marxist doctrine threatened our
people. Even in those days when
the destinies of the nation were in the
balance the internal enemy was not
recognized; therefore all efforts to
resist the external enemy were bound to
be in vain. Providence did not
grant the reward to the victorious sword, but
followed the eternal law
of retributive justice. A profound recognition of
all this was the
source of those principles and tendencies which inspire our
new
movement. We were convinced that only by recognizing such truths could
we stop the national decline in Germany and lay a granite foundation on
which
the State could again be built up, a State which would not be a
piece of
mechanism alien to our people, constituted for economic
purposes and
interests, but an organism created from the soul of the
people themselves.
A GERMAN STATE IN A GERMAN NATION
CHAPTER XII
THE FIRST STAGE IN THE DEVELOPMENT OF THE GERMAN
NATIONAL SOCIALIST LABOUR
PARTY
Here at the close of the volume I shall describe the first
stage in the
progress of our movement and shall give a brief account of the
problems
we had to deal with during that period. In doing this I have no
intention of expounding the ideals which we have set up as the goal of
our
movement; for these ideals are so momentous in their significance
that an
exposition of them will need a whole volume. Therefore I shall
devote the
second volume of this book to a detailed survey of the
principles which form
the programme of our movement and I shall attempt
to draw a picture of what
we mean by the word 'State'. When I say 'we'
in this connection I mean to
include all those hundreds of thousands who
have fundamentally the same
longing, though in the individual cases they
cannot find adequate words to
describe the vision that hovers before
their eyes. It is a characteristic
feature of all great reforms that in
the beginning there is only one single
protagonist to come forward on
behalf of several millions of people. The
final goal of a great
reformation has often been the object of profound
longing on the parts
of hundreds of thousands for many centuries before,
until finally one
among them comes forward as a herald to announce the will
of that
multitude and become the standard-bearer of the old yearning, which
he
now leads to a realization in a new idea.
The fact that millions of
our people yearn at heart for a radical change
in our present conditions is
proved by the profound discontent which
exists among them. This feeling is
manifested in a thousand ways. Some
express it in a form of discouragement
and despair. Others show it in
resentment and anger and indignation. Among
some the profound discontent
calls forth an attitude of indifference, while
it urges others to
violent manifestations of wrath. Another indication of
this feeling may
be seen on the one hand in the attitude of those who abstain
from voting
at elections and, on the other, in the large numbers of those who
side
with the fanatical extremists of the left wing.
To these latter
people our young movement had to appeal first of all. It
was not meant to be
an organization for contented and satisfied people,
but was meant to gather
in all those who were suffering from profound
anxiety and could find no
peace, those who were unhappy and
discontented. It was not meant to float on
the surface of the nation but
rather to push its roots deep among the masses.
Looked at from the purely political point of view, the situation in 1918
was as follows: A nation had been torn into two parts. One part, which
was by
far the smaller of the two, contained the intellectual classes of
the nation
from which all those employed in physical labour were
excluded. On the
surface these intellectual classes appeared to be
national-minded, but that
word meant nothing else to them except a very
vague and feeble concept of the
duty to defend what they called the
interests of the State, which in turn
seemed identical with those of the
dynastic regime. This class tried to
defend its ideas and reach its aims
by carrying on the fight with the aid of
intellectual weapons, which
could be used only here and there and which had
only a superficial
effect against the brutal measures employed by the
adversaries, in the
face of which the intellectual weapons were of their very
nature bound
to fail. With one violent blow the class which had hitherto
governed was
now struck down. It trembled with fear and accepted every
humiliation
imposed on it by the merciless victor.
Over against this
class stood the broad masses of manual labourers who
were organized in
movements with a more or less radically Marxist
tendency. These organized
masses were firmly determined to break any
kind of intellectual resistance by
the use of brute force. They had no
nationalist tendencies whatsoever and
deliberately repudiated the idea
of advancing the interests of the nation as
such. On the contrary, they
promoted the interests of the foreign oppressor.
Numerically this class
embraced the majority of the population and, what is
more important,
included all those elements of the nation without whose
collaboration a
national resurgence was not only a practical impossibility
but was even
inconceivable.
For already in 1918 one thing had to be
clearly recognized; namely, that
no resurgence of the German nation could
take place until we had first
restored our national strength to face the
outside world. For this
purpose arms are not the preliminary necessity,
though our bourgeois
'statesmen' always blathered about it being so; what was
wanted was
will-power. At one time the German people had more than sufficient
military armament. And yet they were not able to defend their liberty
because
they lacked those energies which spring from the instinct of
national
self-preservation and the will to hold on to one's own. The
best armament is
only dead and worthless material as long as the spirit
is wanting which makes
men willing and determined to avail themselves of
such weapons. Germany was
rendered defenceless not because she lacked
arms, but because she lacked the
will to keep her arms for the
maintenance of her people.
To-day our
Left-wing politicians in particular are constantly insisting
that their
craven-hearted and obsequious foreign policy necessarily
results from the
disarmament of Germany, whereas the truth is that this
is the policy of
traitors. To all that kind of talk the answer ought to
be: No, the contrary
is the truth. Your action in delivering up the arms
was dictated by your
anti-national and criminal policy of abandoning the
interests of the nation.
And now you try to make people believe that
your miserable whining is
fundamentally due to the fact that you have no
arms. Just like everything
else in your conduct, this is a lie and a
falsification of the true reason.
But the politicians of the Right deserve exactly the same reproach. It
was through their miserable cowardice that those ruffians of Jews who
came
into power in 1918 were able to rob the nation of its arms. The
conservative
politicians have neither right nor reason on their side
when they appeal to
disarmament as the cause which compelled them to
adopt a policy of prudence
(that is to say, cowardice). Here, again, the
contrary is the truth.
Disarmament is the result of their lack of
spirit.
Therefore the
problem of restoring Germany's power is not a question of
how can we
manufacture arms but rather a question of how we can produce
that spirit
which enables a people to bear arms. Once this spirit
prevails among a people
then it will find a thousand ways, each of which
leads to the necessary
armament. But a coward will not fire even a
single shot when attacked though
he may be armed with ten pistols. For
him they are of less value than a
blackthorn in the hands of a man of
courage.
The problem of
re-establishing the political power of our nation is
first of all a problem
of restoring the instinct of national
self-preservation for if no other
reason than that every preparatory
step in foreign policy and every foreign
judgment on the worth of a
State has been proved by experience to be grounded
not on the material
size of the armament such a State may possess but rather
on the moral
capacity for resistance which such a State has or is believed to
have.
The question whether or not a nation be desirable as an ally is not so
much determined by the inert mass of arms which it has at hand but by
the
obvious presence of a sturdy will to national self-preservation and
a heroic
courage which will fight through to the last breath. For an
alliance is not
made between arms but between men.
The British nation will therefore be
considered as the most valuable
ally in the world as long as it can be
counted upon to show that
brutality and tenacity in its government, as well
as in the spirit of
the broad masses, which enables it to carry through to
victory any
struggle that it once enters upon, no matter how long such a
struggle
may last, or however great the sacrifice that may be necessary or
whatever the means that have to be employed; and all this even though
the
actual military equipment at hand may be utterly inadequate when
compared
with that of other nations.
Once it is understood that the restoration of
Germany is a question of
reawakening the will to political self-preservation
we shall see quite
clearly that it will not be enough to win over those
elements that are
already national-minded but that the deliberately
anti-national masses
must be converted to believe in the national ideals.
A young movement that aims at re-establishing a German State with full
sovereign powers will therefore have to make the task of winning over
the
broad masses a special objective of its plan of campaign. Our
so-called
'national bourgeoisie' are so lamentably supine, generally
speaking, and
their national spirit appears so feckless, that we may
feel sure they will
offer no serious resistance against a vigorous
national foreign--or domestic
policy. Even though the narrow-minded
German bourgeoisie should keep up a
passive resistance when the hour of
deliverance is at hand, as they did in
Bismarck's time, we shall never
have to fear any active resistance on their
part, because of their
recognized proverbial cowardice.
It is quite
different with the masses of our population, who are imbued
with ideas of
internationalism. Through the primitive roughness of their
natures they are
disposed to accept the preaching of violence, while at
the same time their
Jewish leaders are more brutal and ruthless. They
will crush any attempt at a
German revival, just as they smashed the
German Army by striking at it from
the rear. Above all, these organized
masses will use their numerical majority
in this Parliamentarian State
not only to hinder any national foreign policy,
but also to prevent
Germany from restoring her political power and therewith
her prestige
abroad. Thus she becomes excluded from the ranks of desirable
allies.
For it is not we ourselves alone who are aware of the handicap that
results from the existence of fifteen million Marxists, democrats,
pacifists
and followers of the Centre, in our midst, but foreign nations
also recognize
this internal burden which we have to bear and take it
into their
calculations when estimating the value of a possible alliance
with us. Nobody
would wish to form an alliance with a State where the
active portion of the
population is at least passively opposed to any
resolute foreign policy.
The situation is made still worse by reason of the fact that the leaders
of those parties which were responsible for the national betrayal are
ready
to oppose any and every attempt at a revival, simply because they
want to
retain the positions they now hold. According to the laws that
govern human
history it is inconceivable that the German people could
resume the place
they formerly held without retaliating on those who
were both cause and
occasion of the collapse that involved the ruin of
our State. Before the
judgment seat of posterity November 1918 will not
be regarded as a simple
rebellion but as high treason against the
country.
Therefore it is not
possible to think of re-establishing German
sovereignty and political
independence without at the same time
reconstructing a united front within
the nation, by a peaceful
conversion of the popular will.
Looked at
from the standpoint of practical ways and means, it seems
absurd to think of
liberating Germany from foreign bondage as long as
the masses of the people
are not willing to support such an ideal of
freedom. After carefully
considering this problem from the purely
military point of view, everybody,
and in particular every officer, will
agree that a war cannot be waged
against an outside enemy by battalions
of students; but that, together with
the brains of the nation, the
physical strength of the nation is also
necessary. Furthermore it must
be remembered that the nation would be robbed
of its irreplaceable
assets by a national defence in which only the
intellectual circles, as
they are called, were engaged. The young German
intellectuals who joined
the volunteer regiments and fell on the battlefields
of Flanders in the
autumn of 1914 were bitterly missed later on. They were
the dearest
treasure which the nation possessed and their loss could not be
made
good in the course of the war. And it is not only the struggle itself
which could not be waged if the working masses of the nation did not
join the
storm battalions, but the necessary technical preparations
could not be made
without a unified will and a common front within the
nation itself. Our
nation which has to exist disarmed, under the
thousand eyes appointed by the
Versailles Peace Treaty, cannot make any
technical preparations for the
recovery of its freedom and human
independence until the whole army of spies
employed within the country
is cut down to those few whose inborn baseness
would lead them to betray
anything and everything for the proverbial thirty
pieces of silver. But
we can deal with such people. The millions, however,
who are opposed to
every kind of national revival simply because of their
political
opinions, constitute an insurmountable obstacle. At least the
obstacle
will remain insurmountable as long as the cause of their opposition,
which is international Marxism, is not overcome and its teachings
banished
from both their hearts and heads.
From whatever point of view we may
examine the possibility of recovering
our independence as a State and a
people, whether we consider the
problem from the standpoint of technical
rearmament or from that of the
actual struggle itself, the necessary
pre-requisite always remains the
same. This pre-requisite is that the broad
masses of the people must
first be won over to accept the principle of our
national independence.
If we do not regain our external freedom every
step forward in domestic
reform will at best be an augmentation of our
productive powers for the
benefit of those nations that look upon us as a
colony to be exploited.
The surplus produced by any so-called improvement
would only go into the
hands of our international controllers and any social
betterment would
at best increase the product of our labour in favour of
those people. No
cultural progress can be made by the German nation, because
such
progress is too much bound up with the political independence and
dignity of a people.
Therefore, as we can find a satisfactory solution
for the problem of
Germany's future only by winning over the broad masses of
our people for
the support of the national idea, this work of education must
be
considered the highest and most important task to be accomplished by a
movement which does not strive merely to satisfy the needs of the moment
but
considers itself bound to examine in the light of future results
everything
it decides to do or refrain from doing.
As early as 1919 we were
convinced that the nationalization of the
masses would have to constitute the
first and paramount aim of the new
movement. From the tactical standpoint,
this decision laid a certain
number of obligations on our shoulders.
(1) No social sacrifice could be considered too great in this effort to
win
over the masses for the national revival.
In the field of national
economics, whatever concessions are granted
to-day to the employees are
negligible when compared with the benefit to
be reaped by the whole nation if
such concessions contribute to bring
back the masses of the people once more
to the bosom of their own
nation. Nothing but meanness and shortsightedness,
which are
characteristics that unfortunately are only too prevalent among our
employers, could prevent people from recognizing that in the long run no
economic improvement and therefore no rise in profits are possible
unless
internal solidarity be restored among the bulk of the people who
make up our
nation.
If the German trades unions had defended the interests of the
working-classes uncompromisingly during the War; if even during the War
they
had used the weapon of the strike to force the industrialists--who
were
greedy for higher dividends--to grant the demands of the workers
for whom the
unions acted; if at the same time they had stood up as good
Germans for the
defence of the nation as stoutly as for their own
claims, and if they had
given to their country what was their country's
due--then the War would never
have been lost. How ludicrously
insignificant would all, and even the
greatest, economic concession have
been in face of the tremendous importance
of such a victory.
For a movement which would restore the German worker
to the German
people it is therefore absolutely necessary to understand
clearly that
economic sacrifices must be considered light in such cases,
provided of
course that they do not go the length of endangering the
independence
and stability of the national economic system.
(2) The
education of the masses along national lines can be carried out
only
indirectly, by improving their social conditions; for only by such
a process
can the economic conditions be created which enable everybody
to share in the
cultural life of the nation.
(3) The nationalization of the broad masses
can never be achieved by
half-measures--that is to say, by feebly insisting
on what is called the
objective side of the question--but only by a ruthless
and devoted
insistence on the one aim which must be achieved. This means that
a
people cannot be made 'national' according to the signification attached
to that word by our bourgeois class to-day--that is to say, nationalism
with
many reservations--but national in the vehement and extreme sense.
Poison can
be overcome only by a counter-poison, and only the supine
bourgeois mind
could think that the Kingdom of Heaven can be attained by
a compromise.
The broad masses of a nation are not made up of professors and
diplomats.
Since these masses have only a poor acquaintance with
abstract ideas, their
reactions lie more in the domain of the feelings,
where the roots of their
positive as well as their negative attitudes
are implanted. They are
susceptible only to a manifestation of strength
which comes definitely either
from the positive or negative side, but
they are never susceptible to any
half-hearted attitude that wavers
between one pole and the other. The
emotional grounds of their attitude
furnish the reason for their
extraordinary stability. It is always more
difficult to fight successfully
against Faith than against knowledge.
Love is less subject to change than
respect. Hatred is more lasting than
mere aversion. And the driving force
which has brought about the most
tremendous revolutions on this earth has
never been a body of scientific
teaching which has gained power over the
masses, but always a devotion
which has inspired them, and often a kind of
hysteria which has urged
them to action.
Whoever wishes to win over
the masses must know the key that will open
the door to their hearts. It is
not objectivity, which is a feckless
attitude, but a determined will, backed
up by force, when necessary.
(4) The soul of the masses can be won only
if those who lead the
movement for that purpose are determined not merely to
carry through the
positive struggle for their own aims but are also
determined to destroy
the enemy that opposes them.
When they see an
uncompromising onslaught against an adversary the
people have at all times
taken this as a proof that right is on the side
of the active aggressor; but
if the aggressor should go only half-way
and fail to push home his success by
driving his opponent entirely from
the scene of action, the people will look
upon this as a sign that the
aggressor is uncertain of the justice of his own
cause and his half-way
policy may even be an acknowledgment that his cause is
unjust.
The masses are but a part of Nature herself. Their feeling is
such that
they cannot understand mutual hand-shakings between men who are
declared
enemies. Their wish is to see the stronger side win and the weaker
wiped
out or subjected unconditionally to the will of the stronger.
The nationalization of the masses can be successfully achieved only if,
in
the positive struggle to win the soul of the people, those who spread
the
international poison among them are exterminated.
(5) All the great
problems of our time are problems of the moment and
are only the results of
certain definite causes. And among all those
there is only one that has a
profoundly causal significance. This is the
problem of preserving the pure
racial stock among the people. Human
vigour or decline depends on the blood.
Nations that are not aware of
the importance of their racial stock, or which
neglect to preserve it,
are like men who would try to educate the pug-dog to
do the work of the
greyhound, not understanding that neither the speed of the
greyhound nor
the imitative faculties of the poodle are inborn qualities
which cannot
be drilled into the one or the other by any form of training. A
people
that fails to preserve the purity of its racial blood thereby destroys
the unity of the soul of the nation in all its manifestations. A
disintegrated national character is the inevitable consequence of a
process
of disintegration in the blood. And the change which takes place
in the
spiritual and creative faculties of a people is only an effect of
the change
that has modified its racial substance.
If we are to free the German
people from all those failings and ways of
acting which do not spring from
their original character, we must first
get rid of those foreign germs in the
national body which are the cause
of its failings and false ways.
The
German nation will never revive unless the racial problem is taken
into
account and dealt with. The racial problem furnishes the key not
only to the
understanding of human history but also to the understanding
of every kind of
human culture.
(6) By incorporating in the national community the masses
of our people
who are now in the international camp we do not thereby mean to
renounce
the principle that the interests of the various trades and
professions
must be safeguarded. Divergent interests in the various branches
of
labour and in the trades and professions are not the same as a division
between the various classes, but rather a feature inherent in the
economic
situation. Vocational grouping does not clash in the least with
the idea of a
national community, for this means national unity in
regard to all those
problems that affect the life of the nation as such.
To incorporate in
the national community, or simply the State, a stratum
of the people which
has now formed a social class the standing of the
higher classes must not be
lowered but that of the lower classes must be
raised. The class which carries
through this process is never the higher
class but rather the lower one which
is fighting for equality of rights.
The bourgeoisie of to-day was not
incorporated in the State through
measures enacted by the feudal nobility but
only through its own energy
and a leadership that had sprung from its own
ranks.
The German worker cannot be raised from his present standing and
incorporated in the German folk-community by means of goody-goody
meetings
where people talk about the brotherhood of the people, but
rather by a
systematic improvement in the social and cultural life of
the worker until
the yawning abyss between him and the other classes can
be filled in. A
movement which has this for its aim must try to recruit
its followers mainly
from the ranks of the working class. It must
include members of the
intellectual classes only in so far as such
members have rightly understood
and accepted without reserve the ideal
towards which the movement is
striving. This process of transformation
and reunion cannot be completed
within ten or twenty years. It will take
several generations, as the history
of such movements has shown.
The most difficult obstacle to the reunion
of our contemporary worker in
the national folk-community does not consist so
much in the fact that he
fights for the interests of his fellow-workers, but
rather in the
international ideas with which he is imbued and which are of
their
nature at variance with the ideas of nationhood and fatherland. This
hostile attitude to nation and fatherland has been inculcated by the
leaders
of the working class. If they were inspired by the principle of
devotion to
the nation in all that concerns its political and social
welfare, the trades
unions would make those millions of workers most
valuable members of the
national community, without thereby affecting
their own constant struggle for
their economic demands.
A movement which sincerely endeavours to bring
the German worker back
into his folk-community, and rescue him from the folly
of
internationalism, must wage a vigorous campaign against certain notions
that are prevalent among the industrialists. One of these notions is
that
according to the concept of the folk-community, the employee is
obliged to
surrender all his economic rights to the employer and,
further, that the
workers would come into conflict with the
folk-community if they should
attempt to defend their own just and vital
interests. Those who try to
propagate such a notion are deliberate
liars. The idea of a folk-community
does not impose any obligations on
the one side that are not imposed on the
other.
A worker certainly does something which is contrary to the spirit
of
folk-community if he acts entirely on his own initiative and puts
forward exaggerated demands without taking the common good into
consideration
or the maintenance of the national economic structure. But
an industrialist
also acts against the spirit of the folk-community if
he adopts inhuman
methods of exploitation and misuses the working forces
of the nation to make
millions unjustly for himself from the sweat of
the workers. He has no right
to call himself 'national' and no right to
talk of a folk-community, for he
is only an unscrupulous egoist who sows
the seeds of social discontent and
provokes a spirit of conflict which
sooner or later must be injurious to the
interests of the country.
The reservoir from which the young movement has
to draw its members will
first of all be the working masses. Those masses
must be delivered from
the clutches of the international mania. Their social
distress must be
eliminated. They must be raised above their present cultural
level,
which is deplorable, and transformed into a resolute and valuable
factor
in the folk-community, inspired by national ideas and national
sentiment.
If among those intellectual circles that are nationalist in
their
outlook men can be found who genuinely love the people and look forward
eagerly to the future of Germany, and at the same time have a sound
grasp of
the importance of a struggle whose aim is to win over the soul
of the masses,
such men are cordially welcomed in the ranks of our
movement, because they
can serve as a valuable intellectual force in the
work that has to be done.
But this movement can never aim at recruiting
its membership from the
unthinking herd of bourgeois voters. If it did
so the movement would be
burdened with a mass of people whose whole
mentality would only help to
paralyse the effort of our campaign to win
the mass of the people. In theory
it may be very fine to say that the
broad masses ought to be influenced by a
combined leadership of the
upper and lower social strata within the framework
of the one movement;
but, notwithstanding all this, the fact remains that
though it may be
possible to exercise a psychological influence on the
bourgeois classes
and to arouse some enthusiasm or even awaken some
understanding among
them by our public demonstrations, their traditional
characteristics
cannot be changed. In other words, we could not eliminate
from the
bourgeois classes the inefficiency and supineness which are part of
a
tradition that has developed through centuries. The difference between
the cultural levels of the two groups and between their respective
attitudes
towards social-economic questions is still so great that it
would turn out a
hindrance to the movement the moment the first
enthusiasm aroused by our
demonstrations calmed down.
Finally, it is not part of our programme to
transform the nationalist
camp itself, but rather to win over those who are
anti-national in their
outlook. It is from this viewpoint that the strategy
of the whole
movement must finally be decided.
(7) This one-sided but
accordingly clear and definite attitude must be
manifested in the propaganda
of the movement; and, on the other hand,
this is absolutely necessary to make
the propaganda itself effective.
If propaganda is to be of service to the
movement it must be addressed
to one side alone; for if it should vary the
direction of its appeal it
will not be understood in the one camp or may be
rejected by the other,
as merely insisting on obvious and uninteresting
truisms; for the
intellectual training of the two camps that come into
question here has
been very different.
Even the manner in which
something is presented and the tone in which
particular details are
emphasized cannot have the same effect in those
two strata that belong
respectively to the opposite extremes of the
social structure. If the
propaganda should refrain from using primitive
forms of expression it will
not appeal to the sentiments of the masses.
If, on the other hand, it
conforms to the crude sentiments of the masses
in its words and gestures the
intellectual circles will be averse to it
because of its roughness and
vulgarity. Among a hundred men who call
themselves orators there are scarcely
ten who are capable of speaking
with effect before an audience of
street-sweepers, locksmiths and
navvies, etc., to-day and expound the same
subject with equal effect
to-morrow before an audience of university
professors and students.
Among a thousand public speakers there may be only
one who can speak
before a composite audience of locksmiths and professors in
the same
hall in such a way that his statements can be fully comprehended by
each
group while at the same time he effectively influences both and awakens
enthusiasm, on the one side as well as on the other, to hearty applause.
But
it must be remembered that in most cases even the most beautiful
idea
embodied in a sublime theory can be brought home to the public only
through
the medium of smaller minds. The thing that matters here is not
the vision of
the man of genius who created the great idea but rather
the success which his
apostles achieve in shaping the expression of this
idea so as to bring it
home to the minds of the masses.
Social-Democracy and the whole Marxist
movement were particularly
qualified to attract the great masses of the
nation, because of the
uniformity of the public to which they addressed their
appeal. The more
limited and narrow their ideas and arguments, the easier it
was for the
masses to grasp and assimilate them; for those ideas and
arguments were
well adapted to a low level of intelligence.
These
considerations led the new movement to adopt a clear and simple
line of
policy, which was as follows:
In its message as well as in its forms of
expression the propaganda must
be kept on a level with the intelligence of
the masses, and its value
must be measured only by the actual success it
achieves.
At a public meeting where the great masses are gathered
together the
best speaker is not he whose way of approaching a subject is
most akin
to the spirit of those intellectuals who may happen to be present,
but
the speaker who knows how to win the hearts of the masses.
An
educated man who is present and who finds fault with an address
because he
considers it to be on an intellectual plane that is too low,
though he
himself has witnessed its effect on the lower intellectual
groups whose
adherence has to be won, only shows himself completely
incapable of rightly
judging the situation and therewith proves that he
can be of no use in the
new movement. Only intellectuals can be of use
to a movement who understand
its mission and its aims so well that they
have learned to judge our methods
of propaganda exclusively by the
success obtained and never by the impression
which those methods made on
the intellectuals themselves. For our propaganda
is not meant to serve
as an entertainment for those people who already have a
nationalist
outlook, but its purpose is to win the adhesion of those who have
hitherto been hostile to national ideas and who are nevertheless of our
own
blood and race.
In general, those considerations of which I have given a
brief summary
in the chapter on 'War Propaganda' became the guiding rules and
principles which determined the kind of propaganda we were to adopt in
our
campaign and the manner in which we were to put it into practice.
The success
that has been obtained proves that our decision was right.
(8) The ends
which any political reform movement sets out to attain can
never be reached
by trying to educate the public or influence those in
power but only by
getting political power into its hands. Every idea
that is meant to move the
world has not only the right but also the
obligation of securing control of
those means which will enable the idea
to be carried into effect. In this
world success is the only rule of
judgment whereby we can decide whether such
an undertaking was right or
wrong. And by the word 'success' in this
connection I do not mean such a
success as the mere conquest of power in 1918
but the successful issue
whereby the common interests of the nation have been
served. A COUP
D'ETAT cannot be considered successful if, as many
empty-headed
government lawyers in Germany now believe, the revolutionaries
succeeded
in getting control of the State into their hands but only if, in
comparison with the state of affairs under the old regime, the lot of
the
nation has been improved when the aims and intentions on which the
revolution
was based have been put into practice. This certainly does
not apply to the
German Revolution, as that movement was called, which
brought a gang of
bandits into power in the autumn of 1918.
But if the conquest of
political power be a requisite preliminary for
the practical realization of
the ideals that inspire a reform movement,
then any movement which aims at
reform must, from the very first day of
its activity, be considered by its
leaders as a movement of the masses
and not as a literary tea club or an
association of philistines who meet
to play ninepins.
(9) The nature
and internal organization of the new movement make it
anti-parliamentarian.
That is to say, it rejects in general and in its
own structure all those
principles according to which decisions are to
be taken on the vote of the
majority and according to which the leader
is only the executor of the will
and opinion of others. The movement
lays down the principle that, in the
smallest as well as in the greatest
problems, one person must have absolute
authority and bear all
responsibility.
In our movement the practical
consequences of this principle are the
following:
The president of a
large group is appointed by the head of the group
immediately above his in
authority. He is then the responsible leader of
his group. All the committees
are subject to his authority and not he to
theirs. There is no such thing as
committees that vote but only
committees that work. This work is allotted by
the responsible leader,
who is the president of the group. The same principle
applies to the
higher organizations--the Bezirk (district), the KREIS (urban
circuit)
and the GAU (the region). In each case the president is appointed
from
above and is invested with full authority and executive power. Only the
leader of the whole party is elected at the general meeting of the
members.
But he is the sole leader of the movement. All the committees
are responsible
to him, but he is not responsible to the committees. His
decision is final,
but he bears the whole responsibility of it. The
members of the movement are
entitled to call him to account by means of
a new election, or to remove him
from office if he has violated the
principles of the movement or has not
served its interests adequately.
He is then replaced by a more capable man.
who is invested with the same
authority and obliged to bear the same
responsibility.
One of the highest duties of the movement is to make this
principle
imperative not only within its own ranks but also for the whole
State.
The man who becomes leader is invested with the highest and
unlimited
authority, but he also has to bear the last and gravest
responsibility.
The man who has not the courage to shoulder
responsibility for his
actions is not fitted to be a leader. Only a man of
heroic mould can
have the vocation for such a task.
Human progress and
human cultures are not founded by the multitude. They
are exclusively the
work of personal genius and personal efficiency.
Because of this
principle, our movement must necessarily be
anti-parliamentarian, and if it
takes part in the parliamentary
institution it is only for the purpose of
destroying this institution
from within; in other words, we wish to do away
with an institution
which we must look upon as one of the gravest symptoms of
human decline.
(10) The movement steadfastly refuses to take up any stand
in regard to
those problems which are either outside of its sphere of
political work
or seem to have no fundamental importance for us. It does not
aim at
bringing about a religious reformation, but rather a political
reorganization of our people. It looks upon the two religious
denominations
as equally valuable mainstays for the existence of our
people, and therefore
it makes war on all those parties which would
degrade this foundation, on
which the religious and moral stability of
our people is based, to an
instrument in the service of party interests.
Finally, the movement does
not aim at establishing any one form of State
or trying to destroy another,
but rather to make those fundamental
principles prevail without which no
republic and no monarchy can exist
for any length of time. The movement does
not consider its mission to be
the establishment of a monarchy or the
preservation of the Republic but
rather to create a German State.
The
problem concerning the outer form of this State, that is to say, its
final
shape, is not of fundamental importance. It is a problem which
must be solved
in the light of what seems practical and opportune at the
moment.
Once
a nation has understood and appreciated the great problems that
affect its
inner existence, the question of outer formalities will never
lead to any
internal conflict.
(11) The problem of the inner organization of the
movement is not one of
principle but of expediency.
The best kind of
organization is not that which places a large
intermediary apparatus between
the leadership of the movement and the
individual followers but rather that
which works successfully with the
smallest possible intermediary apparatus.
For it is the task of such an
organization to transmit a certain idea which
originated in the brain of
one individual to a multitude of people and to
supervise the manner in
which this idea is being put into practice.
Therefore, from any and every viewpoint, the organization is only a
necessary
evil. At best it is only a means of reaching certain ends. The
worst happens
when it becomes an end in itself.
Since the world produces more
mechanical than intelligent beings, it
will always be easier to develop the
form of an organization than its
substance; that is to say, the ideas which
it is meant to serve.
The march of any idea which strives towards
practical fulfilment, and in
particular those ideas which are of a
reformatory character, may be
roughly sketched as follows:
A creative
idea takes shape in the mind of somebody who thereupon feels
himself called
upon to transmit this idea to the world. He propounds his
faith before others
and thereby gradually wins a certain number of
followers. This direct and
personal way of promulgating one's ideas
among one's contemporaries is the
most natural and the most ideal. But
as the movement develops and secures a
large number of followers it
gradually becomes impossible for the original
founder of the doctrine on
which the movement is based to carry on his
propaganda personally among
his innumerable followers and at the same time
guide the course of the
movement.
According as the community of
followers increases, direct communication
between the head and the individual
followers becomes impossible. This
intercourse must then take place through
an intermediary apparatus
introduced into the framework of the movement. Thus
ideal conditions of
inter-communication cease, and organization has to be
introduced as a
necessary evil. Small subsidiary groups come into existence,
as in the
political movement, for example, where the local groups represent
the
germ-cells out of which the organization develops later on.
But
such sub-divisions must not be introduced into the movement until
the
authority of the spiritual founder and of the school he has created
are
accepted without reservation. Otherwise the movement would run the
risk of
becoming split up by divergent doctrines. In this connection too
much
emphasis cannot be laid on the importance of having one geographic
centre as
the chief seat of the movement. Only the existence of such a
seat or centre,
around which a magic charm such as that of Mecca or Rome
is woven, can supply
a movement with that permanent driving force which
has its sources in the
internal unity of the movement and the
recognition of one head as
representing this unity.
When the first germinal cells of the
organization are being formed care
must always be taken to insist on the
importance of the place where the
idea originated. The creative, moral and
practical greatness of the
place whence the movement went forth and from
which it is governed must
be exalted to a supreme symbol, and this must be
honoured all the more
according as the original cells of the movement become
so numerous that
they have to be regrouped into larger units in the structure
of the
organization.
When the number of individual followers became so
large that direct
personal contact with the head of the movement was out of
the question,
then we had to form those first local groups. As those groups
multiplied
to an extraordinary number it was necessary to establish higher
cadres
into which the local groups were distributed. Examples of such cadres
in
the political organization are those of the region (GAU) and the
district (BEZIRK).
Though it may be easy enough to maintain the original
central authority
over the lowest groups, it is much more difficult to do so
in relation
to the higher units of organization which have now developed. And
yet we
must succeed in doing this, for this is an indispensable condition if
the unity of the movement is to be guaranteed and the idea of it carried
into
effect.
Finally, when those larger intermediary organizations have to be
combined in new and still higher units it becomes increasingly difficult
to
maintain over them the absolute supremacy of the original seat of the
movement and the school attached to it.
Consequently the mechanical forms
of an organization must only be
introduced if and in so far as the spiritual
authority and the ideals of
the central seat of the organization are shown to
be firmly established.
In the political sphere it may often happen that this
supremacy can be
maintained only when the movement has taken over supreme
political
control of the nation.
Having taken all these considerations
into account, the following
principles were laid down for the inner structure
of the movement:
(a) That at the beginning all activity should be
concentrated in one
town: namely, Munich. That a band of absolutely reliable
followers
should be trained and a school founded which would subsequently
help to
propagate the idea of the movement. That the prestige of the
movement,
for the sake of its subsequent extension, should first be
established
here through gaining as many successful and visible results as
possible
in this one place. To secure name and fame for the movement and its
leader it was necessary, not only to give in this one town a striking
example
to shatter the belief that the Marxist doctrine was invincible
but also to
show that a counter-doctrine was possible.
(b) That local groups should
not be established before the supremacy of
the central authority in Munich
was definitely established and
acknowledged.
(c) That District,
Regional, and Provincial groups should be formed only
after the need for them
has become evident and only after the supremacy
of the central authority has
been satisfactorily guaranteed.
Further, that the creation of subordinate
organisms must depend on
whether or not those persons can be found who are
qualified to undertake
the leadership of them.
Here there were only
two solutions:
(a) That the movement should acquire the necessary funds
to attract and
train intelligent people who would be capable of becoming
leaders. The
personnel thus obtained could then be systematically employed
according
as the tactical situation and the necessity for efficiency
demanded.
This solution was the easier and the more expedite. But it
demanded
large financial resources; for this group of leaders could work in
the
movement only if they could be paid a salary.
(b) Because the
movement is not in a position to employ paid officials
it must begin by
depending on honorary helpers. Naturally this solution
is slower and more
difficult.
It means that the leaders of the movement have to allow vast
territories
to lie fallow unless in these respective districts one of the
members
comes forward who is capable and willing to place himself at the
service
of the central authority for the purpose of organizing and directing
the
movement in the region concerned.
It may happen that in extensive
regions no such leader can be found, but
that at the same time in other
regions two or three or even more persons
appear whose capabilities are
almost on a level. The difficulty which
this situation involves is very great
and can be overcome only with the
passing of the years.
For the
establishment of any branch of the organization the decisive
condition must
always be that a person can be found who is capable of
fulfilling the
functions of a leader.
Just as the army and all its various units of
organization are useless
if there are no officers, so any political
organization is worthless if
it has not the right kind of leaders.
If
an inspiring personality who has the gift of leadership cannot be
found for
the organization and direction of a local group it is better
for the movement
to refrain from establishing such a group than to run
the risk of failure
after the group has been founded.
The will to be a leader is not a
sufficient qualification for
leadership. For the leader must have the other
necessary qualities.
Among these qualities will-power and energy must be
considered as more
serviceable than the intellect of a genius. The most
valuable
association of qualities is to be found in a combination of talent,
determination and perseverance.
(12) The future of a movement is
determined by the devotion, and even
intolerance, with which its members
fight for their cause. They must
feel convinced that their cause alone is
just, and they must carry it
through to success, as against other similar
organizations in the same
field.
It is quite erroneous to believe that
the strength of a movement must
increase if it be combined with other
movements of a similar kind. Any
expansion resulting from such a combination
will of course mean an
increase in external development, which superficial
observers might
consider as also an increase of power; but in reality the
movement thus
admits outside elements which will subsequently weaken its
constitutional vigour.
Though it may be said that one movement is
identical in character with
another, in reality no such identity exists. If
it did exist then
practically there would not be two movements but only one.
And whatever
the difference may be, even if it consist only of the measure in
which
the capabilities of the one set of leaders differ from those of the
other, there it is. It is against the natural law of all development to
couple dissimilar organisms, or the law is that the stronger must
overcome
the weaker and, through the struggle necessary for such a
conquest, increase
the constitutional vigour and effective strength of
the victor.
By
amalgamating political organizations that are approximately alike,
certain
immediate advantages may be gained, but advantages thus gained
are bound in
the long run to become the cause of internal weaknesses
which will make their
appearance later on.
A movement can become great only if the unhampered
development of its
internal strength be safeguarded and steadfastly
augmented, until
victory over all its competitors be secured.
One may
safely say that the strength of a movement and its right to
existence can be
developed only as long as it remains true to the
principle that struggle is a
necessary condition of its progress and
that its maximum strength will be
reached only as soon as complete
victory has been won.
Therefore a
movement must not strive to obtain successes that will be
only immediate and
transitory, but it must show a spirit of
uncompromising perseverance in
carrying through a long struggle which
will secure for it a long period of
inner growth.
All those movements which owe their expansion to a
so-called combination
of similar organisms, which means that their external
strength is due to
a policy of compromise, are like plants whose growth is
forced in a
hothouse. They shoot up externally but they lack that inner
strength
which enables the natural plant to grow into a tree that will
withstand
the storms of centuries.
The greatness of every powerful
organization which embodies a creative
idea lies in the spirit of religious
devotion and intolerance with which
it stands out against all others, because
it has an ardent faith in its
own right. If an idea is right in itself and,
furnished with the
fighting weapons I have mentioned, wages war on this
earth, then it is
invincible and persecution will only add to its internal
strength.
The greatness of Christianity did not arise from attempts to
make
compromises with those philosophical opinions of the ancient world which
had some resemblance to its own doctrine, but in the unrelenting and
fanatical proclamation and defence of its own teaching.
The apparent
advance that a movement makes by associating itself with
other movements will
be easily reached and surpassed by the steady
increase of strength which a
doctrine and its organization acquires if
it remains independent and fights
its own cause alone.
(13) The movement ought to educate its adherents to
the principle that
struggle must not be considered a necessary evil but as
something to be
desired in itself. Therefore they must not be afraid of the
hostility
which their adversaries manifest towards them but they must take it
as a
necessary condition on which their whole right to existence is based.
They must not try to avoid being hated by those who are the enemies of
our
people and our philosophy of life, but must welcome such hatred.
Lies and
calumnies are part of the method which the enemy employs to
express his
chagrin.
The man who is not opposed and vilified and slandered in the
Jewish
Press is not a staunch German and not a true National Socialist. The
best rule whereby the sincerity of his convictions, his character and
strength of will, can be measured is the hostility which his name
arouses
among the mortal enemies of our people.
The followers of the movement,
and indeed the whole nation, must be
reminded again and again of the fact
that, through the medium of his
newspapers, the Jew is always spreading
falsehood and that if he tells
the truth on some occasions it is only for the
purpose of masking some
greater deceit, which turns the apparent truth into a
deliberate
falsehood. The Jew is the Great Master of Lies. Falsehood and
duplicity
are the weapons with which he fights.
Every calumny and
falsehood published by the Jews are tokens of honour
which can be worn by our
comrades. He whom they decry most is nearest to
our hearts and he whom they
mortally hate is our best friend.
If a comrade of ours opens a Jewish
newspaper in the morning and does
not find himself vilified there, then he
has spent yesterday to no
account. For if he had achieved something he would
be persecuted,
slandered, derided and abused. Those who effectively combat
this mortal
enemy of our people, who is at the same time the enemy of all
Aryan
peoples and all culture, can only expect to arouse opposition on the
part of this race and become the object of its slanderous attacks.
When
these truths become part of the flesh and blood, as it were, of our
members,
then the movement will be impregnable and invincible.
(14) The movement
must use all possible means to cultivate respect for
the individual
personality. It must never forget that all human values
are based on personal
values, and that every idea and achievement is the
fruit of the creative
power of one man. We must never forget that
admiration for everything that is
great is not only a tribute to one
creative personality but that all those
who feel such admiration become
thereby united under one covenant.
Nothing can take the place of the individual, especially if the
individual
embodies in himself not the mechanical element but the
element of cultural
creativeness. No pupil can take the place of the
master in completing a great
picture which he has left unfinished; and
just in the same way no substitute
can take the place of the great poet
or thinker, or the great statesman or
military general. For the source
of their power is in the realm of artistic
creativeness. It can never be
mechanically acquired, because it is an innate
product of divine grace.
The greatest revolutions and the greatest
achievements of this world,
its greatest cultural works and the immortal
creations of great
statesmen, are inseparably bound up with one name which
stands as a
symbol for them in each respective case. The failure to pay
tribute to
one of those great spirits signifies a neglect of that enormous
source
of power which lies in the remembrance of all great men and women.
The Jew himself knows this best. He, whose great men have always been
great only in their efforts to destroy mankind and its civilization,
takes
good care that they are worshipped as idols. But the Jew tries to
degrade the
honour in which nations hold their great men and women. He
stigmatizes this
honour as 'the cult of personality'.
As soon as a nation has so far lost
its courage as to submit to this
impudent defamation on the part of the Jews
it renounces the most
important source of its own inner strength. This inner
force cannot
arise from a policy of pandering to the masses but only from the
worship
of men of genius, whose lives have uplifted and ennobled the nation
itself.
When men's hearts are breaking and their souls are plunged into
the
depths of despair, their great forebears turn their eyes towards them
from the dim shadows of the past--those forebears who knew how to
triumph
over anxiety and affliction, mental servitude and physical
bondage--and
extend their eternal hands in a gesture of encouragement to
despairing souls.
Woe to the nation that is ashamed to clasp those
hands.
During the
initial phase of our movement our greatest handicap was the
fact that none of
us were known and our names meant nothing, a fact
which then seemed to some
of us to make the chances of final success
problematical. Our most difficult
task then was to make our members
firmly believe that there was a tremendous
future in store for the
movement and to maintain this belief as a living
faith; for at that time
only six, seven or eight persons came to hear one of
our speakers.
Consider that only six or seven poor devils who were
entirely unknown
came together to found a movement which should succeed in
doing what the
great mass-parties had failed to do: namely, to reconstruct
the German
REICH, even in greater power and glory than before. We should have
been
very pleased if we were attacked or even ridiculed. But the most
depressing fact was that nobody paid any attention to us whatever. This
utter
lack of interest in us caused me great mental pain at that time.
When I
entered the circle of those men there was not yet any question of
a party or
a movement. I have already described the impression which was
made on me when
I first came into contact with that small organization.
Subsequently I had
time, and also the occasion, to study the form of
this so-called party which
at first had made such a woeful impression.
The picture was indeed quite
depressing and discouraging. There was
nothing, absolutely nothing at all.
There was only the name of a party.
And the committee consisted of all the
party members. Somehow or other
it seemed just the kind of thing we were
about to fight against--a
miniature parliament. The voting system was
employed. When the great
parliament cried until they were hoarse--at least
they shouted over
problems of importance--here this small circle engaged in
interminable
discussions as to the form in which they might answer the
letters which
they were delighted to have received.
Needless to say,
the public knew nothing of all this. In Munich nobody
knew of the existence
of such a party, not even by name, except our few
members and their small
circle of acquaintances.
Every Wednesday what was called a committee
meeting was held in one of
the cafés, and a debate was arranged for one
evening each week. In the
beginning all the members of the movement were also
members of the
committee, therefore the same persons always turned up at both
meetings.
The first step that had to be taken was to extend the narrow limits
of
this small circle and get new members, but the principal necessity was
to utilize all the means at our command for the purpose of making the
movement known.
We chose the following methods: We decided to hold a
monthly meeting to
which the public would be invited. Some of the invitations
were
typewritten, and some were written by hand. For the first few meetings
we distributed them in the streets and delivered them personally at
certain
houses. Each one canvassed among his own acquaintances and tried
to persuade
some of them to attend our meetings. The result was
lamentable.
I
still remember once how I personally delivered eighty of these
invitations
and how we waited in the evening for the crowds to come.
After waiting in
vain for a whole hour the chairman finally had to open
the meeting. Again
there were only seven people present, the old
familiar seven.
We then
changed our methods. We had the invitations written with a
typewriter in a
Munich stationer's shop and then multigraphed them.
The result was that a
few more people attended our next meeting. The
number increased gradually
from eleven to thirteen to seventeen, to
twenty-three and finally to
thirty-four. We collected some money within
our own circle, each poor devil
giving a small contribution, and in that
way we raised sufficient funds to be
able to advertise one of our
meetings in the MUNICH OBSERVER, which was still
an independent paper.
This time we had an astonishing success. We had
chosen the Munich
HOFBRÄU HAUS KELLER (which must not be confounded with the
Munich
HOFBRÄU HAUS FESTSAAL) as our meeting-place. It was a small hall and
would accommodate scarcely more than 130 people. To me, however, the
hall
seemed enormous, and we were all trembling lest this tremendous
edifice would
remain partly empty on the night of the meeting.
At seven o'clock 111
persons were present, and the meeting was opened. A
Munich professor
delivered the principal address, and I spoke after him.
That was my first
appearance in the role of public orator. The whole
thing seemed a very daring
adventure to Herr Harrer, who was then
chairman of the party. He was a very
decent fellow; but he had an
A PRIORI conviction that, although I might have
quite a number of good
qualities, I certainly did not have a talent for
public speaking. Even
later he could not be persuaded to change his opinion.
But he was
mistaken. Twenty minutes had been allotted to me for my speech on
this
occasion, which might be looked upon as our first public meeting.
I talked for thirty minutes, and what I always had felt deep down in my
heart, without being able to put it to the test, was here proved to be
true:
I could make a good speech. At the end of the thirty minutes it
was quite
clear that all the people in the little hall had been
profoundly impressed.
The enthusiasm aroused among them found its first
expression in the fact that
my appeal to those present brought us
donations which amounted to three
hundred marks. That was a great relief
for us. Our finances were at that time
so meagre that we could not
afford to have our party prospectus printed, or
even leaflets. Now we
possessed at least the nucleus of a fund from which we
could pay the
most urgent and necessary expenses.
But the success of
this first larger meeting was also important from
another point of view. I
had already begun to introduce some young and
fresh members into the
committee. During the long period of my military
service I had come to know a
large number of good comrades whom I was
now able to persuade to join our
party. All of them were energetic and
disciplined young men who, through
their years of military service, had
been imbued with the principle that
nothing is impossible and that where
there's a will there's a way.
The
need for this fresh blood supply became evident to me after a few
weeks of
collaboration with the new members. Herr Harrer, who was then
chairman of the
party, was a journalist by profession, and as such he
was a man of general
knowledge. But as leader of the party he had one
very serious handicap: he
could not speak to the crowd. Though he did
his work conscientiously, it
lacked the necessary driving force,
probably for the reason that he had no
oratorical gifts whatsoever. Herr
Drexler, at that time chairman of the
Munich local group, was a simple
working man. He, too, was not of any great
importance as a speaker.
Moreover, he was not a soldier. He had never done
military service, even
during the War. So that this man who was feeble and
diffident by nature
had missed the only school which knows how to transform
diffident and
weakly natures into real men. Therefore neither of those two
men were of
the stuff that would have enabled them to stir up an ardent and
indomitable faith in the ultimate triumph of the movement and to brush
aside,
with obstinate force and if necessary with brutal ruthlessness,
all obstacles
that stood in the path of the new idea. Such a task could
be carried out only
by men who had been trained, body and soul, in those
military virtues which
make a man, so to speak, agile as a greyhound,
tough as leather, and hard as
Krupp steel.
At that time I was still a soldier. Physically and mentally
I had the
polish of six years of service, so that in the beginning this
circle
must have looked on me as quite a stranger. In common with my army
comrades, I had forgotten such phrases as: "That will not go", or "That
is
not possible", or "We ought not to take such a risk; it is too
dangerous".
The whole undertaking was of its very nature dangerous. At that time
there were many parts of Germany where it would have been absolutely
impossible openly to invite people to a national meeting that dared to
make a
direct appeal to the masses. Those who attended such meetings
were usually
dispersed and driven away with broken heads. It certainly
did not call for
any great qualities to be able to do things in that
way. The largest
so-called bourgeois mass meetings were accustomed to
dissolve, and those in
attendance would run away like rabbits when
frightened by a dog as soon as a
dozen communists appeared on the scene.
The Reds used to pay little attention
to those bourgeois organizations
where only babblers talked. They recognized
the inner triviality of such
associations much better than the members
themselves and therefore felt
that they need not be afraid of them. On the
contrary, however, they
were all the more determined to use every possible
means of annihilating
once and for all any movement that appeared to them to
be a danger to
their own interests. The most effective means which they
always employed
in such cases were terror and brute force.
The Marxist
leaders, whose business consisted in deceiving and
misleading the public,
naturally hated most of all a movement whose
declared aim was to win over
those masses which hitherto had been
exclusively at the service of
international Marxism in the Jewish and
Stock Exchange parties. The title
alone, 'German Labour party',
irritated them. It could easily be foreseen
that at the first opportune
moment we should have to face the opposition of
the Marxist despots, who
were still intoxicated with their triumph in 1918.
People in the small circles of our own movement at that time showed a
certain amount of anxiety at the prospect of such a conflict. They
wanted to
refrain as much as possible from coming out into the open,
because they
feared that they might be attacked and beaten. In their
minds they saw our
first public meetings broken up and feared that the
movement might thus be
ruined for ever. I found it difficult to defend
my own position, which was
that the conflict should not be evaded but
that it should be faced openly and
that we should be armed with those
weapons which are the only protection
against brute force. Terror cannot
be overcome by the weapons of the mind but
only by counter-terror. The
success of our first public meeting strengthened
my own position. The
members felt encouraged to arrange for a second meeting,
even on a
larger scale.
Some time in October 1919 the second larger
meeting took place in the
EBERLBRÄU KELLER. The theme of our speeches was
'Brest-Litowsk and
Versailles'. There were four speakers. I talked for almost
an hour, and
the success was even more striking than at our first meeting.
The number
of people who attended had grown to more than 130. An attempt to
disturb
the proceedings was immediately frustrated by my comrades. The
would-be
disturbers were thrown down the stairs, bearing imprints of violence
on
their heads.
A fortnight later another meeting took place in the
same hall. The
number in attendance had now increased to more than 170, which
meant
that the room was fairly well filled. I spoke again, and once more the
success obtained was greater than at the previous meeting.
Then I
proposed that a larger hall should be found. After looking around
for some
time we discovered one at the other end of the town, in the
'Deutschen REICH'
in the Dachauer Strasse. The first meeting at this new
rendezvous had a
smaller attendance than the previous meeting. There
were just less than 140
present. The members of the committee began to
be discouraged, and those who
had always been sceptical were now
convinced that this falling-off in the
attendance was due to the fact
that we were holding the meetings at too short
intervals. There were
lively discussions, in which I upheld my own opinion
that a city with
700,000 inhabitants ought to be able not only to stand one
meeting every
fortnight but ten meetings every week. I held that we should
not be
discouraged by one comparative setback, that the tactics we had chosen
were correct, and that sooner or later success would be ours if we only
continued with determined perseverance to push forward on our road. This
whole winter of 1919-20 was one continual struggle to strengthen
confidence
in our ability to carry the movement through to success and
to intensify this
confidence until it became a burning faith that could
move mountains.
Our next meeting in the small hall proved the truth of my contention.
Our
audience had increased to more than 200. The publicity effect and
the
financial success were splendid. I immediately urged that a further
meeting
should be held. It took place in less than a fortnight, and
there were more
than 270 people present. Two weeks later we invited our
followers and their
friends, for the seventh time, to attend our
meeting. The same hall was
scarcely large enough for the number that
came. They amounted to more than
four hundred.
During this phase the young movement developed its inner
form. Sometimes
we had more or less hefty discussions within our small
circle. From
various sides--it was then just the same as it is
to-day--objections
were made against the idea of calling the young movement a
party. I have
always considered such criticism as a demonstration of
practical
incapability and narrow-mindedness on the part of the critic. Those
objections have always been raised by men who could not differentiate
between
external appearances and inner strength, but tried to judge the
movement by
the high-sounding character of the name attached to it. To
this end they
ransacked the vocabulary of our ancestors, with
unfortunate results.
At that time it was very difficult to make the people understand that
every
movement is a party as long as it has not brought its ideals to
final triumph
and thus achieved its purpose. It is a party even if it
give itself a
thousand difterent names.
Any person who tries to carry into practice an
original idea whose
realization would be for the benefit of his fellow men
will first have
to look for disciples who are ready to fight for the ends he
has in
view. And if these ends did not go beyond the destruction of the party
system and therewith put a stop to the process of disintegration, then
all
those who come forward as protagonists and apostles of such an ideal
are a
party in themselves as long as their final goal is reached. It is
only
hair-splitting and playing with words when these antiquated
theorists, whose
practical success is in reverse ratio to their wisdom,
presume to think they
can change the character of a movement which is at
the same time a party, by
merely changing its name.
On the contrary, it is entirely out of harmony
with the spirit of the
nation to keep harping on that far-off and forgotten
nomenclature which
belongs to the ancient Germanic times and does not awaken
any distinct
association in our age. This habit of borrowing words from the
dead past
tends to mislead the people into thinking that the external
trappings of
its vocabulary are the important feature of a movement. It is
really a
mischievous habit; but it is quite prevalent nowadays.
At
that time, and subsequently, I had to warn followers repeatedly
against these
wandering scholars who were peddling Germanic folk-lore
and who never
accomplished anything positive or practical, except to
cultivate their own
superabundant self-conceit. The new movement must
guard itself against an
influx of people whose only recommendation is
their own statement that they
have been fighting for these very same
ideals during the last thirty or forty
years.
Now if somebody has fought for forty years to carry into effect
what he
calls an idea, and if these alleged efforts not only show no positive
results but have not even been able to hinder the success of the
opposing
party, then the story of those forty years of futile effort
furnishes
sufficient proof for the incompetence of such a protagonist.
People of that
kind are specially dangerous because they do not want to
participate in the
movement as ordinary members. They talk rather of the
leading positions which
would be the only fitting posts for them, in
view of their past work and also
so that they might be enabled to carry
on that work further. But woe to a
young movement if the conduct of it
should fall into the hands of such
people. A business man who has been
in charge of a great firm for forty years
and who has completely ruined
it through his mismanagement is not the kind of
person one would
recommend for the founding of a new firm. And it is just the
same with a
new national movement. Nobody of common sense would appoint to a
leading
post in such a movement some Teutonic Methuselah who had been
ineffectively preaching some idea for a period of forty years, until
himself
and his idea had entered the stage of senile decay.
Furthermore, only a
very small percentage of such people join a new
movement with the intention
of serving its end unselfishly and helping
in the spread of its principles.
In most cases they come because they
think that, under the aegis of the new
movement, it will be possible for
them to promulgate their old ideas to the
misfortune of their new
listeners. Anyhow, nobody ever seems able to describe
what exactly these
ideas are.
It is typical of such persons that they
rant about ancient Teutonic
heroes of the dim and distant ages, stone axes,
battle spears and
shields, whereas in reality they themselves are the
woefullest poltroons
imaginable. For those very same people who brandish
Teutonic tin swords
that have been fashioned carefully according to ancient
models and wear
padded bear-skins, with the horns of oxen mounted over their
bearded
faces, proclaim that all contemporary conflicts must be decided by
the
weapons of the mind alone. And thus they skedaddle when the first
communist cudgel appears. Posterity will have little occasion to write a
new
epic on these heroic gladiators.
I have seen too much of that kind of
people not to feel a profound
contempt for their miserable play-acting. To
the masses of the nation
they are just an object of ridicule; but the Jew
finds it to his own
interest to treat these folk-lore comedians with respect
and to prefer
them to real men who are fighting to establish a German State.
And yet
these comedians are extremely proud of themselves. Notwithstanding
their
complete fecklessness, which is an established fact, they pretend to
know everything better than other people; so much so that they make
themselves a veritable nuisance to all sincere and honest patriots, to
whom
not only the heroism of the past is worthy of honour but who also
feel bound
to leave examples of their own work for the inspiration of
the coming
generation.
Among those people there were some whose conduct can be
explained by
their innate stupidity and incompetence; but there are others
who have a
definite ulterior purpose in view. Often it is difficult to
distinguish
between the two classes. The impression which I often get,
especially of
those so-called religious reformers whose creed is grounded on
ancient
Germanic customs, is that they are the missionaries and protégés of
those forces which do not wish to see a national revival taking place in
Germany. All their activities tend to turn the attention of the people
away
from the necessity of fighting together in a common cause against
the common
enemy, namely the Jew. Moreover, that kind of preaching
induces the people to
use up their energies, not in fighting for the
common cause, but in absurd
and ruinous religious controversies within
their own ranks. There are
definite grounds that make it absolutely
necessary for the movement to be
dominated by a strong central force
which is embodied in the authoritative
leadership. In this way alone is
it possible to counteract the activity of
such fatal elements. And that
is just the reason why these folk-lore
Ahasueruses are vigorously
hostile to any movement whose members are firmly
united under one leader
and one discipline. Those people of whom I have
spoken hate such a
movement because it is capable of putting a stop to their
mischief.
It was not without good reason that when we laid down a clearly
defined
programme for the new movement we excluded the word VÖLKISCH from it.
The concept underlying the term VÖLKISCH cannot serve as the basis of a
movement, because it is too indefinite and general in its application.
Therefore, if somebody called himself VÖLKISCH such a designation could
not
be taken as the hall-mark of some definite, party affiliation.
Because
this concept is so indefinite from the practical viewpoint, it
gives rise to
various interpretations and thus people can appeal to it
all the more easily
as a sort of personal recommendation. Whenever such
a vague concept, which is
subject to so many interpretations, is
admitted into a political movement it
tends to break up the disciplined
solidarity of the fighting forces. No such
solidarity can be maintained
if each individual member be allowed to define
for himself what he
believes and what he is willing to do.
One feels
it a disgrace when one notices the kind of people who float
about nowadays
with the VÖLKISCH symbol stuck in their buttonholes, and
at the same time to
notice how many people have various ideas of their
own as to the significance
of that symbol. A well-known professor in
Bavaria, a famous combatant who
fights only with the weapons of the mind
and who boasts of having marched
against Berlin--by shouldering the
weapons of the mind, of course--believes
that the word VÖLKISCH is
synonymous with 'monarchical'. But this learned
authority has hitherto
neglected to explain how our German monarchs of the
past can be
identified with what we generally mean by the word VÖLKISCH
to-day. I am
afraid he will find himself at a loss if he is asked to give a
precise
answer. For it would be very difficult indeed to imagine anything
less
VÖLKISCH than most of those German monarchical States were. Had they
been otherwise they would not have disappeared; or if they were
VÖLKISCH,
then the fact of their downfall may be taken as evidence that
the VÖLKISCH
outlook on the world (WELTANSCHAUUNG) is a false outlook.
Everybody
interprets this concept in his own way. But such multifarious
opinions cannot
be adopted as the basis of a militant political
movement. I need not call
attention to the absolute lack of worldly
wisdom, and especially the failure
to understand the soul of the nation,
which is displayed by these Messianic
Precursors of the Twentieth
Century. Sufficient attention has been called to
those people by the
ridicule which the left-wing parties have bestowed on
them. They allow
them to babble on and sneer at them.
I do not set
much value on the friendship of people who do not succeed
in getting disliked
by their enemies. Therefore, we considered the
friendship of such people as
not only worthless but even dangerous to
our young movement. That was the
principal reason why we first called
ourselves a PARTY. We hoped that by
giving ourselves such a name we
might scare away a whole host of VÖLKISCH
dreamers. And that was the
reason also why we named our Party, THE NATIONAL
SOCIALIST GERMAN LABOUR
PARTY.
The first term, Party, kept away all
those dreamers who live in the past
and all the lovers of bombastic
nomenclature, as well as those who went
around beating the big drum for the
VÖLKISCH idea. The full name of the
Party kept away all those heroes whose
weapon is the sword of the spirit
and all those whining poltroons who take
refuge behind their so-called
'intelligence' as if it were a kind of shield.
It was only to be expected that this latter class would launch a massed
attack against us after our movement had started; but, of course, it was
only
a pen-and-ink attack, for the goose-quill is the only weapon which
these
VÖLKISCH lancers wield. We had declared one of our principles
thus: "We shall
meet violence with violence in our own defence".
Naturally that principle
disturbed the equanimity of the knights of the
pen. They reproached us
bitterly not only for what they called our crude
worship of the cudgel but
also because, according to them, we had no
intellectual forces on our side.
These charlatans did not think for a
moment that a Demosthenes could be
reduced to silence at a mass-meeting
by fifty idiots who had come there to
shout him down and use their fists
against his supporters. The innate
cowardice of the pen-and-ink
charlatan prevents him from exposing himself to
such a danger, for he
always works in safe retirement and never dares to make
a noise or come
forward in public.
Even to-day I must warn the members
of our young movement in the
strongest possible terms to guard against the
danger of falling into the
snare of those who call themselves 'silent
workers'. These 'silent
workers' are not only a whitelivered lot but are
also, and always will
be, ignorant do-nothings. A man who is aware of certain
happenings and
knows that a certain danger threatens, and at the same time
sees a
certain remedy which can be employed against it, is in duty bound not
to
work in silence but to come into the open and publicly fight for the
destruction of the evil and the acceptance of his own remedy. If he does
not
do so, then he is neglecting his duty and shows that he is weak in
character
and that he fails to act either because of his timidity, or
indolence or
incompetence. Most of these 'silent workers' generally
pretend to know God
knows what. Not one of them is capable of any real
achievement, but they keep
on trying to fool the world with their
antics. Though quite indolent, they
try to create the impression that
their 'silent work' keeps them very busy.
To put it briefly, they are
sheer swindlers, political jobbers who feel
chagrined by the honest work
which others are doing. When you find one of
these VÖLKISCH moths
buzzing over the value of his 'silent work' you may be
sure that you are
dealing with a fellow who does no productive work at all
but steals from
others the fruits of their honest labour.
In addition
to all this one ought to note the arrogance and conceited
impudence with
which these obscurantist idlers try to tear to pieces the
work of other
people, criticizing it with an air of superiority, and
thus playing into the
hands of the mortal enemy of our people.
Even the simplest follower who
has the courage to stand on the table in
some beer-hall where his enemies are
gathered, and manfully and openly
defend his position against them, achieves
a thousand times more than
these slinking hypocrites. He at least will
convert one or two people to
believe in the movement. One can examine his
work and test its
effectiveness by its actual results. But those knavish
swindlers--who
praise their own 'silent work' and shelter themselves under
the cloak of
anonymity, are just worthless drones, in the truest sense of the
term,
and are utterly useless for the purpose of our national reconstruction.
In the beginning of 1920 I put forward the idea of holding our first
mass
meeting. On this proposal there were differences of opinion amongst
us. Some
leading members of our party thought that the time was not ripe
for such a
meeting and that the result might be detrimental. The Press
of the Left had
begun to take notice of us and we were lucky enough in
being able gradually
to arouse their wrath. We had begun to appear at
other meetings and to ask
questions or contradict the speakers, with the
natural result that we were
shouted down forthwith. But still we thereby
gained some of our ends. People
began to know of our existence and the
better they understood us, the
stronger became their aversion and their
enmity. Therefore we might expect
that a large contingent of our friends
from the Red Camp would attend our
first mass meeting.
I fully realized that our meeting would probably be
broken up. But we
had to face the fight; if not now, then some months later.
Since the
first day of our foundation we were resolved to secure the future
of the
movement by fighting our way forward in a spirit of blind faith and
ruthless determination. I was well acquainted with the mentality of all
those
who belonged to the Red Camp, and I knew quite well that if we
opposed them
tooth and nail not only would we make an impression on them
but that we even
might win new followers for ourselves. Therefore I felt
that we must decide
on a policy of active opposition.
Herr Harrer was then chairman of our
party. He did not see eye to eye
with me as to the opportune time for our
first mass meeting. Accordingly
he felt himself obliged to resign from the
leadership of the movement,
as an upright and honest man. Herr Anton Drexler
took his place. I kept
the work of organizing the propaganda in my own hands
and I listened to
no compromise in carrying it out.
We decided on
February 24th 1920 as the date for the first great popular
meeting to be held
under the aegis of this movement which was hitherto
unknown.
I made
all the preparatory arrangements personally. They did not take
very long. The
whole apparatus of our organization was set in motion for
the purpose of
being able to secure a rapid decision as to our policy.
Within twenty-four
hours we had to decide on the attitude we should take
in regard to the
questions of the day which would be put forward at the
mass meeting. The
notices which advertised the meeting had to bring
these points before the
public. In this direction we were forced to
depend on the use of posters and
leaflets, the contents of which and the
manner in which they were displayed
were decided upon in accordance with
the principles which I have already laid
down in dealing with propaganda
in general. They were produced in a form
which would appeal to the
crowd. They concentrated on a few points which were
repeated again and
again. The text was concise and definite, an absolutely
dogmatic form of
expression being used. We distributed these posters and
leaflets with a
dogged energy and then we patiently waited for the effect
they would
produce.
For our principal colour we chose red, as it has
an exciting effect on
the eye and was therefore calculated to arouse the
attention of our
opponents and irritate them. Thus they would have to take
notice of
us--whether they liked it or not--and would not forget us.
One result of our tactics was to show up clearly the close political
fraternization that existed also here in Bavaria between the Marxists
and the
Centre Party. The political party that held power in Bavaria,
which was the
Bavarian People's Party (affiliated with the Centre Party)
did its best to
counteract the effect which our placards were having on
the 'Red' masses.
Thus they made a definite step to fetter our
activities. If the police could
find no other grounds for prohibiting
our placards, then they might claim
that we were disturbing the traffic
in the streets. And thus the so-called
German National People's Party
calmed the anxieties of their 'Red' allies by
completely prohibiting
those placards which proclaimed a message that was
bringing back to the
bosom of their own people hundreds of thousands of
workers who had been
misled by international agitators and incensed against
their own nation.
These placards bear witness to the bitterness of the
struggle in which
the young movement was then engaged. Future generations
will find in
these placards a documentary proof of our determination and the
justice
of our own cause. And these placards will also prove how the
so-called
national officials took arbitrary action to strangle a movement
that did
not please them, because it was nationalizing the broad masses of
the
people and winning them back to their own racial stock.
These
placards will also help to refute the theory that there was then a
national
government in Bavaria and they will afford documentary
confirmation of the
fact that if Bavaria remained nationally-minded
during the years 1919, 1920,
1921, 1922 and 1923, this was not due to a
national government but it was
because the national spirit gradually
gained a deeper hold on the people and
the Government was forced to
follow public feeling. The Government
authorities themselves did
everything in their power to hamper this process
of recovery and make it
impossible. But in this connection two officials must
be mentioned as
outstanding exceptions.
Ernst Pöhner was Chief of
Police at the time. He had a loyal counsellor
in Dr. Frick, who was his chief
executive official. These were the only
men among the higher officials who
had the courage to place the
interests of their country before their own
interests in holding on to
their jobs. Of those in responsible positions
Ernst Pöhner was the only
one who did not pay court to the mob but felt that
his duty was towards
the nation as such and was ready to risk and sacrifice
everything, even
his personal livelihood, to help in the restoration of the
German
people, whom he dearly loved. For that reason he was a bitter thorn in
the side of the venal group of Government officials. It was not the
interests
of the nation or the necessity of a national revival that
inspired or
directed their conduct. They simply truckled to the wishes
of the Government,
so as to secure their daily bread for themselves, but
they had no thought
whatsoever for the national welfare that had been
entrusted to their care.
Above all, Pöhner was one of those people who, in contradistinction to
the majority of our so-called defenders of the authority of the State,
did
not fear to incur the enmity of the traitors to the country and the
nation
but rather courted it as a mark of honour and honesty. For such
men the
hatred of the Jews and Marxists and the lies and calumnies they
spread, were
their only source of happiness in the midst of the national
misery. Pöhner
was a man of granite loyalty. He was like one of the
ascetic characters of
the classical era and was at the same time that
kind of straightforward
German for whom the saying 'Better dead than a
slave' is not an empty phrase
but a veritable heart's cry.
In my opinion he and his collaborator, Dr.
Frick, are the only men
holding positions then in Bavaria who have the right
to be considered as
having taken active part in the creation of a national
Bavaria.
Before holding our first great mass meeting it was necessary not
only to
have our propaganda material ready but also to have the main items of
our programme printed.
In the second volume of this book I shall give a
detailed account of the
guiding principles which we then followed in drawing
up our programme.
Here I will only say that the programme was arranged not
merely to set
forth the form and content of the young movement but also with
an eye to
making it understood among the broad masses. The so-called
intellectual
circles made jokes and sneered at it and then tried to criticize
it. But
the effect of our programme proved that the ideas which we then held
were right.
During those years I saw dozens of new movements arise and
disappear
without leaving a trace behind. Only one movement has survived. It
is
the National Socialist German Labour Party. To-day I am more convinced
than ever before that, though they may combat us and try to paralyse our
movement, and though pettifogging party ministers may forbid us the
right of
free speech, they cannot prevent the triumph of our ideas. When
the present
system of statal administration and even the names of the
political parties
that represent it will be forgotten, the programmatic
basis of the National
Socialist movement will supply the groundwork on
which the future State will
be built.
The meetings which we held before January 1920 had enabled us
to collect
the financial means that were necessary to have our first
pamphlets and
posters and programmes printed.
I shall bring the first
part of this book to a close by referring to our
first great mass meeting,
because that meeting marked the occasion on
which our framework as a small
party had to be broken up and we started
to become the most powerful factor
of this epoch in the influence we
exercised on public opinion. At that time
my chief anxiety was that we
might not fill the hall and that we might have
to face empty benches. I
myself was firmly convinced that if only the people
would come this day
would turn out a great success for the young movement.
That was my
feeling as I waited impatiently for the hour to come.
It
had been announced that the meeting would begin at 7.30. A
quarter-of-an-hour
before the opening time I walked through the chief
hall of the Hofbräuhaus on
the PLATZ in Munich and my heart was nearly
bursting with joy. The great
hall--for at that time it seemed very big
to me--was filled to overflowing.
Nearly 2,000 people were present. And,
above all, those people had come whom
we had always wished to reach.
More than half the audience consisted of
persons who seemed to be
communists or independents. Our first great
demonstration was destined,
in their view, to come to an abrupt end.
But things happened otherwise. When the first speaker had finished I got
up
to speak. After a few minutes I was met with a hailstorm of
interruptions and
violent encounters broke out in the body of the hall.
A handful of my loyal
war comrades and some other followers grappled
with the disturbers and
restored order in a little while. I was able to
continue my speech. After
half an hour the applause began to drown the
interruptions and the hootings.
Then interruptions gradually ceased and
applause took their place. When I
finally came to explain the
twenty-five points and laid them, point after
point, before the masses
gathered there and asked them to pass their own
judgment on each point,
one point after another was accepted with increasing
enthusiasm. When
the last point was reached I had before me a hall full of
people united
by a new conviction, a new faith and a new will.
Nearly
four hours had passed when the hall began to clear. As the masses
streamed
towards the exits, crammed shoulder to shoulder, shoving and
pushing, I knew
that a movement was now set afoot among the German
people which would never
pass into oblivion.
A fire was enkindled from whose glowing heat the
sword would be
fashioned which would restore freedom to the German Siegfried
and bring
back life to the German nation.
Beside the revival which I
then foresaw, I also felt that the Goddess of
Vengeance was now getting ready
to redress the treason of the 9th of
November, 1918. The hall was emptied.
The movement was on the march.
VOLUME II: THE NATIONAL
SOCIALIST MOVEMENT
CHAPTER I
WELTANSCHAUUNG
AND PARTY
On February 24th, 1920, the first great mass meeting under
the auspices
of the new movement took place. In the Banquet Hall of the
Hofbräuhaus
in Munich the twenty-five theses which constituted the programme
of our
new party were expounded to an audience of nearly two thousand people
and each thesis was enthusiastically received.
Thus we brought to the
knowledge of the public those first principles
and lines of action along
which the new struggle was to be conducted for
the abolition of a confused
mass of obsolete ideas and opinions which
had obscure and often pernicious
tendencies. A new force was to make its
appearance among the timid and
feckless bourgeoisie. This force was
destined to impede the triumphant
advance of the Marxists and bring the
Chariot of Fate to a standstill just as
it seemed about to reach its
goal.
It was evident that this new
movement could gain the public significance
and support which are necessary
pre-requisites in such a gigantic
struggle only if it succeeded from the very
outset in awakening a
sacrosanct conviction in the hearts of its followers,
that here it was
not a case of introducing a new electoral slogan into the
political
field but that an entirely new WELTANSCHAUUNG, which was of a
radical
significance, had to be promoted.
One must try to recall the
miserable jumble of opinions that used to be
arrayed side by side to form the
usual Party Programme, as it was
called, and one must remember how these
opinions used to be brushed up
or dressed in a new form from time to time. If
we would properly
understand these programmatic monstrosities we must
carefully
investigate the motives which inspired the average bourgeois
'programme
committee'.
Those people are always influenced by one and
the same preoccupation
when they introduce something new into their programme
or modify
something already contained in it. That preoccupation is directed
towards the results of the next election. The moment these artists in
parliamentary government have the first glimmering of a suspicion that
their
darling public may be ready to kick up its heels and escape from
the harness
of the old party wagon they begin to paint the shafts with
new colours. On
such occasions the party astrologists and horoscope
readers, the so-called
'experienced men' and 'experts', come forward.
For the most part they are old
parliamentary hands whose political
schooling has furnished them with ample
experience. They can remember
former occasions when the masses showed signs
of losing patience and
they now diagnose the menace of a similar situation
arising. Resorting
to their old prescription, they form a 'committee'. They
go around among
the darling public and listen to what is being said. They dip
their
noses into the newspapers and gradually begin to scent what it is that
their darlings, the broad masses, are wishing for, what they reject and
what
they are hoping for. The groups that belong to each trade or
business, and
even office employees, are carefully studied and their
innermost desires are
investigated. The 'malicious slogans' of the
opposition from which danger is
threatened are now suddenly looked upon
as worthy of reconsideration, and it
often happens that these slogans,
to the great astonishment of those who
originally coined and circulated
them, now appear to be quite harmless and
indeed are to be found among
the dogmas of the old parties.
So the
committees meet to revise the old programme and draw up a new
one.
For
these people change their convictions just as the soldier changes
his shirt
in war--when the old one is bug-eaten. In the new programme
everyone gets
everything he wants. The farmer is assured that the
interests of agriculture
will be safeguarded. The industrialist is
assured of protection for his
products. The consumer is assured that his
interests will be protected in the
market prices. Teachers are given
higher salaries and civil servants will
have better pensions. Widows and
orphans will receive generous assistance
from the State. Trade will be
promoted. The tariff will be lowered and even
the taxes, though they
cannot be entirely abolished, will be almost
abolished. It sometimes
happens that one section of the public is forgotten
or that one of the
demands mooted among the public has not reached the ears
of the party.
This is also hurriedly patched on to the whole, should there be
any
space available for it: until finally it is felt that there are good
grounds for hoping that the whole normal host of philistines, including
their
wives, will have their anxieties laid to rest and will beam with
satisfaction
once again. And so, internally armed with faith in the
goodness of God and
the impenetrable stupidity of the electorate, the
struggle for what is called
'the reconstruction of the REICH' can now
begin.
When the election day
is over and the parliamentarians have held their
last public meeting for the
next five years, when they can leave their
job of getting the populace to toe
the line and can now devote
themselves to higher and more pleasing
tasks--then the programme
committee is dissolved and the struggle for the
progressive
reorganization of public affairs becomes once again a business of
earning one's daily bread, which for the parliamentarians means merely
the
attendance that is required in order to be able to draw their daily
remunerations. Morning after morning the honourable deputy wends his way
to
the House, and though he may not enter the Chamber itself he gets at
least as
far as the front hall, where he will find the register on which
the names of
the deputies in attendance have to be inscribed. As a part
of his onerous
service to his constituents he enters his name, and in
return receives a
small indemnity as a well-earned reward for his
unceasing and exhausting
labours.
When four years have passed, or in the meantime if there should
be some
critical weeks during which the parliamentary corporations have to
face
the danger of being dissolved, these honourable gentlemen become
suddenly seized by an irresistible desire to act. Just as the grub-worm
cannot help growing into a cock-chafer, these parliamentarian worms
leave the
great House of Puppets and flutter on new wings out among the
beloved public.
They address the electors once again, give an account of
the enormous labours
they have accomplished and emphasize the malicious
obstinacy of their
opponents. They do not always meet with grateful
applause; for occasionally
the unintelligent masses throw rude and
unfriendly remarks in their faces.
When this spirit of public
ingratitude reaches a certain pitch there is only
one way of saving the
situation. The prestige of the party must be burnished
up again. The
programme has to be amended. The committee is called into
existence once
again. And the swindle begins anew. Once we understand the
impenetrable
stupidity of our public we cannot be surprised that such tactics
turn
out successful. Led by the Press and blinded once again by the alluring
appearance of the new programme, the bourgeois as well as the
proletarian
herds of voters faithfully return to the common stall and
re-elect their old
deceivers. The 'people's man' and labour candidate
now change back again into
the parliamentarian grub and become fat and
rotund as they batten on the
leaves that grow on the tree of public
life--to be retransformed into the
glittering butterfly after another
four years have passed.
Scarcely
anything else can be so depressing as to watch this process in
sober reality
and to be the eyewitness of this repeatedly recurring
fraud. On a spiritual
training ground of that kind it is not possible
for the bourgeois forces to
develop the strength which is necessary to
carry on the fight against the
organized might of Marxism. Indeed they
have never seriously thought of doing
so. Though these parliamentary
quacks who represent the white race are
generally recognized as persons
of quite inferior mental capacity, they are
shrewd enough to know that
they could not seriously entertain the hope of
being able to use the
weapon of Western Democracy to fight a doctrine for the
advance of which
Western Democracy, with all its accessories, is employed as
a means to
an end. Democracy is exploited by the Marxists for the purpose of
paralysing their opponents and gaining for themselves a free hand to put
their own methods into action. When certain groups of Marxists use all
their
ingenuity for the time being to make it be believed that they are
inseparably
attached to the principles of democracy, it may be well to
recall the fact
that when critical occasions arose these same gentlemen
snapped their fingers
at the principle of decision by majority vote, as
that principle is
understood by Western Democracy. Such was the case in
those days when the
bourgeois parliamentarians, in their monumental
shortsightedness, believed
that the security of the REICH was guaranteed
because it had an overwhelming
numerical majority in its favour, and the
Marxists did not hesitate suddenly
to grasp supreme power in their own
hands, backed by a mob of loafers,
deserters, political place-hunters
and Jewish dilettanti. That was a blow in
the face for that democracy in
which so many parliamentarians believed. Only
those credulous
parliamentary wizards who represented bourgeois democracy
could have
believed that the brutal determination of those whose interest it
is to
spread the Marxist world-pest, of which they are the carriers, could
for
a moment, now or in the future, be held in check by the magical formulas
of Western Parliamentarianism. Marxism will march shoulder to shoulder
with
democracy until it succeeds indirectly in securing for its own
criminal
purposes even the support of those whose minds are nationally
orientated and
whom Marxism strives to exterminate. But if the Marxists
should one day come
to believe that there was a danger that from this
witch's cauldron of our
parliamentary democracy a majority vote might be
concocted, which by reason
of its numerical majority would be empowered
to enact legislation and might
use that power seriously to combat
Marxism, then the whole parliamentarian
hocus-pocus would be at an end.
Instead of appealing to the democratic
conscience, the standard bearers
of the Red International would immediately
send forth a furious
rallying-cry among the proletarian masses and the
ensuing fight would
not take place in the sedate atmosphere of Parliament but
in the
factories and the streets. Then democracy would be annihilated
forthwith. And what the intellectual prowess of the apostles who
represented
the people in Parliament had failed to accomplish would now
be successfully
carried out by the crow-bar and the sledge-hammer of the
exasperated
proletarian masses--just as in the autumn of 1918. At a blow
they would
awaken the bourgeois world to see the madness of thinking
that the Jewish
drive towards world-conquest can be effectually opposed
by means of Western
Democracy.
As I have said, only a very credulous soul could think of
binding
himself to observe the rules of the game when he has to face a player
for whom those rules are nothing but a mere bluff or a means of serving
his
own interests, which means he will discard them when they prove no
longer
useful for his purpose.
All the parties that profess so-called bourgeois
principles look upon
political life as in reality a struggle for seats in
Parliament. The
moment their principles and convictions are of no further use
in that
struggle they are thrown overboard, as if they were sand ballast. And
the programmes are constructed in such a way that they can be dealt with
in
like manner. But such practice has a correspondingly weakening effect
on the
strength of those parties. They lack the great magnetic force
which alone
attracts the broad masses; for these masses always respond
to the compelling
force which emanates from absolute faith in the ideas
put forward, combined
with an indomitable zest to fight for and defend
them.
At a time in
which the one side, armed with all the fighting power that
springs from a
systematic conception of life--even though it be criminal
in a thousand
ways--makes an attack against the established order the
other side will be
able to resist when it draws its strength from a new
faith, which in our case
is a political faith. This faith must supersede
the weak and cowardly command
to defend. In its stead we must raise the
battle-cry of a courageous and
ruthless attack. Our present movement is
accused, especially by the so-called
national bourgeois cabinet
ministers--the Bavarian representatives of the
Centre, for example--of
heading towards a revolution. We have one answer to
give to those
political pigmies. We say to them: We are trying to make up for
that
which you, in your criminal stupidity, have failed to carry out. By your
parliamentarian jobbing you have helped to drag the nation into ruin.
But we,
by our aggressive policy, are setting up a new WELTANSCHAUUNG
which we shall
defend with indomitable devotion. Thus we are building
the steps on which our
nation once again may ascend to the temple of
freedom.
And so during
the first stages of founding our movement we had to take
special care that
our militant group which fought for the establishment
of a new and exalted
political faith should not degenerate into a
society for the promotion of
parliamentarian interests.
The first preventive measure was to lay down a
programme which of itself
would tend towards developing a certain moral
greatness that would scare
away all the petty and weakling spirits who make
up the bulk of our
present party politicians.
Those fatal defects
which finally led to Germany's downfall afford the
clearest proof of how
right we were in considering it absolutely
necessary to set up programmatic
aims which were sharply and distinctly
defined.
Because we recognized
the defects above mentioned, we realized that a
new conception of the State
had to be formed, which in itself became a
part of our new conception of life
in general.
In the first volume of this book I have already dealt with
the term
VÖLKISCH, and I said then that this term has not a sufficiently
precise
meaning to furnish the kernel around which a closely consolidated
militant community could be formed. All kinds of people, with all kinds
of
divergent opinions, are parading about at the present moment under
the device
VÖLKISCH on their banners. Before I come to deal with the
purposes and aims
of the National Socialist Labour Party I want to
establish a clear
understanding of what is meant by the concept VÖLKISCH
and herewith explain
its relation to our party movement. The word
VÖLKISCH does not express any
clearly specified idea. It may be
interpreted in several ways and in
practical application it is just as
general as the word 'religious', for
instance. It is difficult to attach
any precise meaning to this latter word,
either as a theoretical concept
or as a guiding principle in practical life.
The word 'religious'
acquires a precise meaning only when it is associated
with a distinct
and definite form through which the concept is put into
practice. To say
that a person is 'deeply religious' may be very fine
phraseology; but,
generally speaking, it tells us little or nothing. There
may be some few
people who are content with such a vague description and
there may even
be some to whom the word conveys a more or less definite
picture of the
inner quality of a person thus described. But, since the
masses of the
people are not composed of philosophers or saints, such a vague
religious idea will mean for them nothing else than to justify each
individual in thinking and acting according to his own bent. It will not
lead
to that practical faith into which the inner religious yearning is
transformed only when it leaves the sphere of general metaphysical ideas
and
is moulded to a definite dogmatic belief. Such a belief is certainly
not an
end in itself, but the means to an end. Yet it is a means without
which the
end could never be reached at all. This end, however, is not
merely something
ideal; for at the bottom it is eminently practical. We
must always bear in
mind the fact that, generally speaking, the highest
ideals are always the
outcome of some profound vital need, just as the
most sublime beauty owes its
nobility of shape, in the last analysis, to
the fact that the most beautiful
form is the form that is best suited to
the purpose it is meant to serve.
By helping to lift the human being above the level of mere animal
existence, Faith really contributes to consolidate and safeguard its own
existence. Taking humanity as it exists to-day and taking into
consideration
the fact that the religious beliefs which it generally
holds and which have
been consolidated through our education, so that
they serve as moral
standards in practical life, if we should now
abolish religious teaching and
not replace it by anything of equal value
the result would be that the
foundations of human existence would be
seriously shaken. We may safely say
that man does not live merely to
serve higher ideals, but that these ideals,
in their turn, furnish the
necessary conditions of his existence as a human
being. And thus the
circle is closed.
Of course, the word 'religious'
implies some ideas and beliefs that are
fundamental. Among these we may
reckon the belief in the immortality of
the soul, its future existence in
eternity, the belief in the existence
of a Higher Being, and so on. But all
these ideas, no matter how firmly
the individual believes in them, may be
critically analysed by any
person and accepted or rejected accordingly, until
the emotional concept
or yearning has been transformed into an active service
that is governed
by a clearly defined doctrinal faith. Such a faith furnishes
the
practical outlet for religious feeling to express itself and thus opens
the way through which it can be put into practice.
Without a clearly
defined belief, the religious feeling would not only
be worthless for the
purposes of human existence but even might
contribute towards a general
disorganization, on account of its vague
and multifarious tendencies.
What I have said about the word 'religious' can also be applied to the
term
VÖLKISCH. This word also implies certain fundamental ideas. Though
these
ideas are very important indeed, they assume such vague and
indefinite forms
that they cannot be estimated as having a greater value
than mere opinions,
until they become constituent elements in the
structure of a political party.
For in order to give practical force to
the ideals that grow out of a
WELTANSCHAUUNG and to answer the demands
which are a logical consequence of
such ideals, mere sentiment and inner
longing are of no practical assistance,
just as freedom cannot be won by
a universal yearning for it. No. Only when
the idealistic longing for
independence is organized in such a way that it
can fight for its ideal
with military force, only then can the urgent wish of
a people be
transformed into a potent reality.
Any WELTANSCHAUUNG,
though a thousandfold right and supremely
beneficial to humanity, will be of
no practical service for the
maintenance of a people as long as its
principles have not yet become
the rallying point of a militant movement.
And, on its own side, this
movement will remain a mere party until is has
brought its ideals to
victory and transformed its party doctrines into the
new foundations of
a State which gives the national community its final
shape.
If an abstract conception of a general nature is to serve as the
basis
of a future development, then the first prerequisite is to form a clear
understanding of the nature and character and scope of this conception.
For
only on such a basis can a movement he founded which will be able to
draw the
necessary fighting strength from the internal cohesion of its
principles and
convictions. From general ideas a political programme
must be constructed and
a general WELTANSCHAUUNG must receive the stamp
of a definite political
faith. Since this faith must be directed towards
ends that have to be
attained in the world of practical reality, not
only must it serve the
general ideal as such but it must also take into
consideration the means that
have to be employed for the triumph of the
ideal. Here the practical wisdom
of the statesman must come to the
assistance of the abstract idea, which is
correct in itself. In that way
an eternal ideal, which has everlasting
significance as a guiding star
to mankind, must be adapted to the exigencies
of human frailty so that
its practical effect may not be frustrated at the
very outset through
those shortcomings which are general to mankind. The
exponent of truth
must here go hand in hand with him who has a practical
knowledge of the
soul of the people, so that from the realm of eternal
verities and
ideals what is suited to the capacities of human nature may be
selected
and given practical form. To take abstract and general principles,
derived from a WELTANSCHAUUNG which is based on a solid foundation of
truth,
and transform them into a militant community whose members have
the same
political faith--a community which is precisely defined,
rigidly organized,
of one mind and one will--such a transformation is
the most important task of
all; for the possibility of successfully
carrying out the idea is dependent
on the successful fulfilment of that
task. Out of the army of millions who
feel the truth of these ideas, and
even may understand them to some extent,
one man must arise. This man
must have the gift of being able to expound
general ideas in a clear and
definite form, and, from the world of vague
ideas shimmering before the
minds of the masses, he must formulate principles
that will be as
clear-cut and firm as granite. He must fight for these
principles as the
only true ones, until a solid rock of common faith and
common will
emerges above the troubled waves of vagrant ideas. The general
justification of such action is to be sought in the necessity for it and
the
individual will be justified by his success.
If we try to penetrate to
the inner meaning of the word VÖLKISCH we
arrive at the following
conclusions:
The current political conception of the world is that the
State, though
it possesses a creative force which can build up civilizations,
has
nothing in common with the concept of race as the foundation of the
State. The State is considered rather as something which has resulted
from
economic necessity, or, at best, the natural outcome of the play of
political
forces and impulses. Such a conception of the foundations of
the State,
together with all its logical consequences, not only ignores
the primordial
racial forces that underlie the State, but it also leads
to a policy in which
the importance of the individual is minimized. If
it be denied that races
differ from one another in their powers of
cultural creativeness, then this
same erroneous notion must necessarily
influence our estimation of the value
of the individual. The assumption
that all races are alike leads to the
assumption that nations and
individuals are equal to one another. And
international Marxism is
nothing but the application--effected by the Jew,
Karl Marx--of a
general conception of life to a definite profession of
political faith;
but in reality that general concept had existed long before
the time of
Karl Marx. If it had not already existed as a widely diffused
infection
the amazing political progress of the Marxist teaching would never
have
been possible. In reality what distinguished Karl Marx from the millions
who were affected in the same way was that, in a world already in a
state of
gradual decomposition, he used his keen powers of prognosis to
detect the
essential poisons, so as to extract them and concentrate
them, with the art
of a necromancer, in a solution which would bring
about the rapid destruction
of the independent nations on the globe. But
all this was done in the service
of his race.
Thus the Marxist doctrine is the concentrated extract of the
mentality
which underlies the general concept of life to-day. For this reason
alone it is out of the question and even ridiculous to think that what
is
called our bourgeois world can put up any effective fight against
Marxism.
For this bourgeois world is permeated with all those same
poisons and its
conception of life in general differs from Marxism only
in degree and in the
character of the persons who hold it. The bourgeois
world is Marxist but
believes in the possibility of a certain group of
people--that is to say, the
bourgeoisie--being able to dominate the
world, while Marxism itself
systematically aims at delivering the world
into the hands of the Jews.
Over against all this, the VÖLKISCH concept of the world recognizes that
the primordial racial elements are of the greatest significance for
mankind.
In principle, the State is looked upon only as a means to an
end and this end
is the conservation of the racial characteristics of
mankind. Therefore on
the VÖLKISCH principle we cannot admit that one
race is equal to another. By
recognizing that they are different, the
VÖLKISCH concept separates mankind
into races of superior and inferior
quality. On the basis of this recognition
it feels bound in conformity
with the eternal Will that dominates the
universe, to postulate the
victory of the better and stronger and the
subordination of the inferior
and weaker. And so it pays homage to the truth
that the principle
underlying all Nature's operations is the aristocratic
principle and it
believes that this law holds good even down to the last
individual
organism. It selects individual values from the mass and thus
operates
as an organizing principle, whereas Marxism acts as a disintegrating
solvent. The VÖLKISCH belief holds that humanity must have its ideals,
because ideals are a necessary condition of human existence itself. But,
on
the other hand, it denies that an ethical ideal has the right to
prevail if
it endangers the existence of a race that is the
standard-bearer of a higher
ethical ideal. For in a world which would be
composed of mongrels and
negroids all ideals of human beauty and
nobility and all hopes of an
idealized future for our humanity would be
lost forever.
On this
planet of ours human culture and civilization are indissolubly
bound up with
the presence of the Aryan. If he should be exterminated or
subjugated, then
the dark shroud of a new barbarian era would enfold the
earth.
To
undermine the existence of human culture by exterminating its
founders and
custodians would be an execrable crime in the eyes of those
who believe that
the folk-idea lies at the basis of human existence.
Whoever would dare to
raise a profane hand against that highest image of
God among His creatures
would sin against the bountiful Creator of this
marvel and would collaborate
in the expulsion from Paradise.
Hence the folk concept of the world is in
profound accord with Nature's
will; because it restores the free play of the
forces which will lead
the race through stages of sustained reciprocal
education towards a
higher type, until finally the best portion of mankind
will possess the
earth and will be free to work in every domain all over the
world and
even reach spheres that lie outside the earth.
We all feel
that in the distant future many may be faced with problems
which can be
solved only by a superior race of human beings, a race
destined to become
master of all the other peoples and which will have
at its disposal the means
and resources of the whole world.
It is evident that such a general
sketch of the ideas implied in the
folk concept of the world may easily be
interpreted in a thousand
different ways. As a matter of fact there is
scarcely one of our recent
political movements that does not refer at some
point to this conception
of the world. But the fact that this conception of
the world still
maintains its independent existence in face of all the others
proves
that their ways of looking at life are quite difierent from this. Thus
the Marxist conception, directed by a central organization endowed with
supreme authority, is opposed by a motley crew of opinions which is not
very
impressive in face of the solid phalanx presented by the enemy.
Victory
cannot be achieved with such weak weapons. Only when the
international idea,
politically organized by Marxism, is confronted by
the folk idea, equally
well organized in a systematic way and equally
well led--only then will the
fighting energy in the one camp be able to
meet that of the other on an equal
footing; and victory will be found on
the side of eternal truth.
But a
general conception of life can never be given an organic
embodiment until it
is precisely and definitely formulated. The function
which dogma fulfils in
religious belief is parallel to the function
which party principles fulfil
for a political party which is in the
process of being built up. Therefore,
for the conception of life that is
based on the folk idea it is necessary
that an instrument be forged
which can be used in fighting for this ideal,
similar to the Marxist
party organization which clears the way for
internationalism.
And this is the aim which the German National Socialist
Labour Movement
pursues.
The folk conception must therefore be
definitely formulated so that it
may be organically incorporated in the
party. That is a necessary
prerequisite for the success of this idea. And
that it is so is very
clearly proved even by the indirect acknowledgment of
those who oppose
such an amalgamation of the folk idea with party principles.
The very
people who never tire of insisting again and again that the
conception
of life based on the folk idea can never be the exclusive property
of a
single group, because it lies dormant or 'lives' in myriads of hearts,
only confirm by their own statements the simple fact that the general
presence of such ideas in the hearts of millions of men has not proved
sufficient to impede the victory of the opposing ideas, which are
championed
by a political party organized on the principle of class
conflict. If that
were not so, the German people ought already to have
gained a gigantic
victory instead of finding themselves on the brink of
the abyss. The
international ideology achieved success because it was
organized in a
militant political party which was always ready to take
the offensive. If
hitherto the ideas opposed to the international
concept have had to give way
before the latter the reason is that they
lacked a united front to fight for
their cause. A doctrine which forms a
definite outlook on life cannot
struggle and triumph by allowing the
right of free interpretation of its
general teaching, but only by
defining that teaching in certain articles of
faith that have to be
accepted and incorporating it in a political
organization.
Therefore I considered it my special duty to extract from
the extensive
but vague contents of a general WELTANSCHAUUNG the ideas which
were
essential and give them a more or less dogmatic form. Because of their
precise and clear meaning, these ideas are suited to the purpose of
uniting
in a common front all those who are ready to accept them as
principles. In
other words: The German National Socialist Labour Party
extracts the
essential principles from the general conception of the
world which is based
on the folk idea. On these principles it
establishes a political doctrine
which takes into account the practical
realities of the day, the nature of
the times, the available human
material and all its deficiencies. Through
this political doctrine it is
possible to bring great masses of the people
into an organization which
is constructed as rigidly as it could be. Such an
organization is the
main preliminary that is necessary for the final triumph
of this ideal.
CHAPTER II
THE STATE
Already in 1920-1921 certain circles belonging to the effete bourgeois
class accused our movement again and again of taking up a negative
attitude
towards the modern State. For that reason the motley gang of
camp followers
attached to the various political parties, representing a
heterogeneous
conglomeration of political views, assumed the right of
utilizing all
available means to suppress the protagonists of this young
movement which was
preaching a new political gospel. Our opponents
deliberately ignored the fact
that the bourgeois class itself stood for
no uniform opinion as to what the
State really meant and that the
bourgeoisie did not and could not give any
coherent definition of this
institution. Those whose duty it is to explain
what is meant when we
speak of the State, hold chairs in State universities,
often in the
department of constitutional law, and consider it their highest
duty to
find explanations and justifications for the more or less fortunate
existence of that particular form of State which provides them with
their
daily bread. The more absurd such a form of State is the more
obscure and
artificial and incomprehensible are the definitions which
are advanced to
explain the purpose of its existence. What, for
instance, could a royal and
imperial university professor write about
the meaning and purpose of a State
in a country whose statal form
represented the greatest monstrosity of the
twentieth century? That
would be a difficult undertaking indeed, in view of
the fact that the
contemporary professor of constitutional law is obliged not
so much to
serve the cause of truth but rather to serve a certain definite
purpose.
And this purpose is to defend at all costs the existence of that
monstrous human mechanism which we now call the State. Nobody can be
surprised if concrete facts are evaded as far as possible when the
problem of
the State is under discussion and if professors adopt the
tactics of
concealing themselves in morass of abstract values and duties
and purposes
which are described as 'ethical' and 'moral'.
Generally speaking, these
various theorists may be classed in three
groups:
1. Those who hold
that the State is a more or less voluntary association
of men who have agreed
to set up and obey a ruling authority.
This is numerically the largest
group. In its ranks are to be found
those who worship our present principle
of legalized authority. In their
eyes the will of the people has no part
whatever in the whole affair.
For them the fact that the State exists is
sufficient reason to consider
it sacred and inviolable. To accept this
aberration of the human brain
one would have to have a sort of canine
adoration for what is called the
authority of the State. In the minds of
these people the means is
substituted for the end, by a sort of
sleight-of-hand movement. The
State no longer exists for the purpose of
serving men but men exist for
the purpose of adoring the authority of the
State, which is vested in
its functionaries, even down to the smallest
official. So as to prevent
this placid and ecstatic adoration from changing
into something that
might become in any way disturbing, the authority of the
State is
limited simply to the task of preserving order and tranquillity.
Therewith it is no longer either a means or an end. The State must see
that
public peace and order are preserved and, in their turn, order and
peace must
make the existence of the State possible. All life must move
between these
two poles. In Bavaria this view is upheld by the artful
politicians of the
Bavarian Centre, which is called the 'Bavarian
Populist Party'. In Austria
the Black-and-Yellow legitimists adopt a
similar attitude. In the REICH,
unfortunately, the so-called
conservative elements follow the same line of
thought.
2. The second group is somewhat smaller in numbers. It includes
those
who would make the existence of the State dependent on some conditions
at least. They insist that not only should there be a uniform system of
government but also, if possible, that only one language should be used,
though solely for technical reasons of administration. In this view the
authority of the State is no longer the sole and exclusive end for which
the
State exists. It must also promote the good of its subjects. Ideas
of
'freedom', mostly based on a misunderstanding of the meaning of that
word,
enter into the concept of the State as it exists in the minds of
this group.
The form of government is no longer considered inviolable
simply because it
exists. It must submit to the test of practical
efficiency. Its venerable age
no longer protects it from being
criticized in the light of modern
exigencies. Moreover, in this view the
first duty laid upon the State is to
guarantee the economic well-being
of the individual citizens. Hence it is
judged from the practical
standpoint and according to general principles
based on the idea of
economic returns. The chief representatives of this
theory of the State
are to be found among the average German bourgeoisie,
especially our
liberal democrats.
3. The third group is numerically
the smallest. In the State they
discover a means for the realization of
tendencies that arise from a
policy of power, on the part of a people who are
ethnically homogeneous
and speak the same language. But those who hold this
view are not clear
about what they mean by 'tendencies arising from a policy
of power'. A
common language is postulated not only because they hope that
thereby
the State would be furnished with a solid basis for the extension of
its
power outside its own frontiers, but also because they think--though
falling into a fundamental error by doing so--that such a common
language
would enable them to carry out a process of nationalization in
a definite
direction.
During the last century it was lamentable for those who had to
witness
it, to notice how in these circles I have just mentioned the word
'Germanization' was frivolously played with, though the practice was
often
well intended. I well remember how in the days of my youth this
very term
used to give rise to notions which were false to an incredible
degree. Even
in Pan-German circles one heard the opinion expressed that
the Austrian
Germans might very well succeed in Germanizing the Austrian
Slavs, if only
the Government would be ready to co-operate. Those people
did not understand
that a policy of Germanization can be carried out
only as regards human
beings. What they mostly meant by Germanization
was a process of forcing
other people to speak the German language. But
it is almost inconceivable how
such a mistake could be made as to think
that a Nigger or a Chinaman will
become a German because he has learned
the German language and is willing to
speak German for the future, and
even to cast his vote for a German political
party. Our bourgeois
nationalists could never clearly see that such a process
of
Germanization is in reality de-Germanization; for even if all the
outstanding and visible differences between the various peoples could be
bridged over and finally wiped out by the use of a common language, that
would produce a process of bastardization which in this case would not
signify Germanization but the annihilation of the German element. In the
course of history it has happened only too often that a conquering race
succeeded by external force in compelling the people whom they subjected
to
speak the tongue of the conqueror and that after a thousand years
their
language was spoken by another people and that thus the conqueror
finally
turned out to be the conquered.
What makes a people or, to be more
correct, a race, is not language but
blood. Therefore it would be justifiable
to speak of Germanization only
if that process could change the blood of the
people who would be
subjected to it, which is obviously impossible. A change
would be
possible only by a mixture of blood, but in this case the quality of
the
superior race would be debased. The final result of such a mixture would
be that precisely those qualities would be destroyed which had enabled
the
conquering race to achieve victory over an inferior people. It is
especially
the cultural creativeness which disappears when a superior
race intermixes
with an inferior one, even though the resultant mongrel
race should excel a
thousandfold in speaking the language of the race
that once had been
superior. For a certain time there will be a conflict
between the different
mentalities, and it may be that a nation which is
in a state of progressive
degeneration will at the last moment rally its
cultural creative power and
once again produce striking examples of that
power. But these results are due
only to the activity of elements that
have remained over from the superior
race or hybrids of the first
crossing in whom the superior blood has remained
dominant and seeks to
assert itself. But this will never happen with the
final descendants of
such hybrids. These are always in a state of cultural
retrogression.
We must consider it as fortunate that a Germanization of
Austria
according to the plan of Joseph II did not succeed. Probably the
result
would have been that the Austrian State would have been able to
survive,
but at the same time participation in the use of a common language
would
have debased the racial quality of the German element. In the course of
centuries a certain herd instinct might have been developed but the herd
itself would have deteriorated in quality. A national State might have
arisen, but a people who had been culturally creative would have
disappeared.
For the German nation it was better that this process of intermixture
did
not take place, although it was not renounced for any high-minded
reasons but
simply through the short-sighted pettiness of the Habsburgs.
If it had taken
place the German people could not now be looked upon as
a cultural factor.
Not only in Austria, however, but also in the REICH, these so-called
national circles were, and still are, under the influence of similar
erroneous ideas. Unfortunately, a policy towards Poland, whereby the
East was
to be Germanized, was demanded by many and was based on the
same false
reasoning. Here again it was believed that the Polish people
could be
Germanized by being compelled to use the German language. The
result would
have been fatal. A people of foreign race would have had to
use the German
language to express modes of thought that were foreign to
the German, thus
compromising by its own inferiority the dignity and
nobility of our nation.
It is revolting to think how much damage is indirectly done to German
prestige to-day through the fact that the German patois of the Jews when
they
enter the United States enables them to be classed as Germans,
because many
Americans are quite ignorant of German conditions. Among
us, nobody would
think of taking these unhygienic immigrants from the
East for members of the
German race and nation merely because they
mostly speak German.
What
has been beneficially Germanized in the course of history was the
land which
our ancestors conquered with the sword and colonized with
German tillers of
the soil. To the extent that they introduced foreign
blood into our national
body in this colonization, they have helped to
disintegrate our racial
character, a process which has resulted in our
German hyper-individualism,
though this latter characteristic is even
now frequently praised.
In
this third group also there are people who, to a certain degree,
consider the
State as an end in itself. Hence they consider its
preservation as one of the
highest aims of human existence. Our analysis
may be summed up as follows:
All these opinions have this common feature and failing: that they are
not grounded in a recognition of the profound truth that the capacity
for
creating cultural values is essentially based on the racial element
and that,
in accordance with this fact, the paramount purpose of the
State is to
preserve and improve the race; for this is an indispensable
condition of all
progress in human civilization.
Thus the Jew, Karl Marx, was able to draw
the final conclusions from
these false concepts and ideas on the nature and
purpose of the State.
By eliminating from the concept of the State all
thought of the
obligation which the State bears towards the race, without
finding any
other formula that might be universally accepted, the bourgeois
teaching
prepared the way for that doctrine which rejects the State as such.
That is why the bourgeois struggle against Marxist internationalism is
absolutely doomed to fail in this field. The bourgeois classes have
already
sacrificed the basic principles which alone could furnish a
solid footing for
their ideas. Their crafty opponent has perceived the
defects in their
structure and advances to the assault on it with those
weapons which they
themselves have placed in his hands though not
meaning to do so.
Therefore any new movement which is based on the racial concept of the
world
will first of all have to put forward a clear and logical doctrine
of the
nature and purpose of the State.
The fundamental principle is that the
State is not an end in itself but
the means to an end. It is the preliminary
condition under which alone a
higher form of human civilization can be
developed, but it is not the
source of such a development. This is to be
sought exclusively in the
actual existence of a race which is endowed with
the gift of cultural
creativeness. There may be hundreds of excellent States
on this earth,
and yet if the Aryan, who is the creator and custodian of
civilization,
should disappear, all culture that is on an adequate level with
the
spiritual needs of the superior nations to-day would also disappear. We
may go still further and say that the fact that States have been created
by
human beings does not in the least exclude the possiblity that the
human race
may become extinct, because the superior intellectual
faculties and powers of
adaptation would be lost when the racial bearer
of these faculties and powers
disappeared.
If, for instance, the surface of the globe should be shaken
to-day by
some seismic convulsion and if a new Himalaya would emerge from the
waves of the sea, this one catastrophe alone might annihilate human
civilization. No State could exist any longer. All order would be
shattered.
And all vestiges of cultural products which had been evolved
through
thousands of years would disappear. Nothing would be left but
one tremendous
field of death and destruction submerged in floods of
water and mud. If,
however, just a few people would survive this
terrible havoc, and if these
people belonged to a definite race that had
the innate powers to build up a
civilization, when the commotion had
passed, the earth would again bear
witness to the creative power of the
human spirit, even though a span of a
thousand years might intervene.
Only with the extermination of the last race
that possesses the gift of
cultural creativeness, and indeed only if all the
individuals of that
race had disappeared, would the earth definitely be
turned into a
desert. On the other hand, modern history furnishes examples to
show
that statal institutions which owe their beginnings to members of a race
which lacks creative genius are not made of stuff that will endure. Just
as
many varieties of prehistoric animals had to give way to others and
leave no
trace behind them, so man will also have to give way, if he
loses that
definite faculty which enables him to find the weapons that
are necessary for
him to maintain his own existence.
It is not the State as such that
brings about a certain definite advance
in cultural progress. The State can
only protect the race that is the
cause of such progress. The State as such
may well exist without
undergoing any change for hundreds of years, though
the cultural
faculties and the general life of the people, which is shaped by
these
faculties, may have suffered profound changes by reason of the fact
that
the State did not prevent a process of racial mixture from taking place.
The present State, for instance, may continue to exist in a mere
mechanical
form, but the poison of miscegenation permeating the national
body brings
about a cultural decadence which manifests itself already in
various symptoms
that are of a detrimental character.
Thus the indispensable prerequisite
for the existence of a superior
quality of human beings is not the State but
the race, which is alone
capable of producing that higher human quality.
This capacity is always there, though it will lie dormant unless
external
circumstances awaken it to action. Nations, or rather races,
which are
endowed with the faculty of cultural creativeness possess this
faculty in a
latent form during periods when the external circumstances
are unfavourable
for the time being and therefore do not allow the
faculty to express itself
effectively. It is therefore outrageously
unjust to speak of the
pre-Christian Germans as barbarians who had no
civilization. They never have
been such. But the severity of the climate
that prevailed in the northern
regions which they inhabited imposed
conditions of life which hampered a free
development of their creative
faculties. If they had come to the fairer
climate of the South, with no
previous culture whatsoever, and if they
acquired the necessary human
material--that is to say, men of an inferior
race--to serve them as
working implements, the cultural faculty dormant in
them would have
splendidly blossomed forth, as happened in the case of the
Greeks, for
example. But this primordial creative faculty in cultural things
was not
solely due to their northern climate. For the Laplanders or the
Eskimos
would not have become creators of a culture if they were transplanted
to
the South. No, this wonderful creative faculty is a special gift
bestowed on the Aryan, whether it lies dormant in him or becomes active,
according as the adverse conditions of nature prevent the active
expression
of that faculty or favourable circumstances permit it.
From these facts
the following conclusions may be drawn:
The State is only a means to an
end. Its end and its purpose is to
preserve and promote a community of human
beings who are physically as
well as spiritually kindred. Above all, it must
preserve the existence
of the race, thereby providing the indispensable
condition for the free
development of all the forces dormant in this race. A
great part of
these faculties will always have to be employed in the first
place to
maintain the physical existence of the race, and only a small
portion
will be free to work in the field of intellectual progress. But, as a
matter of fact, the one is always the necessary counterpart of the
other.
Those States which do not serve this purpose have no justification for
their existence. They are monstrosities. The fact that they do exist is
no
more of a justification than the successful raids carried out by a
band of
pirates can be considered a justification of piracy.
We National
Socialists, who are fighting for a new WELTANSCHAUUNG, must
never take our
stand on the famous 'basis of facts', and especially not
on mistaken facts.
If we did so, we should cease to be the protagonists
of a new and great idea
and would become slaves in the service of the
fallacy which is dominant
to-day. We must make a clear-cut distinction
between the vessel and its
contents. The State is only the vessel and
the race is what it contains. The
vessel can have a meaning only if it
preserves and safeguards the contents.
Otherwise it is worthless.
Hence the supreme purpose of the ethnical
State is to guard and preserve
those racial elements which, through their
work in the cultural field,
create that beauty and dignity which are
characteristic of a higher
mankind. As Aryans, we can consider the State only
as the living
organism of a people, an organism which does not merely
maintain the
existence of a people, but functions in such a way as to lead
its people
to a position of supreme liberty by the progressive development of
the
intellectual and cultural faculties.
What they want to impose upon
us as a State to-day is in most cases
nothing but a monstrosity, the product
of a profound human aberration
which brings untold suffering in its train.
We National Socialists know that in holding these views we take up a
revolutionary stand in the world of to-day and that we are branded as
revolutionaries. But our views and our conduct will not be determined by
the
approbation or disapprobation of our contemporaries, but only by our
duty to
follow a truth which we have acknowledged. In doing this we have
reason to
believe that posterity will have a clearer insight, and will
not only
understand the work we are doing to-day, but will also ratify
it as the right
work and will exalt it accordingly.
On these principles we National
Socialists base our standards of value
in appraising a State. This value will
be relative when viewed from the
particular standpoint of the individual
nation, but it will be absolute
when considered from the standpoint of
humanity as a whole. In other
words, this means:
That the excellence
of a State can never be judged by the level of its
culture or the degree of
importance which the outside world attaches to
its power, but that its
excellence must be judged by the degree to which
its institutions serve the
racial stock which belongs to it.
A State may be considered as a model
example if it adequately serves not
only the vital needs of the racial stock
it represents but if it
actually assures by its own existence the
preservation of this same
racial stock, no matter what general cultural
significance this statal
institution may have in the eyes of the rest of the
world. For it is not
the task of the State to create human capabilities, but
only to assure
free scope for the exercise of capabilities that already
exist. On the
other hand, a State may be called bad if, in spite of the
existence of a
high cultural level, it dooms to destruction the bearers of
that culture
by breaking up their racial uniformity. For the practical effect
of such
a policy would be to destroy those conditions that are indispensable
for
the ulterior existence of that culture, which the State did not create
but which is the fruit of the creative power inherent in the racial
stock
whose existence is assured by being united in the living organism
of the
State. Once again let me emphasize the fact that the State itself
is not the
substance but the form. Therefore, the cultural level is not
the standard by
which we can judge the value of the State in which that
people lives. It is
evident that a people which is endowed with high
creative powers in the
cultural sphere is of more worth than a tribe of
negroes. And yet the statal
organization of the former, if judged from
the standpoint of efficiency, may
be worse than that of the negroes. Not
even the best of States and statal
institutions can evolve faculties
from a people which they lack and which
they never possessed, but a bad
State may gradually destroy the faculties
which once existed. This it
can do by allowing or favouring the suppression
of those who are the
bearers of a racial culture.
Therefore, the worth
of a State can be determined only by asking how far
it actually succeeds in
promoting the well-being of a definite race and
not by the role which it
plays in the world at large. Its relative worth
can be estimated readily and
accurately; but it is difficult to judge
its absolute worth, because the
latter is conditioned not only by the
State but also by the quality and
cultural level of the people that
belong to the individual State in question.
Therefore, when we speak of the high mission of the State we must not
forget that the high mission belongs to the people and that the business
of
the State is to use its organizing powers for the purpose of
furnishing the
necessary conditions which allow this people freely to
unfold its creative
faculties. And if we ask what kind of statal
institution we Germans need, we
must first have a clear notion as to the
people which that State must embrace
and what purpose it must serve.
Unfortunately the German national being
is not based on a uniform racial
type. The process of welding the original
elements together has not gone
so far as to warrant us in saying that a new
race has emerged. On the
contrary, the poison which has invaded the national
body, especially
since the Thirty Years' War, has destroyed the uniform
constitution not
only of our blood but also of our national soul. The open
frontiers of
our native country, the association with non-German foreign
elements in
the territories that lie all along those frontiers, and
especially the
strong influx of foreign blood into the interior of the REICH
itself,
has prevented any complete assimilation of those various elements,
because the influx has continued steadily. Out of this melting-pot no
new
race arose. The heterogeneous elements continue to exist side by
side. And
the result is that, especially in times of crisis, when the
herd usually
flocks together, the Germans disperse in all directions.
The fundamental
racial elements are not only different in different
districts, but there are
also various elements in the single districts.
Beside the Nordic type we find
the East-European type, beside the
Eastern there is the Dinaric, the Western
type intermingling with both,
and hybrids among them all. That is a grave
drawback for us. Through it
the Germans lack that strong herd instinct which
arises from unity of
blood and saves nations from ruin in dangerous and
critical times;
because on such occasions small differences disappear, so
that a united
herd faces the enemy. What we understand by the word
hyper-individualism
arises from the fact that our primordial racial elements
have existed
side by side without ever consolidating. During times of peace
such a
situation may offer some advantages, but, taken all in all, it has
prevented us from gaining a mastery in the world. If in its historical
development the German people had possessed the unity of herd instinct
by
which other peoples have so much benefited, then the German REICH
would
probably be mistress of the globe to-day. World history would have
taken
another course and in this case no man can tell if what many
blinded
pacifists hope to attain by petitioning, whining and crying, may
not have
been reached in this way: namely, a peace which would not be
based upon the
waving of olive branches and tearful misery-mongering of
pacifist old women,
but a peace that would be guaranteed by the
triumphant sword of a people
endowed with the power to master the world
and administer it in the service
of a higher civilization.
The fact that our people did not have a
national being based on a unity
of blood has been the source of untold misery
for us. To many petty
German potentates it gave residential capital cities,
but the German
people as a whole was deprived of its right to rulership.
Even to-day our nation still suffers from this lack of inner unity; but
what has been the cause of our past and present misfortunes may turn out
a
blessing for us in the future. Though on the one hand it may be a
drawback
that our racial elements were not welded together, so that no
homogeneous
national body could develop, on the other hand, it was
fortunate that, since
at least a part of our best blood was thus kept
pure, its racial quality was
not debased.
A complete assimilation of all our racial elements would
certainly have
brought about a homogeneous national organism; but, as has
been proved
in the case of every racial mixture, it would have been less
capable of
creating a civilization than by keeping intact its best original
elements. A benefit which results from the fact that there was no
all-round
assimilation is to be seen in that even now we have large
groups of German
Nordic people within our national organization, and
that their blood has not
been mixed with the blood of other races. We
must look upon this as our most
valuable treasure for the sake of the
future. During that dark period of
absolute ignorance in regard to all
racial laws, when each individual was
considered to be on a par with
every other, there could be no clear
appreciation of the difference
between the various fundamental racial
characteristics. We know to-day
that a complete assimilation of all the
various elements which
constitute the national being might have resulted in
giving us a larger
share of external power: but, on the other hand, the
highest of human
aims would not have been attained, because the only kind of
people which
fate has obviously chosen to bring about this perfection would
have been
lost in such a general mixture of races which would constitute such
a
racial amalgamation.
But what has been prevented by a friendly
Destiny, without any
assistance on our part, must now be reconsidered and
utilized in the
light of our new knowledge.
He who talks of the German
people as having a mission to fulfil on this
earth must know that this cannot
be fulfilled except by the building up
of a State whose highest purpose is to
preserve and promote those nobler
elements of our race and of the whole of
mankind which have remained
unimpaired.
Thus for the first time a high
inner purpose is accredited to the State.
In face of the ridiculous phrase
that the State should do no more than
act as the guardian of public order and
tranquillity, so that everybody
can peacefully dupe everybody else, it is
given a very high mission
indeed to preserve and encourage the highest type
of humanity which a
beneficent Creator has bestowed on this earth. Out of a
dead mechanism
which claims to be an end in itself a living organism shall
arise which
has to serve one purpose exclusively: and that, indeed, a purpose
which
belongs to a higher order of ideas.
As a State the German REICH
shall include all Germans. Its task is not
only to gather in and foster the
most valuable sections of our people
but to lead them slowly and surely to a
dominant position in the world.
Thus a period of stagnation is superseded
by a period of effort. And
here, as in every other sphere, the proverb holds
good that to rest is
to rust; and furthermore the proverb that victory will
always be won by
him who attacks. The higher the final goal which we strive
to reach, and
the less it be understood at the time by the broad masses, the
more
magnificent will be its success. That is what the lesson of history
teaches. And the achievement will be all the more significant if the end
is
conceived in the right way and the fight carried through with
unswerving
persistence. Many of the officials who direct the affairs of
State nowadays
may find it easier to work for the maintenance of the
present order than to
fight for a new one. They will find it more
comfortable to look upon the
State as a mechanism, whose purpose is its
own preservation, and to say that
'their lives belong to the State,' as
if anything that grew from the inner
life of the nation can logically
serve anything but the national being, and
as if man could be made for
anything else than for his fellow beings.
Naturally, it is easier, as I
have said, to consider the authority of the
State as nothing but the
formal mechanism of an organization, rather than as
the sovereign
incarnation of a people's instinct for self-preservation on
this earth.
For these weak minds the State and the authority of the State is
nothing
but an aim in itself, while for us it is an effective weapon in the
service of the great and eternal struggle for existence, a weapon which
everyone must adopt, not because it is a mere formal mechanism, but
because
it is the main expression of our common will to exist.
Therefore, in the
fight for our new idea, which conforms completely to
the primal meaning of
life, we shall find only a small number of
comrades in a social order which
has become decrepit not only physically
but mentally also. From these strata
of our population only a few
exceptional people will join our ranks, only
those few old people whose
hearts have remained young and whose courage is
still vigorous, but not
those who consider it their duty to maintain the
state of affairs that
exists.
Against us we have the innumerable army
of all those who are lazy-minded
and indifferent rather than evil, and those
whose self-interest leads
them to uphold the present state of affairs. On the
apparent
hopelessness of our great struggle is based the magnitude of our
task
and the possibilities of success. A battle-cry which from the very start
will scare off all the petty spirits, or at least discourage them, will
become the signal for a rally of all those temperaments that are of the
real
fighting metal. And it must be clearly recognized that if a highly
energetic
and active body of men emerge from a nation and unite in the
fight for one
goal, thereby ultimately rising above the inert masses of
the people, this
small percentage will become masters of the whole.
World history is made by
minorities if these numerical minorities
represent in themselves the will and
energy and initiative of the people
as a whole.
What seems an obstacle
to many persons is really a preliminary condition
of our victory. Just
because our task is so great and because so many
difficulties have to be
overcome, the highest probability is that only
the best kind of protagonists
will join our ranks. This selection is the
guarantee of our success. Nature
generally takes certain measures to
correct the effect which racial mixture
produces in life. She is not
much in favour of the mongrel. The later
products of cross-breeding have
to suffer bitterly, especially the third,
fourth and fifth generations.
Not only are they deprived of the higher
qualities that belonged to the
parents who participated in the first mixture,
but they also lack
definite will-power and vigorous vital energies owing to
the lack of
harmony in the quality of their blood. At all critical moments in
which
a person of pure racial blood makes correct decisions, that is to say,
decisions that are coherent and uniform, the person of mixed blood will
become confused and take measures that are incoherent. Hence we see that
a
person of mixed blood is not only relatively inferior to a person of
pure
blood, but is also doomed to become extinct more rapidly. In
innumerable
cases wherein the pure race holds its ground the mongrel
breaks down. Therein
we witness the corrective provision which Nature
adopts. She restricts the
possibilities of procreation, thus impeding
the fertility of cross-breeds and
bringing them to extinction.
For instance, if an individual member of a
race should mingle his blood
with the member of a superior race the first
result would be a lowering
of the racial level, and furthermore the
descendants of this
cross-breeding would be weaker than those of the people
around them who
had maintained their blood unadulterated. Where no new blood
from the
superior race enters the racial stream of the mongrels, and where
those
mongrels continue to cross-breed among themselves, the latter will
either die out because they have insufficient powers of resistance,
which is
Nature's wise provision, or in the course of many thousands of
years they
will form a new mongrel race in which the original elements
will become so
wholly mixed through this millennial crossing that traces
of the original
elements will be no longer recognizable. And thus a new
people would be
developed which possessed a certain resistance capacity
of the herd type, but
its intellectual value and its cultural
significance would be essentially
inferior to those which the first
cross-breeds possessed. But even in this
last case the mongrel product
would succumb in the mutual struggle for
existence with a higher racial
group that had maintained its blood unmixed.
The herd solidarity which
this mongrel race had developed through thousands
of years will not be
equal to the struggle. And this is because it would lack
elasticity and
constructive capacity to prevail over a race of homogeneous
blood that
was mentally and culturally superior.
Therewith we may lay
down the following principle as valid: every racial
mixture leads, of
necessity, sooner or later to the downfall of the
mongrel product, provided
the higher racial strata of this cross-breed
has not retained within itself
some sort of racial homogeneity. The
danger to the mongrels ceases only when
this higher stratum, which has
maintained certain standards of homogeneous
breeding, ceases to be true
to its pedigree and intermingles with the
mongrels.
This principle is the source of a slow but constant
regeneration whereby
all the poison which has invaded the racial body is
gradually eliminated
so long as there still remains a fundamental stock of
pure racial
elements which resists further crossbreeding.
Such a
process may set in automatically among those people where a
strong racial
instinct has remained. Among such people we may count
those elements which,
for some particular cause such as coercion, have
been thrown out of the
normal way of reproduction along strict racial
lines. As soon as this
compulsion ceases, that part of the race which
has remained intact will tend
to marry with its own kind and thus impede
further intermingling. Then the
mongrels recede quite naturally into the
background unless their numbers had
increased so much as to be able to
withstand all serious resistance from
those elements which had preserved
the purity of their race.
When men
have lost their natural instincts and ignore the obligations
imposed on them
by Nature, then there is no hope that Nature will
correct the loss that has
been caused, until recognition of the lost
instincts has been restored. Then
the task of bringing back what has
been lost will have to be accomplished.
But there is serious danger that
those who have become blind once in this
respect will continue more and
more to break down racial barriers and finally
lose the last remnants of
what is best in them. What then remains is nothing
but a uniform
mish-mash, which seems to be the dream of our fine Utopians.
But that
mish-mash would soon banish all ideals from the world. Certainly a
great
herd could thus be formed. One can breed a herd of animals; but from a
mixture of this kind men such as have created and founded civilizations
would
not be produced. The mission of humanity might then be considered
at an end.
Those who do not wish that the earth should fall into such a condition
must realize that it is the task of the German State in particular to
see to
it that the process of bastardization is brought to a stop.
Our
contemporary generation of weaklings will naturally decry such a
policy and
whine and complain about it as an encroachment on the most
sacred of human
rights. But there is only one right that is sacrosanct
and this right is at
the same time a most sacred duty. This right and
obligation are: that the
purity of the racial blood should be guarded,
so that the best types of human
beings may be preserved and that thus we
should render possible a more noble
development of humanity itself.
A folk-State should in the first place
raise matrimony from the level of
being a constant scandal to the race. The
State should consecrate it as
an institution which is called upon to produce
creatures made in the
likeness of the Lord and not create monsters that are a
mixture of man
and ape. The protest which is put forward in the name of
humanity does
not fit the mouth of a generation that makes it possible for
the most
depraved degenerates to propagate themselves, thereby imposing
unspeakable suffering on their own products and their contemporaries,
while
on the other hand contraceptives are permitted and sold in every
drug store
and even by street hawkers, so that babies should not be born
even among the
healthiest of our people. In this present State of ours,
whose function it is
to be the guardian of peace and good order, our
national bourgeoisie look
upon it as a crime to make procreation
impossible for syphilitics and those
who suffer from tuberculosis or
other hereditary diseases, also cripples and
imbeciles. But the
practical prevention of procreation among millions of our
very best
people is not considered as an evil, nor does it offend against the
noble morality of this social class but rather encourages their
short-sightedness and mental lethargy. For otherwise they would at least
stir
their brains to find an answer to the question of how to create
conditions
for the feeding and maintaining of those future beings who
will be the
healthy representatives of our nation and must also provide
the conditions on
which the generation that is to follow them will have
to support itself and
live.
How devoid of ideals and how ignoble is the whole contemporary
system!
The fact that the churches join in committing this sin against the
image
of God, even though they continue to emphasize the dignity of that
image, is quite in keeping with their present activities. They talk
about the
Spirit, but they allow man, as the embodiment of the Spirit,
to degenerate to
the proletarian level. Then they look on with amazement
when they realize how
small is the influence of the Christian Faith in
their own country and how
depraved and ungodly is this riff-raff which
is physically degenerate and
therefore morally degenerate also. To
balance this state of affairs they try
to convert the Hottentots and the
Zulus and the Kaffirs and to bestow on them
the blessings of the Church.
While our European people, God be praised and
thanked, are left to
become the victims of moral depravity, the pious
missionary goes out to
Central Africa and establishes missionary stations for
negroes. Finally,
sound and healthy--though primitive and backward--people
will be
transformed, under the name of our 'higher civilization', into a
motley
of lazy and brutalized mongrels.
It would better accord with
noble human aspirations if our two Christian
denominations would cease to
bother the negroes with their preaching,
which the negroes do not want and do
not understand. It would be better
if they left this work alone, and if, in
its stead, they tried to teach
people in Europe, kindly and seriously, that
it is much more pleasing to
God if a couple that is not of healthy stock were
to show loving
kindness to some poor orphan and become a father and mother to
him,
rather than give life to a sickly child that will be a cause of
suffering and unhappiness to all.
In this field the People's State will
have to repair the damage that
arises from the fact that the problem is at
present neglected by all the
various parties concerned. It will be the task
of the People's State to
make the race the centre of the life of the
community. It must make sure
that the purity of the racial strain will be
preserved. It must proclaim
the truth that the child is the most valuable
possession a people can
have. It must see to it that only those who are
healthy shall beget
children; that there is only one infamy, namely, for
parents that are
ill or show hereditary defects to bring children into the
world and that
in such cases it is a high honour to refrain from doing so.
But, on the
other hand, it must be considered as reprehensible conduct to
refrain
from giving healthy children to the nation. In this matter the State
must assert itself as the trustee of a millennial future, in face of
which
the egotistic desires of the individual count for nothing and will
have to
give way before the ruling of the State. In order to fulfil this
duty in a
practical manner the State will have to avail itself of modern
medical
discoveries. It must proclaim as unfit for procreation all those
who are
inflicted with some visible hereditary disease or are the
carriers of it; and
practical measures must be adopted to have such
people rendered sterile. On
the other hand, provision must be made for
the normally fertile woman so that
she will not be restricted in
child-bearing through the financial and
economic system operating in a
political regime that looks upon the blessing
of having children as a
curse to their parents. The State will have to
abolish the cowardly and
even criminal indifference with which the problem of
social amenities
for large families is treated, and it will have to be the
supreme
protector of this greatest blessing that a people can boast of. Its
attention and care must be directed towards the child rather than the
adult.
Those who are physically and mentally unhealthy and unfit must not
perpetuate their own suffering in the bodies of their children. From the
educational point of view there is here a huge task for the People's
State to
accomplish. But in a future era this work will appear greater
and more
significant than the victorious wars of our present bourgeois
epoch. Through
educational means the State must teach individuals that
illness is not a
disgrace but an unfortunate accident which has to be
pitied, yet that it is a
crime and a disgrace to make this affliction
all the worse by passing on
disease and defects to innocent creatures
out of mere egotism.
And the
State must also teach the people that it is an expression of a
really noble
nature and that it is a humanitarian act worthy of
admiration if a person who
innocently suffers from hereditary disease
refrains from having a child of
his own but gives his love and affection
to some unknown child who, through
its health, promises to become a
robust member of a healthy community. In
accomplishing such an
educational task the State integrates its function by
this activity in
the moral sphere. It must act on this principle without
paying any
attention to the question of whether its conduct will be
understood or
misconstrued, blamed or praised.
If for a period of only
600 years those individuals would be sterilized
who are physically degenerate
or mentally diseased, humanity would not
only be delivered from an immense
misfortune but also restored to a
state of general health such as we at
present can hardly imagine. If the
fecundity of the healthy portion of the
nation should be made a
practical matter in a conscientious and methodical
way, we should have
at least the beginnings of a race from which all those
germs would be
eliminated which are to-day the cause of our moral and
physical
decadence. If a people and a State take this course to develop that
nucleus of the nation which is most valuable from the racial standpoint
and
thus increase its fecundity, the people as a whole will subsequently
enjoy
that most precious of gifts which consists in a racial quality
fashioned on
truly noble lines.
To achieve this the State should first of all not
leave the colonization
of newly acquired territory to a haphazard policy but
should have it
carried out under the guidance of definite principles.
Specially
competent committees ought to issue certificates to individuals
entitling them to engage in colonization work, and these certificates
should
guarantee the racial purity of the individuals in question. In
this way
frontier colonies could gradually be founded whose inhabitants
would be of
the purest racial stock, and hence would possess the best
qualities of the
race. Such colonies would be a valuable asset to the
whole nation. Their
development would be a source of joy and confidence
and pride to each citizen
of the nation, because they would contain the
pure germ which would
ultimately bring about a great development of the
nation and indeed of
mankind itself.
The WELTANSCHAUUNG which bases the State on the racial
idea must
finally succeed in bringing about a nobler era, in which men will
no
longer pay exclusive attention to breeding and rearing pedigree dogs and
horses and cats, but will endeavour to improve the breed of the human
race
itself. That will be an era of silence and renunciation for one
class of
people, while the others will give their gifts and make their
sacrifices
joyfully.
That such a mentality may be possible cannot be denied in a
world where
hundreds and thousands accept the principle of celibacy from
their own
choice, without being obliged or pledged to do so by anything
except an
ecclesiastical precept. Why should it not be possible to induce
people
to make this sacrifice if, instead of such a precept, they were simply
told that they ought to put an end to this truly original sin of racial
corruption which is steadily being passed on from one generation to
another.
And, further, they ought to be brought to realize that it is
their bounden
duty to give to the Almighty Creator beings such as He
himself made to His
own image.
Naturally, our wretched army of contemporary philistines will
not
understand these things. They will ridicule them or shrug their round
shoulders and groan out their everlasting excuses: "Of course it is a
fine
thing, but the pity is that it cannot be carried out." And we
reply: "With
you indeed it cannot be done, for your world is incapable
of such an idea.
You know only one anxiety and that is for your own
personal existence. You
have one God, and that is your money. We do not
turn to you, however, for
help, but to the great army of those who are
too poor to consider their
personal existence as the highest good on
earth. They do not place their
trust in money but in other gods, into
whose hands they confide their lives.
Above all we turn to the vast army
of our German youth. They are coming to
maturity in a great epoch, and
they will fight against the evils which were
due to the laziness and
indifference of their fathers." Either the German
youth will one day
create a new State founded on the racial idea or they will
be the last
witnesses of the complete breakdown and death of the bourgeois
world.
For if a generation suffers from defects which it recognizes and
even
admits and is nevertheless quite pleased with itself, as the bourgeois
world is to-day, resorting to the cheap excuse that nothing can be done
to
remedy the situation, then such a generation is doomed to disaster. A
marked
characteristic of our bourgeois world is that they no longer can
deny the
evil conditions that exist. They have to admit that there is
much which is
foul and wrong; but they are not able to make up their
minds to fight against
that evil, which would mean putting forth the
energy to mobilize the forces
of 60 or 70 million people and thus oppose
this menace. They do just the
opposite. When such an effort is made
elsewhere they only indulge in silly
comment and try from a safe
distance to show that such an enterprise is
theoretically impossible and
doomed to failure. No arguments are too stupid
to be employed in the
service of their own pettifogging opinions and their
knavish moral
attitude. If, for instance, a whole continent wages war against
alcoholic intoxication, so as to free a whole people from this
devastating
vice, our bourgeois European does not know better than to
look sideways
stupidly, shake the head in doubt and ridicule the
movement with a superior
sneer--a state of mind which is effective in a
society that is so ridiculous.
But when all these stupidities miss their
aim and in that part of the world
this sublime and intangible attitude
is treated effectively and success
attends the movement, then such
success is called into question or its
importance minimized. Even moral
principles are used in this slanderous
campaign against a movement which
aims at suppressing a great source of
immorality.
No. We must not permit ourselves to be deceived by any
illusions on this
point. Our contemporary bourgeois world has become useless
for any such
noble human task because it has lost all high quality and is
evil, not
so much--as I think--because evil is wished but rather because
these
people are too indolent to rise up against it. That is why those
political societies which call themselves 'bourgeois parties' are
nothing but
associations to promote the interests of certain
professional groups and
classes. Their highest aim is to defend their
own egoistic interests as best
they can. It is obvious that such a
guild, consisting of bourgeois
politicians, may be considered fit for
anything rather than a struggle,
especially when the adversaries are not
cautious shopkeepers but the
proletarian masses, goaded on to
extremities and determined not to hesitate
before deeds of violence.
If we consider it the first duty of the State
to serve and promote the
general welfare of the people, by preserving and
encouraging the
development of the best racial elements, the logical
consequence is that
this task cannot be limited to measures concerning the
birth of the
infant members of the race and nation but that the State will
also have
to adopt educational means for making each citizen a worthy factor
in
the further propagation of the racial stock.
Just as, in general,
the racial quality is the preliminary condition for
the mental efficiency of
any given human material, the training of the
individual will first of all
have to be directed towards the development
of sound bodily health. For the
general rule is that a strong and
healthy mind is found only in a strong and
healthy body. The fact that
men of genius are sometimes not robust in health
and stature, or even of
a sickly constitution, is no proof against the
principle I have
enunciated. These cases are only exceptions which, as
everywhere else,
prove the rule. But when the bulk of a nation is composed of
physical
degenerates it is rare for a great spirit to arise from such a
miserable
motley. And in any case his activities would never meet with great
success. A degenerate mob will either be incapable of understanding him
at
all or their will-power is so feeble that they cannot follow the
soaring of
such an eagle.
The State that is grounded on the racial principle and is
alive to the
significance of this truth will first of all have to base its
educational work not on the mere imparting of knowledge but rather on
physical training and development of healthy bodies. The cultivation of
the
intellectual facilities comes only in the second place. And here
again it is
character which has to be developed first of all, strength
of will and
decision. And the educational system ought to foster the
spirit of readiness
to accept responsibilities gladly. Formal
instruction in the sciences must be
considered last in importance.
Accordingly the State which is grounded on the
racial idea must start
with the principle that a person whose formal
education in the sciences
is relatively small but who is physically sound and
robust, of a
steadfast and honest character, ready and able to make decisions
and
endowed with strength of will, is a more useful member of the national
community than a weakling who is scholarly and refined. A nation
composed of
learned men who are physical weaklings, hesitant about
decisions of the will,
and timid pacifists, is not capable of assuring
even its own existence on
this earth. In the bitter struggle which
decides the destiny of man it is
very rare that an individual has
succumbed because he lacked learning. Those
who fail are they who try to
ignore these consequences and are too
faint-hearted about putting them
into effect. There must be a certain balance
between mind and body. An
ill-kept body is not made a more beautiful sight by
the indwelling of a
radiant spirit. We should not be acting justly if we were
to bestow the
highest intellectual training on those who are physically
deformed and
crippled, who lack decision and are weak-willed and cowardly.
What has
made the Greek ideal of beauty immortal is the wonderful union of a
splendid physical beauty with nobility of mind and spirit.
Moltke's
saying, that in the long run fortune favours only the
efficient, is certainly
valid for the relationship between body and
spirit. A mind which is sound
will generally maintain its dwelling in a
body that is sound.
Accordingly, in the People's State physical training is not a matter for
the
individual alone. Nor is it a duty which first devolves on the
parents and
only secondly or thirdly a public interest; but it is
necessary for the
preservation of the people, who are represented and
protected by the State.
As regards purely formal education the State
even now interferes with the
individual's right of self-determination
and insists upon the right of the
community by submitting the child to
an obligatory system of training,
without paying attention to the
approval or disapproval of the parents. In a
similar way and to a higher
degree the new People's State will one day make
its authority prevail
over the ignorance and incomprehension of individuals
in problems
appertaining to the safety of the nation. It must organize its
educational work in such a way that the bodies of the young will be
systematically trained from infancy onwards, so as to be tempered and
hardened for the demands to be made on them in later years. Above all,
the
State must see to it that a generation of stay-at-homes is not
developed.
The work of education and hygiene has to begin with the young mother.
The
painstaking efforts carried on for several decades have succeeded in
abolishing septic infection at childbirth and reducing puerperal fever
to a
relatively small number of cases. And so it ought to be possible by
means of
instructing sisters and mothers in an opportune way, to
institute a system of
training the child from early infancy onwards so
that this may serve as an
excellent basis for future development.
The People's State ought to allow
much more time for physical training
in the school. It is nonsense to burden
young brains with a load of
material of which, as experience shows, they
retain only a small part,
and mostly not the essentials, but only the
secondary and useless
portion; because the young mind is incapable of sifting
the right kind
of learning out of all the stuff that is pumped into it.
To-day, even in
the curriculum of the high schools, only two short hours in
the week are
reserved for gymnastics; and worse still, it is left to the
pupils to
decide whether or not they want to take part. This shows a grave
disproportion between this branch of education and purely intellectual
instruction. Not a single day should be allowed to pass in which the
young
pupil does not have one hour of physical training in the morning
and one in
the evening; and every kind of sport and gymnastics should be
included. There
is one kind of sport which should be specially
encouraged, although many
people who call themselves VÖLKISCH consider
it brutal and vulgar, and that
is boxing. It is incredible how many
false notions prevail among the
'cultivated' classes. The fact that the
young man learns how to fence and
then spends his time in duels is
considered quite natural and respectable.
But boxing--that is brutal.
Why? There is no other sport which equals this in
developing the
militant spirit, none that demands such a power of rapid
decision or
which gives the body the flexibility of good steel. It is no more
vulgar
when two young people settle their differences with their fists than
with sharp-pointed pieces of steel. One who is attacked and defends
himself
with his fists surely does not act less manly than one who runs
off and yells
for the assistance of a policeman. But, above all, a
healthy youth has to
learn to endure hard knocks. This principle may
appear savage to our
contemporary champions who fight only with the
weapons of the intellect. But
it is not the purpose of the People's
State to educate a colony of aesthetic
pacifists and physical
degenerates. This State does not consider that the
human ideal is to be
found in the honourable philistine or the maidenly
spinster, but in a
dareful personification of manly force and in women
capable of bringing
men into the world.
Generally speaking, the
function of sport is not only to make the
individual strong, alert and
daring, but also to harden the body and
train it to endure an adverse
environment.
If our superior class had not received such a distinguished
education,
and if, on the contrary, they had learned boxing, it would never
have
been possible for bullies and deserters and other such CANAILLE to carry
through a German revolution. For the success of this revolution was not
due
to the courageous, energetic and audacious activities of its authors
but to
the lamentable cowardice and irresolution of those who ruled the
German State
at that time and were responsible for it. But our educated
leaders had
received only an 'intellectual' training and thus found
themselves
defenceless when their adversaries used iron bars instead of
intellectual
weapons. All this could happen only because our superior
scholastic system
did not train men to be real men but merely to be
civil servants, engineers,
technicians, chemists, litterateurs, jurists
and, finally, professors; so
that intellectualism should not die out.
Our leadership in the purely
intellectual sphere has always been
brilliant, but as regards will-power in
practical affairs our leadership
has been beneath criticism.
Of course
education cannot make a courageous man out of one who is
temperamentally a
coward. But a man who naturally possesses a certain
degree of courage will
not be able to develop that quality if his
defective education has made him
inferior to others from the very start
as regards physical strength and
prowess. The army offers the best
example of the fact that the knowledge of
one's physical ability
develops a man's courage and militant spirit.
Outstanding heroes are not
the rule in the army, but the average represents
men of high courage.
The excellent schooling which the German soldiers
received before the
War imbued the members of the whole gigantic organism
with a degree of
confidence in their own superiority such as even our
opponents never
thought possible. All the immortal examples of dauntless
courage and
daring which the German armies gave during the late summer and
autumn of
1914, as they advanced from triumph to triumph, were the result of
that
education which had been pursued systematically. During those long years
of peace before the last War men who were almost physical weaklings were
made
capable of incredible deeds, and thus a self-confidence was
developed which
did not fail even in the most terrible battles.
It is our German people,
which broke down and were delivered over to be
kicked by the rest of the
world, that had need of the power that comes
by suggestion from
self-confidence. But this confidence in one's self
must be instilled into our
children from their very early years. The
whole system of education and
training must be directed towards
fostering in the child the conviction that
he is unquestionably a match
for any- and everybody. The individual has to
regain his own physical
strength and prowess in order to believe in the
invincibility of the
nation to which he belongs. What has formerly led the
German armies to
victory was the sum total of the confidence which each
individual had in
himself, and which all of them had in those who held the
positions of
command. What will restore the national strength of the German
people is
the conviction that they will be able to reconquer their liberty.
But
this conviction can only be the final product of an equal feeling in the
millions of individuals. And here again we must have no illusions.
The
collapse of our people was overwhelming, and the efforts to put an
end to so
much misery must also be overwhelming. It would be a bitter
and grave error
to believe that our people could be made strong again
simply by means of our
present bourgeois training in good order and
obedience. That will not suffice
if we are to break up the present order
of things, which now sanctions the
acknowledgment of our defeat and cast
the broken chains of our slavery in the
face of our opponents. Only by a
superabundance of national energy and a
passionate thirst for liberty
can we recover what has been lost.
Also
the manner of clothing the young should be such as harmonizes with
this
purpose. It is really lamentable to see how our young people have
fallen
victims to a fashion mania which perverts the meaning of the old
adage that
clothes make the man.
Especially in regard to young people clothes should
take their place in
the service of education. The boy who walks about in
summer-time wearing
long baggy trousers and clad up to the neck is hampered
even by his
clothes in feeling any inclination towards strenuous physical
exercise.
Ambition and, to speak quite frankly, even vanity must be appealed
to. I
do not mean such vanity as leads people to want to wear fine clothes,
which not everybody can afford, but rather the vanity which inclines a
person
towards developing a fine bodily physique. And this is something
which
everybody can help to do.
This will come in useful also for later years.
The young girl must
become acquainted with her sweetheart. If the beauty of
the body were
not completely forced into the background to-day through our
stupid
manner of dressing, it would not be possible for thousands of our
girls
to be led astray by Jewish mongrels, with their repulsive crooked
waddle. It is also in the interests of the nation that those who have a
beautiful physique should be brought into the foreground, so that they
might
encourage the development of a beautiful bodily form among the
people in
general.
Military training is excluded among us to-day, and therewith the
only
institution which in peace-times at least partly made up for the lack of
physical training in our education. Therefore what I have suggested is
all
the more necessary in our time. The success of our old military
training not
only showed itself in the education of the individual but
also in the
influence which it exercised over the mutual relationship
between the sexes.
The young girl preferred the soldier to one who was
not a soldier. The
People's State must not confine its control of
physical training to the
official school period, but it must demand
that, after leaving school and
while the adolescent body is still
developing, the boy continues this
training. For on such proper physical
development success in after-life
largely depends. It is stupid to think
that the right of the State to
supervise the education of its young
citizens suddenly comes to an end the
moment they leave school and
recommences only with military service. This
right is a duty, and as
such it must continue uninterruptedly. The present
State, which does not
interest itself in developing healthy men, has
criminally neglected this
duty. It leaves our contemporary youth to be
corrupted on the streets
and in the brothels, instead of keeping hold of the
reins and continuing
the physical training of these youths up to the time
when they are grown
into healthy young men and women.
For the present
it is a matter of indifference what form the State
chooses for carrying on
this training. The essential matter is that it
should be developed and that
the most suitable ways of doing so should
be investigated. The People's State
will have to consider the physical
training of the youth after the school
period just as much a public duty
as their intellectual training; and this
training will have to be
carried out through public institutions. Its general
lines can be a
preparation for subsequent service in the army. And then it
will no
longer be the task of the army to teach the young recruit the most
elementary drill regulations. In fact the army will no longer have to
deal
with recruits in the present sense of the word, but it will rather
have to
transform into a soldier the youth whose bodily prowess has been
already
fully trained.
In the People's State the army will no longer be obliged
to teach boys
how to walk and stand erect, but it will be the final and
supreme school
of patriotic education. In the army the young recruit will
learn the art
of bearing arms, but at the same time he will be equipped for
his other
duties in later life. And the supreme aim of military education
must
always be to achieve that which was attributed to the old army as its
highest merit: namely, that through his military schooling the boy must
be
transformed into a man, that he must not only learn to obey but also
acquire
the fundamentals that will enable him one day to command. He
must learn to
remain silent not only when he is rightly rebuked but also
when he is wrongly
rebuked.
Furthermore, on the self-consciousness of his own strength and
on the
basis of that ESPRIT DE CORPS which inspires him and his comrades, he
must become convinced that he belongs to a people who are invincible.
After he has completed his military training two certificates shall be
handed
to the soldier. The one will be his diploma as a citizen of the
State, a
juridical document which will enable him to take part in public
affairs. The
second will be an attestation of his physical health, which
guarantees his
fitness for marriage.
The People's State will have to direct the
education of girls just as
that of boys and according to the same fundamental
principles. Here
again special importance must be given to physical training,
and only
after that must the importance of spiritual and mental training be
taken
into account. In the education of the girl the final goal always to be
kept in mind is that she is one day to be a mother.
It is only in the
second place that the People's State must busy itself
with the training of
character, using all the means adapted to that
purpose.
Of course the
essential traits of the individual character are already
there fundamentally
before any education takes place. A person who is
fundamentally egoistic will
always remain fundamentally egoistic, and
the idealist will always remain
fundamentally an idealist. Besides
those, however, who already possess a
definite stamp of character there
are millions of people with characters that
are indefinite and vague.
The born delinquent will always remain a
delinquent, but numerous people
who show only a certain tendency to commit
criminal acts may become
useful members of the community if rightly trained;
whereas, on the
other hand, weak and unstable characters may easily become
evil elements
if the system of education has been bad.
During the War
it was often lamented that our people could be so little
reticent. This
failing made it very difficult to keep even highly
important secrets from the
knowledge of the enemy. But let us ask this
question: What did the German
educational system do in pre-War times to
teach the Germans to be discreet?
Did it not very often happen in
schooldays that the little tell-tale was
preferred to his companions who
kept their mouths shut? Is it not true that
then, as well as now,
complaining about others was considered praiseworthy
'candour', while
silent discretion was taken as obstinacy? Has any attempt
ever been made
to teach that discretion is a precious and manly virtue? No,
for such
matters are trifles in the eyes of our educators. But these trifles
cost
our State innumerable millions in legal expenses; for 90 per cent of all
the processes for defamation and such like charges arise only from a
lack of
discretion. Remarks that are made without any sense of
responsibility are
thoughtlessly repeated from mouth to mouth; and our
economic welfare is
continually damaged because important methods of
production are thus
disclosed. Secret preparations for our national
defence are rendered illusory
because our people have never learned the
duty of silence. They repeat
everything they happen to hear. In times of
war such talkative habits may
even cause the loss of battles and
therefore may contribute essentially to
the unsuccessful outcome of a
campaign. Here, as in other matters, we may
rest assured that adults
cannot do what they have not learnt to do in youth.
A teacher must not
try to discover the wild tricks of the boys by encouraging
the evil
practice of tale-bearing. Young people form a sort of State among
themselves and face adults with a certain solidarity. That is quite
natural.
The ties which unite the ten-year boys to one another are
stronger and more
natural than their relationship to adults. A boy who
tells on his comrades
commits an act of treason and shows a bent of
character which is, to speak
bluntly, similar to that of a man who
commits high treason. Such a boy must
not be classed as 'good',
'reliable', and so on, but rather as one with
undesirable traits of
character. It may be rather convenient for the teacher
to make use of
such unworthy tendencies in order to help his own work, but by
such an
attitude the germ of a moral habit is sown in young hearts and may
one
day show fatal consequences. It has happened more often than once that a
young informer developed into a big scoundrel.
This is only one example
among many. The deliberate training of fine and
noble traits of character in
our schools to-day is almost negative. In
the future much more emphasis will
have to be laid on this side of our
educational work. Loyalty, self-sacrifice
and discretion are virtues
which a great nation must possess. And the
teaching and development of
these in the school is a more important matter
than many others things
now included in the curriculum. To make the children
give up habits of
complaining and whining and howling when they are hurt,
etc., also
belongs to this part of their training. If the educational system
fails
to teach the child at an early age to endure pain and injury without
complaining we cannot be surprised if at a later age, when the boy has
grown
to be the man and is, for example, in the trenches, the postal
service is
used for nothing else than to send home letters of weeping
and complaint. If
our youths, during their years in the primary schools,
had had their minds
crammed with a little less knowledge, and if instead
they had been better
taught how to be masters of themselves, it would
have served us well during
the years 1914-1918.
In its educational system the People's State will
have to attach the
highest importance to the development of character,
hand-in-hand with
physical training. Many more defects which our national
organism shows
at present could be at least ameliorated, if not completely
eliminated,
by education of the right kind.
Extreme importance should
be attached to the training of will-power and
the habit of making firm
decisions, also the habit of being always ready
to accept responsibilities.
In the training of our old army the principle was in vogue that any
order
is always better than no order. Applied to our youth this
principle ought to
take the form that any answer is better than no
answer. The fear of replying,
because one fears to be wrong, ought to be
considered more humiliating than
giving the wrong reply. On this simple
and primitive basis our youth should
be trained to have the courage to
act.
It has been often lamented that
in November and December 1918 all the
authorities lost their heads and that,
from the monarch down to the last
divisional commander, nobody had sufficient
mettle to make a decision on
his own responsibility. That terrible fact
constitutes a grave rebuke to
our educational system; because what was then
revealed on a colossal
scale at that moment of catastrophe was only what
happens on a smaller
scale everywhere among us. It is the lack of will-power,
and not the
lack of arms, which renders us incapable of offering any serious
resistance to-day. This defect is found everywhere among our people and
prevents decisive action wherever risks have to be taken, as if any
great
action can be taken without also taking the risk. Quite
unsuspectingly, a
German General found a formula for this lamentable
lack of the will-to-act
when he said: "I act only when I can count on a
51 per cent probability of
success." In that '51 per cent probability'
we find the very root of the
German collapse. The man who demands from
Fate a guarantee of his success
deliberately denies the significance of
an heroic act. For this significance
consists in the very fact that, in
the definite knowledge that the situation
in question is fraught with
mortal danger, an action is undertaken which may
lead to success. A
patient suffering from cancer and who knows that his death
is certain if
he does not undergo an operation, needs no 51 per cent
probability of a
cure before facing the operation. And if the operation
promises only
half of one per cent probability of success a man of courage
will risk
it and would not whine if it turned out unsuccessful.
All in
all, the cowardly lack of will-power and the incapacity for
making decisions
are chiefly results of the erroneous education given us
in our youth. The
disastrous effects of this are now widespread among
us. The crowning examples
of that tragic chain of consequences are shown
in the lack of civil courage
which our leading statesmen display.
The cowardice which leads nowadays
to the shirking of every kind of
responsibility springs from the same roots.
Here again it is the fault
of the education given our young people. This
drawback permeates all
sections of public life and finds its immortal
consummation in the
institutions of government that function under the
parliamentary regime.
Already in the school, unfortunately, more value is
placed on
'confession and full repentance' and 'contrite renouncement', on
the
part of little sinners, than on a simple and frank avowal. But this
latter seems to-day, in the eyes of many an educator, to savour of a
spirit
of utter incorrigibility and depravation. And, though it may seem
incredible,
many a boy is told that the gallows tree is waiting for him
because he has
shown certain traits which might be of inestimable value
in the nation as a
whole.
Just as the People's State must one day give its attention to
training
the will-power and capacity for decision among the youth, so too it
must
inculcate in the hearts of the young generation from early childhood
onwards a readiness to accept responsibilities, and the courage of open
and
frank avowal. If it recognizes the full significance of this
necessity,
finally--after a century of educative work--it will succeed
in building up a
nation which will no longer be subject to those defeats
that have contributed
so disastrously to bring about our present
overthrow.
The formal
imparting of knowledge, which constitutes the chief work of
our educational
system to-day, will be taken over by the People's State
with only few
modifications. These modifications must be made in three
branches.
First of all, the brains of the young people must not generally be
burdened
with subjects of which ninety-five per cent are useless to them
and are
therefore forgotten again. The curriculum of the primary and
secondary
schools presents an odd mixture at the present time. In many
branches of
study the subject matter to be learned has become so
enormous that only a
very small fraction of it can be remembered later
on, and indeed only a very
small fraction of this whole mass of
knowledge can be used. On the other
hand, what is learned is
insufficient for anybody who wishes to specialize in
any certain branch
for the purpose of earning his daily bread. Take, for
example, the
average civil servant who has passed through the GYMNASIUM or
High
School, and ask him at the age of thirty or forty how much he has
retained of the knowledge that was crammed into him with so much pains.
How much is retained from all that was stuffed into his brain? He will
certainly answer: "Well, if a mass of stuff was then taught, it was not
for
the sole purpose of supplying the student with a great stock of
knowledge
from which he could draw in later years, but it served to
develop the
understanding, the memory, and above all it helped to
strengthen the thinking
powers of the brain." That is partly true. And
yet it is somewhat dangerous
to submerge a young brain in a flood of
impressions which it can hardly
master and the single elements of which
it cannot discern or appreciate at
their just value. It is mostly the
essential part of this knowledge, and not
the accidental, that is
forgotten and sacrificed. Thus the principal purpose
of this copious
instruction is frustrated, for that purpose cannot be to make
the brain
capable of learning by simply offering it an enormous and varied
amount
of subjects for acquisition, but rather to furnish the individual with
that stock of knowledge which he will need in later life and which he
can use
for the good of the community. This aim, however, is rendered
illusory if,
because of the superabundance of subjects that have been
crammed into his
head in childhood, a person is able to remember
nothing, or at least not the
essential portion, of all this in later
life. There is no reason why millions
of people should learn two or
three languages during the school years, when
only a very small fraction
will have the opportunity to use these languages
in later life and when
most of them will therefore forget those languages
completely. To take
an instance: Out of 100,000 students who learn French
there are probably
not 2,000 who will be in a position to make use of this
accomplishment
in later life, while 98,000 will never have a chance to
utilize in
practice what they have learned in youth. They have spent
thousands of
hours on a subject which will afterwards be without any value or
importance to them. The argument that these matters form part of the
general
process of educating the mind is invalid. It would be sound if
all these
people were able to use this learning in after life. But, as
the situation
stands, 98,000 are tortured to no purpose and waste their
valuable time, only
for the sake of the 2,000 to whom the language will
be of any use.
In
the case of that language which I have chosen as an example it cannot
be said
that the learning of it educates the student in logical thinking
or sharpens
his mental acumen, as the learning of Latin, for instance,
might be said to
do. It would therefore be much better to teach young
students only the
general outline, or, better, the inner structure of
such a language: that is
to say, to allow them to discern the
characteristic features of the language,
or perhaps to make them
acquainted with the rudiments of its grammar, its
pronunciation, its
syntax, style, etc. That would be sufficient for average
students,
because it would provide a clearer view of the whole and could be
more
easily remembered. And it would be more practical than the present-day
attempt to cram into their heads a detailed knowledge of the whole
language,
which they can never master and which they will readily
forget. If this
method were adopted, then we should avoid the danger
that, out of the
superabundance of matter taught, only some fragments
will remain in the
memory; for the youth would then have to learn what
is worth while, and the
selection between the useful and the useless
would thus have been made
beforehand.
As regards the majority of students the knowledge and
understanding of
the rudiments of a language would be quite sufficient for
the rest of
their lives. And those who really do need this language
subsequently
would thus have a foundation on which to start, should they
choose to
make a more thorough study of it.
By adopting such a
curriculum the necessary amount of time would be
gained for physical
exercises as well as for a more intense training in
the various educational
fields that have already been mentioned.
A reform of particular
importance is that which ought to take place in
the present methods of
teaching history. Scarcely any other people are
made to study as much of
history as the Germans, and scarcely any other
people make such a bad use of
their historical knowledge. If politics
means history in the making, then our
way of teaching history stands
condemned by the way we have conducted our
politics. But there would be
no point in bewailing the lamentable results of
our political conduct
unless one is now determined to give our people a
better political
education. In 99 out of 100 cases the results of our present
teaching of
history are deplorable. Usually only a few dates, years of birth
and
names, remain in the memory, while a knowledge of the main and clearly
defined lines of historical development is completely lacking. The
essential
features which are of real significance are not taught. It is
left to the
more or less bright intelligence of the individual to
discover the inner
motivating urge amid the mass of dates and
chronological succession of
events.
You may object as strongly as you like to this unpleasant
statement. But
read with attention the speeches which our parliamentarians
make during
one session alone on political problems and on questions of
foreign
policy in particular. Remember that those gentlemen are, or claim to
be,
the elite of the German nation and that at least a great number of them
have sat on the benches of our secondary schools and that many of them
have
passed through our universities. Then you will realize how
defective the
historical education of these people has been. If these
gentlemen had never
studied history at all but had possessed a sound
instinct for public affairs,
things would have gone better, and the
nation would have benefited greatly
thereby.
The subject matter of our historical teaching must be curtailed.
The
chief value of that teaching is to make the principal lines of
historical development understood. The more our historical teaching is
limited to this task, the more we may hope that it will turn out
subsequently
to be of advantage to the individual and, through the
individual, to the
community as a whole. For history must not be studied
merely with a view to
knowing what happened in the past but as a guide
for the future, and to teach
us what policy would be the best to follow
for the preservation of our own
people. That is the real end; and the
teaching of history is only a means to
attain this end. But here again
the means has superseded the end in our
contemporary education. The goal
is completely forgotten. Do not reply that a
profound study of history
demands a detailed knowledge of all these dates
because otherwise we
could not fix the great lines of development. That task
belongs to the
professional historians. But the average man is not a
professor of
history. For him history has only one mission and that is to
provide him
with such an amount of historical knowledge as is necessary in
order to
enable him to form an independent opinion on the political affairs
of
his own country. The man who wants to become a professor of history can
devote himself to all the details later on. Naturally he will have to
occupy
himself even with the smallest details. Of course our present
teaching of
history is not adequate to all this. Its scope is too vast
for the average
student and too limited for the student who wishes to be
an historical
expert.
Finally, it is the business of the People's State to arrange for
the
writing of a world history in which the race problem will occupy a
dominant position.
To sum up: The People's State must reconstruct our
system of general
instruction in such a way that it will embrace only what is
essential.
Beyond this it will have to make provision for a more advanced
teaching
in the various subjects for those who want to specialize in them. It
will suffice for the average individual to be acquainted with the
fundamentals of the various subjects to serve as the basis of what may
be
called an all-round education. He ought to study exhaustively and in
detail
only that subject in which he intends to work during the rest of
his life. A
general instruction in all subjects should be obligatory,
and specialization
should be left to the choice of the individual.
In this way the
scholastic programme would be shortened, and thus
several school hours would
be gained which could be utilized for
physical training and character
training, in will-power, the capacity
for making practical judgments,
decisions, etc.
The little account taken by our school training to-day,
especially in
the secondary schools, of the callings that have to be followed
in after
life is demonstrated by the fact that men who are destined for the
same
calling in life are educated in three different kinds of schools. What
is of decisive importance is general education only and not the special
teaching. When special knowledge is needed it cannot be given in the
curriculum of our secondary schools as they stand to-day.
Therefore the
People's State will one day have to abolish such
half-measures.
The
second modification in the curriculum which the People's State will
have to
make is the following:
It is a characteristic of our materialistic epoch
that our scientific
education shows a growing emphasis on what is real and
practical: such
subjects, for instance, as applied mathematics, physics,
chemistry, etc.
Of course they are necessary in an age that is dominated by
industrial
technology and chemistry, and where everyday life shows at least
the
external manifestations of these. But it is a perilous thing to base the
general culture of a nation on the knowledge of these subjects. On the
contrary, that general culture ought always to be directed towards
ideals. It
ought to be founded on the humanist disciplines and should
aim at giving only
the ground work of further specialized instruction in
the various practical
sciences. Otherwise we should sacrifice those
forces that are more important
for the preservation of the nation than
any technical knowledge. In the
historical department the study of
ancient history should not be omitted.
Roman history, along general
lines, is and will remain the best teacher, not
only for our own time
but also for the future. And the ideal of Hellenic
culture should be
preserved for us in all its marvellous beauty. The
differences between
the various peoples should not prevent us from
recognizing the community
of race which unites them on a higher plane. The
conflict of our times
is one that is being waged around great objectives. A
civilization is
fighting for its existence. It is a civilization that is the
product of
thousands of years of historical development, and the Greek as
well as
the German forms part of it.
A clear-cut division must be made
between general culture and the
special branches. To-day the latter threaten
more and more to devote
themselves exclusively to the service of Mammon. To
counterbalance this
tendency, general culture should be preserved, at least
in its ideal
forms. The principle should be repeatedly emphasized, that
industrial
and technical progress, trade and commerce, can flourish only so
long as
a folk community exists whose general system of thought is inspired
by
ideals, since that is the preliminary condition for a flourishing
development of the enterprises I have spoken of. That condition is not
created by a spirit of materialist egotism but by a spirit of
self-denial and
the joy of giving one's self in the service of others.
The system of
education which prevails to-day sees its principal object
in pumping into
young people that knowledge which will help them to make
their way in life.
This principle is expressed in the following terms:
"The young man must one
day become a useful member of human society." By
that phrase they mean the
ability to gain an honest daily livelihood.
The superficial training in the
duties of good citizenship, which he
acquires merely as an accidental thing,
has very weak foundations. For
in itself the State represents only a form,
and therefore it is
difficult to train people to look upon this form as the
ideal which they
will have to serve and towards which they must feel
responsible. A form
can be too easily broken. But, as we have seen, the idea
which people
have of the State to-day does not represent anything clearly
defined.
Therefore, there is nothing but the usual stereotyped 'patriotic'
training. In the old Germany the greatest emphasis was placed on the
divine
right of the small and even the smallest potentates. The way in
which this
divine right was formulated and presented was never very
clever and often
very stupid. Because of the large numbers of those
small potentates, it was
impossible to give adequate biographical
accounts of the really great
personalities that shed their lustre on the
history of the German people. The
result was that the broad masses
received a very inadequate knowledge of
German history. Here, too, the
great lines of development were missing.
It is evident that in such a way no real national enthusiasm could be
aroused. Our educational system proved incapable of selecting from the
general mass of our historical personages the names of a few
personalities
which the German people could be proud to look upon as
their own. Thus the
whole nation might have been united by the ties of a
common knowledge of this
common heritage. The really important figures
in German history were not
presented to the present generation. The
attention of the whole nation was
not concentrated on them for the
purpose of awakening a common national
spirit. From the various subjects
that were taught, those who had charge of
our training seemed incapable
of selecting what redounded most to the
national honour and lifting that
above the common objective level, in order
to inflame the national pride
in the light of such brilliant examples. At
that time such a course
would have been looked upon as rank chauvinism, which
did not then have
a very pleasant savour. Pettifogging dynastic patriotism
was more
acceptable and more easily tolerated than the glowing fire of a
supreme
national pride. The former could be always pressed into service,
whereas
the latter might one day become a dominating force. Monarchist
patriotism terminated in Associations of Veterans, whereas passionate
national patriotism might have opened a road which would be difficult to
determine. This national passion is like a highly tempered thoroughbred
who
is discriminate about the sort of rider he will tolerate in the
saddle. No
wonder that most people preferred to shirk such a danger.
Nobody seemed to
think it possible that one day a war might come which
would put the mettle of
this kind of patriotism to the test, in
artillery bombardment and waves of
attacks with poison gas. But when it
did come our lack of this patriotic
passion was avenged in a terrible
way. None were very enthusiastic about
dying for their imperial and
royal sovereigns; while on the other hand the
'Nation' was not
recognized by the greater number of the soldiers.
Since the revolution broke out in Germany and the monarchist patriotism
was
therefore extinguished, the purpose of teaching history was nothing
more than
to add to the stock of objective knowledge. The present State
has no use for
patriotic enthusiasm; but it will never obtain what it
really desires. For if
dynastic patriotism failed to produce a supreme
power of resistance at a time
when the principle of nationalism
dominated, it will be still less possible
to arouse republican
enthusiasm. There can be no doubt that the German people
would not have
stood on the field of battle for four and a half years to
fight under
the battle slogan 'For the Republic,' and least of all those who
created
this grand institution.
In reality this Republic has been
allowed to exist undisturbed only by
grace of its readiness and its promise
to all and sundry, to pay tribute
and reparations to the stranger and to put
its signature to any kind of
territorial renunciation. The rest of the world
finds it sympathetic,
just as a weakling is always more pleasing to those who
want to bend him
to their own uses than is a man who is made of harder metal.
But the
fact that the enemy likes this form of government is the worst kind
of
condemnation. They love the German Republic and tolerate its existence
because no better instrument could be found which would help them to
keep our
people in slavery. It is to this fact alone that this
magnanimous institution
owes its survival. And that is why it can
renounce any REAL system of
national education and can feel satisfied
when the heroes of the REICH banner
shout their hurrahs, but in reality
these same heroes would scamper away like
rabbits if called upon to
defend that banner with their blood.
The
People's State will have to fight for its existence. It will not
gain or
secure this existence by signing documents like that of the
Dawes Plan. But
for its existence and defence it will need precisely
those things which our
present system believes can be repudiated. The
more worthy its form and its
inner national being. the greater will be
the envy and opposition of its
adversaries. The best defence will not be
in the arms it possesses but in its
citizens. Bastions of fortresses
will not save it, but the living wall of its
men and women, filled with
an ardent love for their country and a passionate
spirit of national
patriotism.
Therefore the third point which will
have to be considered in relation
to our educational system is the following:
The People's State must realize that the sciences may also be made a
means of promoting a spirit of pride in the nation. Not only the history
of
the world but the history of civilization as a whole must be taught
in the
light of this principle. An inventor must appear great not only
as an
inventor but also, and even more so, as a member of the nation.
The
admiration aroused by the contemplation of a great achievement must
be
transformed into a feeling of pride and satisfaction that a man of
one's own
race has been chosen to accomplish it. But out of the
abundance of great
names in German history the greatest will have to be
selected and presented
to our young generation in such a way as to
become solid pillars of strength
to support the national spirit.
The subject matter ought to be
systematically organized from the
standpoint of this principle. And the
teaching should be so orientated
that the boy or girl, after leaving school,
will not be a semi-pacifist,
a democrat or of something else of that kind,
but a whole-hearted
German. So that this national feeling be sincere from the
very
beginning, and not a mere pretence, the following fundamental and
inflexible principle should be impressed on the young brain while it is
yet
malleable: The man who loves his nation can prove the sincerity of
this
sentiment only by being ready to make sacrifices for the nation's
welfare.
There is no such thing as a national sentiment which is
directed towards
personal interests. And there is no such thing as a
nationalism that embraces
only certain classes. Hurrahing proves nothing
and does not confer the right
to call oneself national if behind that
shout there is no sincere
preoccupation for the conservation of the
nation's well-being. One can be
proud of one's people only if there is
no class left of which one need to be
ashamed. When one half of a nation
is sunk in misery and worn out by hard
distress, or even depraved or
degenerate, that nation presents such an
unattractive picture that
nobody can feel proud to belong to it. It is only
when a nation is sound
in all its members, physically and morally, that the
joy of belonging to
it can properly be intensified to the supreme feeling
which we call
national pride. But this pride, in its highest form, can be
felt only by
those who know the greatness of their nation.
The spirit
of nationalism and a feeling for social justice must be fused
into one
sentiment in the hearts of the youth. Then a day will come when
a nation of
citizens will arise which will be welded together through a
common love and a
common pride that shall be invincible and
indestructible for ever.
The
dread of chauvinism, which is a symptom of our time, is a sign of
its
impotence. Since our epoch not only lacks everything in the nature
of
exuberant energy but even finds such a manifestation disagreeable,
fate will
never elect it for the accomplishment of any great deeds. For
the greatest
changes that have taken place on this earth would have been
inconceivable if
they had not been inspired by ardent and even
hysterical passions, but only
by the bourgeois virtues of peacefulness
and order.
One thing is
certain: our world is facing a great revolution. The only
question is whether
the outcome will be propitious for the Aryan portion
of mankind or whether
the everlasting Jew will profit by it.
By educating the young generation
along the right lines, the People's
State will have to see to it that a
generation of mankind is formed
which will be adequate to this supreme combat
that will decide the
destinies of the world.
That nation will conquer
which will be the first to take this road.
The whole organization of
education and training which the People's
State is to build up must take as
its crowning task the work of
instilling into the hearts and brains of the
youth entrusted to it the
racial instinct and understanding of the racial
idea. No boy or girl
must leave school without having attained a clear
insight into the
meaning of racial purity and the importance of maintaining
the racial
blood unadulterated. Thus the first indispensable condition for
the
preservation of our race will have been established and thus the future
cultural progress of our people will be assured.
For in the last analysis
all physical and mental training would be in
vain unless it served an entity
which is ready and determined to carry
on its own existence and maintain its
own characteristic qualities.
If it were otherwise, something would
result which we Germans have cause
to regret already, without perhaps having
hitherto recognized the extent
of the tragic calamity. We should be doomed to
remain also in the future
only manure for civilization. And that not in the
banal sense of the
contemporary bourgeois mind, which sees in a lost fellow
member of our
people only a lost citizen, but in a sense which we should have
painfully to recognize: namely, that our racial blood would be destined
to
disappear. By continually mixing with other races we might lift them
from
their former lower level of civilization to a higher grade; but we
ourselves
should descend for ever from the heights we had reached.
Finally, from
the racial standpoint this training also must find its
culmination in the
military service. The term of military service is to
be a final stage of the
normal training which the average German
receives.
While the People's
State attaches the greatest importance to physical
and mental training, it
has also to consider, and no less importantly,
the task of selecting men for
the service of the State itself. This
important matter is passed over lightly
at the present time. Generally
the children of parents who are for the time
being in higher situations
are in their turn considered worthy of a higher
education. Here talent
plays a subordinate part. But talent can be estimated
only relatively.
Though in general culture he may be inferior to the city
child, a
peasant boy may be more talented than the son of a family that has
occupied high positions through many generations. But the superior
culture of
the city child has in itself nothing to do with a greater or
lesser degree of
talent; for this culture has its roots in the more
copious mass of
impressions which arise from the more varied education
and the surroundings
among which this child lives. If the intelligent
son of peasant parents were
educated from childhood in similar
surroundings his intellectual
accomplishments would be quite otherwise.
In our day there is only one sphere
where the family in which a person
has been born means less than his innate
gifts. That is the sphere of
art. Here, where a person cannot just 'learn,'
but must have innate
gifts that later on may undergo a more or less happy
development (in the
sense of a wise development of what is already there),
money and
parental property are of no account. This is a good proof that
genius is
not necessarily connected with the higher social strata or with
wealth.
Not rarely the greatest artists come from poor families. And many a
boy
from the country village has eventually become a celebrated master.
It does not say much for the mental acumen of our time that advantage is
not taken of this truth for the sake of our whole intellectual life. The
opinion is advanced that this principle, though undoubtedly valid in the
field of art, has not the same validity in regard to what are called the
applied sciences. It is true that a man can be trained to a certain
amount of
mechanical dexterity, just as a poodle can be taught
incredible tricks by a
clever master. But such training does not bring
the animal to use his
intelligence in order to carry out those tricks.
And the same holds good in
regard to man. It is possible to teach men,
irrespective of talent or no
talent, to go through certain scientific
exercises, but in such cases the
results are quite as inanimate and
mechanical as in the case of the animal.
It would even be possible to
force a person of mediocre intelligence, by
means of a severe course of
intellectual drilling, to acquire more than the
average amount of
knowledge; but that knowledge would remain sterile. The
result would be
a man who might be a walking dictionary of knowledge but who
will fail
miserably on every critical occasion in life and at every juncture
where
vital decisions have to be taken. Such people need to be drilled
specially for every new and even most insignificant task and will never
be
capable of contributing in the least to the general progress of
mankind.
Knowledge that is merely drilled into people can at best
qualify them to fill
government positions under our present regime.
It goes without saying
that, among the sum total of individuals who make
up a nation, gifted people
are always to be found in every sphere of
life. It is also quite natural that
the value of knowledge will be all
the greater the more vitally the dead mass
of learning is animated by
the innate talent of the individual who possesses
it. Creative work in
this field can be done only through the marriage of
knowledge and
talent.
One example will suffice to show how much our
contemporary world is at
fault in this matter. From time to time our
illustrated papers publish,
for the edification of the German philistine, the
news that in some
quarter or other of the globe, and for the first time in
that locality,
a Negro has become a lawyer, a teacher, a pastor, even a grand
opera
tenor or something else of that kind. While the bourgeois blockhead
stares with amazed admiration at the notice that tells him how
marvellous are
the achievements of our modern educational technique, the
more cunning Jew
sees in this fact a new proof to be utilized for the
theory with which he
wants to infect the public, namely that all men are
equal. It does not dawn
on the murky bourgeois mind that the fact which
is published for him is a sin
against reason itself, that it is an act
of criminal insanity to train a
being who is only an anthropoid by birth
until the pretence can be made that
he has been turned into a lawyer;
while, on the other hand, millions who
belong to the most civilized
races have to remain in positions which are
unworthy of their cultural
level. The bourgeois mind does not realize that it
is a sin against the
will of the eternal Creator to allow hundreds of
thousands of highly
gifted people to remain floundering in the swamp of
proletarian misery
while Hottentots and Zulus are drilled to fill positions
in the
intellectual professions. For here we have the product only of a
drilling technique, just as in the case of the performing dog. If the
same
amount of care and effort were applied among intelligent races each
individual would become a thousand times more capable in such matters.
This state of affairs would become intolerable if a day should arrive
when it
no longer refers to exceptional cases. But the situation is
already
intolerable where talent and natural gifts are not taken as
decisive factors
in qualifying for the right to a higher education. It
is indeed intolerable
to think that year after year hundreds of
thousands of young people without a
single vestige of talent are deemed
worthy of a higher education, while other
hundreds of thousands who
possess high natural gifts have to go without any
sort of higher
schooling at all. The practical loss thus caused to the nation
is
incalculable. If the number of important discoveries which have been
made in America has grown considerably in recent years one of the
reasons is
that the number of gifted persons belonging to the lowest
social classes who
were given a higher education in that country is
proportionately much larger
than in Europe.
A stock of knowledge packed into the brain will not
suffice for the
making of discoveries. What counts here is only that
knowledge which is
illuminated by natural talent. But with us at the present
time no value
is placed on such gifts. Only good school reports count.
Here is another educative work that is waiting for the People's State to
do. It will not be its task to assure a dominant influence to a certain
social class already existing, but it will be its duty to attract the
most
competent brains in the total mass of the nation and promote them
to place
and honour. It is not merely the duty of the State to give to
the average
child a certain definite education in the primary school,
but it is also its
duty to open the road to talent in the proper
direction. And above all, it
must open the doors of the higher schools
under the State to talent of every
sort, no matter in what social class
it may appear. This is an imperative
necessity; for thus alone will it
be possible to develop a talented body of
public leaders from the class
which represents learning that in itself is
only a dead mass.
There is still another reason why the State should
provide for this
situation. Our intellectual class, particularly in Germany,
is so shut
up in itself and fossilized that it lacks living contact with the
classes beneath it. Two evil consequences result from this: First, the
intellectual class neither understands nor sympathizes with the broad
masses.
It has been so long cut off from all connection with them that
it cannot now
have the necessary psychological ties that would enable it
to understand
them. It has become estranged from the people. Secondly,
the intellectual
class lacks the necessary will-power; for this faculty
is always weaker in
cultivated circles, which live in seclusion, than
among the primitive masses
of the people. God knows we Germans have
never been lacking in abundant
scientific culture, but we have always
had a considerable lack of will-power
and the capacity for making
decisions. For example, the more 'intellectual'
our statesmen have been
the more lacking they have been, for the most part,
in practical
achievement. Our political preparation and our technical
equipment for
the world war were defective, certainly not because the brains
governing
the nation were too little educated, but because the men who
directed
our public affairs were over-educated, filled to over-flowing with
knowledge and intelligence, yet without any sound instinct and simply
without
energy, or any spirit of daring. It was our nation's tragedy to
have to fight
for its existence under a Chancellor who was a
dillydallying philosopher. If
instead of a Bethmann von Hollweg we had
had a rough man of the people as our
leader the heroic blood of the
common grenadier would not have been shed in
vain. The exaggeratedly
intellectual material out of which our leaders were
made proved to be
the best ally of the scoundrels who carried out the
November revolution.
These intellectuals safeguarded the national wealth in a
miserly
fashion, instead of launching it forth and risking it, and thus they
set
the conditions on which the others won success.
Here the Catholic
Church presents an instructive example. Clerical
celibacy forces the Church
to recruit its priests not from their own
ranks but progressively from the
masses of the people. Yet there are not
many who recognize the significance
of celibacy in this relation. But
therein lies the cause of the inexhaustible
vigour which characterizes
that ancient institution. For by thus unceasingly
recruiting the
ecclesiastical dignitaries from the lower classes of the
people, the
Church is enabled not only to maintain the contact of instinctive
understanding with the masses of the population but also to assure
itself of
always being able to draw upon that fund of energy which is
present in this
form only among the popular masses. Hence the surprising
youthfulness of that
gigantic organism, its mental flexibility and its
iron will-power.
It
will be the task of the Peoples' State so to organize and administer
its
educational system that the existing intellectual class will be
constantly
furnished with a supply of fresh blood from beneath. From the
bulk of the
nation the State must sift out with careful scrutiny those
persons who are
endowed with natural talents and see that they are
employed in the service of
the community. For neither the State itself
nor the various departments of
State exist to furnish revenues for
members of a special class, but to fulfil
the tasks allotted to them.
This will be possible, however, only if the State
trains individuals
specially for these offices. Such individuals must have
the necessary
fundamental capabilities and will-power. The principle does not
hold
true only in regard to the civil service but also in regard to all those
who are to take part in the intellectual and moral leadership of the
people,
no matter in what sphere they may be employed. The greatness of
a people is
partly dependent on the condition that it must succeed in
training the best
brains for those branches of the public service for
which they show a special
natural aptitude and in placing them in the
offices where they can do their
best work for the good of the community.
If two nations of equal strength and
quality engage in a mutual conflict
that nation will come out victorious
which has entrusted its
intellectual and moral leadership to its best talents
and that nation
will go under whose government represents only a common food
trough for
privileged groups or classes and where the inner talents of its
individual members are not availed of.
Of course such a reform seems
impossible in the world as it is to-day.
The objection will at once be
raised, that it is too much to expect from
the favourite son of a
highly-placed civil servant, for instance, that
he shall work with his hands
simply because somebody else whose parents
belong to the working-class seems
more capable for a job in the civil
service. That argument may be valid as
long as manual work is looked
upon in the same way as it is looked upon
to-day. Hence the Peoples'
State will have to take up an attitude towards the
appreciation of
manual labour which will be fundamentally different from that
which now
exists. If necessary, it will have to organize a persistent system
of
teaching which will aim at abolishing the present-day stupid habit of
looking down on physical labour as an occupation to be ashamed of.
The
individual will have to be valued, not by the class of work he does
but by
the way in which he does it and by its usefulness to the
community. This
statement may sound monstrous in an epoch when the most
brainless columnist
on a newspaper staff is more esteemed than the most
expert mechanic, merely
because the former pushes a pen. But, as I have
said, this false valuation
does not correspond to the nature of things.
It has been artificially
introduced, and there was a time when it did
not exist at all. The present
unnatural state of affairs is one of those
general morbid phenomena that have
arisen from our materialistic epoch.
Fundamentally every kind of work has a
double value; the one material,
the other ideal. The material value depends
on the practical importance
of the work to the life of the community. The
greater the number of the
population who benefit from the work, directly or
indirectly, the higher
will be its material value. This evaluation is
expressed in the material
recompense which the individual receives for his
labour. In
contradistinction to this purely material value there is the ideal
value. Here the work performed is not judged by its material importance
but
by the degree to which it answers a necessity. Certainly the
material utility
of an invention may be greater than that of the service
rendered by an
everyday workman; but it is also certain that the
community needs each of
those small daily services just as much as the
greater services. From the
material point of view a distinction can be
made in the evaluation of
different kinds of work according to their
utility to the community, and this
distinction is expressed by the
differentiation in the scale of recompense;
but on the ideal or abstract
plans all workmen become equal the moment each
strives to do his best in
his own field, no matter what that field may be. It
is on this that a
man's value must be estimated, and not on the amount of
recompense
received.
In a reasonably directed State care must be taken
that each individual
is given the kind of work which corresponds to his
capabilities. In
other words, people will be trained for the positions
indicated by their
natural endowments; but these endowments or faculties are
innate and
cannot be acquired by any amount of training, being a gift from
Nature
and not merited by men. Therefore, the way in which men are generally
esteemed by their fellow-citizens must not be according to the kind of
work
they do, because that has been more or less assigned to the
individual.
Seeing that the kind of work in which the individual is
employed is to be
accounted to his inborn gifts and the resultant
training which he has
received from the community, he will have to be
judged by the way in which he
performs this work entrusted to him by the
community. For the work which the
individual performs is not the purpose
of his existence, but only a means.
His real purpose in life is to
better himself and raise himself to a higher
level as a human being; but
this he can only do in and through the community
whose cultural life he
shares. And this community must always exist on the
foundations on which
the State is based. He ought to contribute to the
conservation of those
foundations. Nature determines the form of this
contribution. It is the
duty of the individual to return to the community,
zealously and
honestly, what the community has given him. He who does this
deserves
the highest respect and esteem. Material remuneration may be given
to
him whose work has a corresponding utility for the community; but the
ideal recompense must lie in the esteem to which everybody has a claim
who
serves his people with whatever powers Nature has bestowed upon him
and which
have been developed by the training he has received from the
national
community. Then it will no longer be dishonourable to be an
honest craftsman;
but it will be a cause of disgrace to be an
inefficient State official,
wasting God's day and filching daily bread
from an honest public. Then it
will be looked upon as quite natural that
positions should not be given to
persons who of their very nature are
incapable of filling them.
Furthermore, this personal efficiency will be the sole criterion of the
right
to take part on an equal juridical footing in general civil
affairs.
The present epoch is working out its own ruin. It introduces universal
suffrage, chatters about equal rights but can find no foundation for
this
equality. It considers the material wage as the expression of a
man's value
and thus destroys the basis of the noblest kind of equality
that can exist.
For equality cannot and does not depend on the work a
man does, but only on
the manner in which each one does the particular
work allotted to him. Thus
alone will mere natural chance be set aside
in determining the work of a man
and thus only does the individual
become the artificer of his own social
worth.
At the present time, when whole groups of people estimate each
other's
value only by the size of the salaries which they respectively
receive,
there will be no understanding of all this. But that is no reason
why we
should cease to champion those ideas. Quite the opposite: in an epoch
which is inwardly diseased and decaying anyone who would heal it must
have
the courage first to lay bare the real roots of the disease. And
the National
Socialist Movement must take that duty on its shoulders. It
will have to lift
its voice above the heads of the small bourgeoisie and
rally together and
co-ordinate all those popular forces which are ready
to become the
protagonists of a new WELTANSCHAUUNG.
Of course the objection
will be made that in general it is difficult to
differentiate between the
material and ideal values of work and that the
lower prestige which is
attached to physical labour is due to the fact
that smaller wages are paid
for that kind of work. It will be said that
the lower wage is in its turn the
reason why the manual worker has less
chance to participate in the culture of
the nation; so that the ideal
side of human culture is less open to him
because it has nothing to do
with his daily activities. It may be added that
the reluctance to do
physical work is justified by the fact that, on account
of the small
income, the cultural level of manual labourers must naturally be
low,
and that this in turn is a justification for the lower estimation in
which manual labour is generally held.
There is quite a good deal of
truth in all this. But that is the very
reason why we ought to see that in
the future there should not be such a
wide difference in the scale of
remuneration. Don't say that under such
conditions poorer work would be done.
It would be the saddest symptom of
decadence if finer intellectual work could
be obtained only through the
stimulus of higher payment. If that point of
view had ruled the world up
to now humanity would never have acquired its
greatest scientific and
cultural heritage. For all the greatest inventions,
the greatest
discoveries, the most profoundly revolutionary scientific work,
and the
most magnificent monuments of human culture, were never given to the
world under the impulse or compulsion of money. Quite the contrary: not
rarely was their origin associated with a renunciation of the worldly
pleasures that wealth can purchase.
It may be that money has become the
one power that governs life to-day.
Yet a time will come when men will again
bow to higher gods. Much that
we have to-day owes its existence to the desire
for money and property;
but there is very little among all this which would
leave the world
poorer by its lack.
It is also one of the aims before
our movement to hold out the prospect
of a time when the individual will be
given what he needs for the
purposes of his life and it will be a time in
which, on the other hand,
the principle will be upheld that man does not live
for material
enjoyment alone. This principle will find expression in a wiser
scale of
wages and salaries which will enable everyone, including the
humblest
workman who fulfils his duties conscientiously, to live an
honourable
and decent life both as a man and as a citizen. Let it not be said
that
this is merely a visionary ideal, that this world would never tolerate
it in practice and that of itself it is impossible to attain.
Even we are
not so simple as to believe that there will ever be an age
in which there
will be no drawbacks. But that does not release us from
the obligation to
fight for the removal of the defects which we have
recognized, to overcome
the shortcomings and to strive towards the
ideal. In any case the hard
reality of the facts to be faced will always
place only too many limits to
our aspirations. But that is precisely why
man must strive again and again to
serve the ultimate aim and no
failures must induce him to renounce his
intentions, just as we cannot
spurn the sway of justice because mistakes
creep into the administration
of the law, and just as we cannot despise
medical science because, in
spite of it, there will always be diseases.
Man should take care not to have too low an estimate of the power of an
ideal. If there are some who may feel disheartened over the present
conditions, and if they happen to have served as soldiers, I would
remind
them of the time when their heroism was the most convincing
example of the
power inherent in ideal motives. It was not preoccupation
about their daily
bread that led men to sacrifice their lives, but the
love of their country,
the faith which they had in its greatness, and an
all round feeling for the
honour of the nation. Only after the German
people had become estranged from
these ideals, to follow the material
promises offered by the Revolution, only
after they threw away their
arms to take up the rucksack, only then--instead
of entering an earthly
paradise--did they sink into the purgatory of
universal contempt and at
the same time universal want.
That is why we
must face the calculators of the materialist Republic
with faith in an
idealist REICH.
CHAPTER III
CITIZENS AND
SUBJECTS OF THE STATE
The institution that is now erroneously called
the State generally
classifies people only into two groups: citizens and
aliens. Citizens
are all those who possess full civic rights, either by
reason of their
birth or by an act of naturalization. Aliens are those who
enjoy the
same rights in some other State. Between these two categories there
are
certain beings who resemble a sort of meteoric phenomena. They are
people who have no citizenship in any State and consequently no civic
rights
anywhere.
In most cases nowadays a person acquires civic rights by being
born
within the frontiers of a State. The race or nationality to which he may
belong plays no role whatsoever. The child of a Negro who once lived in
one
of the German protectorates and now takes up his residence in
Germany
automatically becomes a 'German Citizen' in the eyes of the
world. In the
same way the child of any Jew, Pole, African or Asian may
automatically
become a German Citizen.
Besides naturalization that is acquired through
the fact of having been
born within the confines of a State there exists
another kind of
naturalization which can be acquired later. This process is
subject to
various preliminary requirements. For example one condition is
that, if
possible, the applicant must not be a burglar or a common street
thug.
It is required of him that his political attitude is not such as to
give
cause for uneasiness; in other words he must be a harmless simpleton in
politics. It is required that he shall not be a burden to the State of
which
he wishes to become a citizen. In this realistic epoch of ours
this last
condition naturally only means that he must not be a financial
burden. If the
affairs of the candidate are such that it appears likely
he will turn out to
be a good taxpayer, that is a very important
consideration and will help him
to obtain civic rights all the more
rapidly.
The question of race
plays no part at all.
The whole process of acquiring civic rights is not
very different from
that of being admitted to membership of an automobile
club, for
instance. A person files his application. It is examined. It is
sanctioned. And one day the man receives a card which informs him that
he has
become a citizen. The information is given in an amusing way. An
applicant
who has hitherto been a Zulu or Kaffir is told: "By these
presents you are
now become a German Citizen."
The President of the State can perform this
piece of magic. What God
Himself could not do is achieved by some
Theophrastus Paracelsus (Note 16)
of a civil servant through a mere twirl of
the hand. Nothing but a stroke
of the pen, and a Mongolian slave is forthwith
turned into a real
German. Not only is no question asked regarding the race
to which the
new citizen belongs; even the matter of his physical health is
not
inquired into. His flesh may be corrupted with syphilis; but he will
still be welcome in the State as it exists to-day so long as he may not
become a financial burden or a political danger.
[Note 16. The last and
most famous of the medieval alchemists. He was born
at Basleabout the year
1490 and died at Salzburg in 1541. He taught that
all metals could be
transmuted through the action of one primary element
common to them all. This
element he called ALCAHEST. If it could be found
it would proveto be at once
the philosopher's stone, the universal
medicine and their resistible solvent.
There are many aspects of his
teaching which are now looked upon as by no
means so fantastic as they
were considered in his own time.]
In this
way, year after year, those organisms which we call States take
up poisonous
matter which they can hardly ever overcome.
Another point of distinction
between a citizen and an alien is that the
former is admitted to all public
offices, that he may possibly have to
do military service and that in return
he is permitted to take a passive
or active part at public elections. Those
are his chief privileges. For
in regard to personal rights and personal
liberty the alien enjoys the
same amount of protection as the citizen, and
frequently even more.
Anyhow that is how it happens in our present German
Republic.
I realize fully that nobody likes to hear these things. But it
would be
difficult to find anything more illogical or more insane than our
contemporary laws in regard to State citizenship.
At present there exists
one State which manifests at least some modest
attempts that show a better
appreciation of how things ought to be done
in this matter. It is not,
however, in our model German Republic but in
the U.S.A. that efforts are made
to conform at least partly to the
counsels of commonsense. By refusing
immigrants to enter there if they
are in a bad state of health, and by
excluding certain races from the
right to become naturalized as citizens,
they have begun to introduce
principles similar to those on which we wish to
ground the People's
State.
The People's State will classify its
population in three groups:
Citizens, subjects of the State, and aliens.
The principle is that birth within the confines of the State gives only
the status of a subject. It does not carry with it the right to fill any
position under the State or to participate in political life, such as
taking
an active or passive part in elections. Another principle is that
the race
and nationality of every subject of the State will have to be
proved. A
subject is at any time free to cease being a subject and to
become a citizen
of that country to which he belongs in virtue of his
nationality. The only
difference between an alien and a subject of the
State is that the former is
a citizen of another country.
The young boy or girl who is of German
nationality and is a subject of
the German State is bound to complete the
period of school education
which is obligatory for every German. Thereby he
submits to the system
of training which will make him conscious of his race
and a member of
the folk-community. Then he has to fulfil all those
requirements laid
down by the State in regard to physical training after he
has left
school; and finally he enters the army. The training in the army is
of a
general kind. It must be given to each individual German and will render
him competent to fulfil the physical and mental requirements of military
service. The rights of citizenship shall be conferred on every young man
whose health and character have been certified as good, after having
completed his period of military service. This act of inauguration in
citizenship shall be a solemn ceremony. And the diploma conferring the
rights
of citizenship will be preserved by the young man as the most
precious
testimonial of his whole life. It entitles him to exercise all
the rights of
a citizen and to enjoy all the privileges attached
thereto. For the State
must draw a sharp line of distinction between
those who, as members of the
nation, are the foundation and the support
of its existence and greatness,
and those who are domiciled in the State
simply as earners of their
livelihood there.
On the occasion of conferring a diploma of citizenship
the new citizen
must take a solemn oath of loyalty to the national community
and the
State. This diploma must be a bond which unites together all the
various
classes and sections of the nation. It shall be a greater honour to
be a
citizen of this REICH, even as a street-sweeper, than to be the King of
a foreign State.
The citizen has privileges which are not accorded to the
alien. He is
the master in the REICH. But this high honour has also its
obligations.
Those who show themselves without personal honour or character,
or
common criminals, or traitors to the fatherland, can at any time be
deprived of the rights of citizenship. Therewith they become merely
subjects
of the State.
The German girl is a subject of the State but will become a
citizen when
she marries. At the same time those women who earn their
livelihood
independently have the right to acquire citizenship if they are
German
subjects.
CHAPTER IV
PERSONALITY AND
THE IDEAL OF THE PEOPLE'S STATE
EPILOGUE
On November 9th, 1923, four and a half years
after its foundation, the
German National Socialist Labour Party was
dissolved and forbidden
throughout the whole of the REICH. To-day, in
November 1926, it is again
established throughout the REICH, enjoying full
liberty, stronger and
internally more compact than ever before.
All
persecutions of the Movement and the individuals at its head, all
the
imputations and calumnies, have not been able to prevail against it.
Thanks
to the justice of its ideas, the integrity of its intentions and
the spirit
of self-denial that animates its members, it has overcome all
oppression and
increased its strength through the ordeal. If, in our
contemporary world of
parliamentary corruption, our Movement remains
always conscious of the
profound nature of its struggle and feels that
it personifies the values of
individual personality and race, and orders
its action accordingly--then it
may count with mathematical certainty on
achieving victory some day in the
future. And Germany must necessarily
win the position which belongs to it on
this Earth if it is led and
organized according to these principles.
A
State which, in an epoch of racial adulteration, devotes itself to the
duty
of preserving the best elements of its racial stock must one day
become ruler
of the Earth.
The adherents of our Movements must always remember this,
whenever they
may have misgivings lest the greatness of the sacrifices
demanded of
them may not be justified by the possibilities of success.
THE END